PUT DOWN THF^ 
 

THE CHA^JLIN UP A TBKBL 
 
BOW PRIVATE GEO. W. PECK 
 
 PUT DOWN 
 
 THE REBELLION 
 
 FUNNY EXPERIENCES OF A RAW RECRUIT 
 
 ["War Papers" h la Century Magazine, from the standpoint of a 
 private soldier, who was afraid of his shadow, and who didn t 
 want to fight unless lie hjji>3 .<?,] ; 
 
 BY THE AUTHOR OF 
 
 PECK SPUN," "PECK S SUNSHINE," "PECK S BAD BOY AND HIS PA, 
 "PECK S BOSS BOOK," AND LOTS OF SUCH STUFF 
 
 ^- &, ( 
 
 ILLUSTRATED BY TRUE WILLIAMS 
 
 CHICAGO 
 
 THOMPSON & THOMAF 
 PUBLISHERS 
 
COPYRIGHT, 1887, BY 
 GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 COPYRIGHT, 1900, BY 
 
 w. p. CONK:E;Y COMPANY 
 
 ..RESERVED 
 
 HOW PRIVATE GKO. W. PECK PUT 
 DOWN THE REBELLION 
 
DEDICATION. 
 
 TO THE " BOYS IN BLUE" AND THE " BOYS IN feRAY," 
 
 Who got real spunky at each other, some years ago, while 
 playing in their adjoining door-yards, threw tomato cans 
 and dead cats back and forth, called each other cnmes, 
 pulled hair, and snubbed noses until they got into real, 
 actual war, in which such bravery was shown on both 
 sides, as the world had never seen before, and who have 
 decided to be neighbors and friends again, ready to protect 
 and defend each other against all the world; these reminis 
 cences of the ridiculous part taken in the struggle, by a 
 raw recruit, who was too scared to fight and too frightened 
 to run, are most respectfully dedicated, with the earnest 
 hope that no occasion may ever again arise in which it 
 shall seem necessary for one American citizen to seek to 
 shed the gore of another American citizen. 
 
 GEORGE W. PECK. 
 
CONTENTS. 
 
 CHAPTER 1 
 
 The War Literature of the "Century" Is Very Confusing I Am 
 Resolved to Tell the True Story of the War How and Why I 
 Became a Raw Recruit My Quarters My Horse My First 
 Ride 11 
 
 CHAPTER II. 
 
 I Am Rudely Awakened from Dreams of Home I Go on Picket 
 The Foe Advances A Desperate Conflict The Union-Confed 
 erate Breakfast on the Alabama Race-track A Friendly Part 
 ing 21 
 
 CHAPTER III. 
 
 I Describe a Deadly Encounter Am Congratulated as a Warrior 
 with a Big " W" The Chaplain Gives Good Advice I Attend 
 Surgeon s Call Castor Oil out of a Dirty Bottle Back to the 
 Chaplain s Tent I Am Wounded in the -Canteen 35 
 
 CHAPTER IV. 
 
 I Yearn for a Furlough I Interview the General I Am Detailed 
 to Carry a Rail I Make a Horse-trade with the Chaplain I 
 Am Put in Charge of a Funeral , 4ft 
 
 CHAPTER V. 
 
 The Funeral of the Colored Cook I Plead for a Larger Procession 
 The Funeral Oration The Funeral Disturbed -I Am Ar 
 rested My Fortunate Escape 60 
 
VI , CONTENTS. 
 
 CHAPTER VL 
 
 I Capture " Jeff " I Get Back at the Chaplain The Chaplain is 
 Arrested Off on a Raid I Meet the Relatives of the 
 Dead Confederate My Powers of Lying are Brought into 
 Play. 73 
 
 CHAPTER VH. 
 
 "Boots and Saddles" "I Am the Colonel s Orderly " Riding 
 Fifty Miles on an Empty Stomach The Chaplain Appears I 
 Am Wounded by a Locomotive and a Piece of Coal I Nearly 
 KillanOldMan 87 
 
 CHAPTER VHI. 
 
 Three Days Without Food! The Value of Hard Tack A Silver 
 Watch for a Pint of Meal I Steal Corn From a Hungry Mule 
 The Delirium of Hunger I Dine on Mule I Capture a 
 Rebel Ram 99 
 
 CHAPTER IX. 
 
 Bacon and Hard-Tack In Danger of Ague In Search of Whisky 
 and Quinine I am Appointed Corporal I Make a Speech I 
 Am a Leader of Ten Picked Men I Am Willing to Resign. . 114 
 
 CHAPTER X. 
 
 Yearnings for Military Fame What I Want Is a Chance I feel I 
 Could Crush the Rebellion My Chance Arrives I Am 
 Crushed The Rebellion Remains Pretty Well 128 
 
 CHAPTER XL 
 
 I Am Detailed to Build a Bridge It Was a Good Bridge, But OTer 
 the Wrong Stream The General Appears I Am Crushed, in 
 Fact Pulverized I I Am Attacked With Rheumatism , . .141 
 
CONTENTS. V 
 
 CHAPTER XII. 
 
 I Am Instructed to Capture and Search a Female Smuggler I Pro- 
 test in Vain The Terrible Ordeal Beauty Behind the Pulpit 
 Pills, Plaisters, Quinine The Pathetic Letter We Meet 
 Under Happier Stars 153 
 
 CHAPTER XIII. 
 
 The Female Smuggler Episode Makes Me Famous I Am Sent 
 Forth in Women s Clothes My Interview With the Bad Cor 
 poralA Fist Fight The Rebellion Is Put Down Once More 
 I Reveal My Identity ; . 168 
 
 CHAPTER XIV. 
 
 Military Attire My Suit of Government Clothes The Memory of 
 Them Saddens Me Still The Dreadful March The Adjutant 
 Appoints Me to Make Out a Monthly Report The Report is an 
 Astonishing One 178 
 
 CHAPTER XV. 
 
 My Experience as a Sick Man Jim Thinks I Have Yellow Fever ^ 
 What I Suffered "A Rebel Angel" I Am Sent to the Hos 
 pital ; 188 
 
 CHAPTER XVL 
 
 My Varied Experience in the Hospital The Doctor Seems Sure of 
 My Death I Suggest the Postponement of My Funeral I Get 
 Very Sick of Gruel I Go Back to My Regiment 199 
 
 CHAPTER XVII. 
 
 Thanksgiving Dinner with the "Rebel Angel" She Gives Me a 
 World of Good Advice Can an Officer Be Detailed to Go and 
 Shovel Dirt? My First Day as a Commissioned Officer 210 
 
CONTENTS. 
 
 CHAPTER XVIII. 
 
 My Sickness and Hospital Experiences Have Spoiled Me for a Sol 
 dierI Am Full of Charity and Hope the War Will Cease We 
 Have a Grand Attack The Battle Lasted Ten Minutes The 
 "Rebel Angel s" Brother Is Captured 219 
 
 CHAPTER XIX. 
 
 I Am Detailed to Drive a Six-mule Team I Am Covered with Red 
 Mud I Am Sent on an Expedition of Cold-blooded Murder I 
 Make a Dozen ex-Confederate Soldiers Happy by Setting Them 
 up in Business , 229 
 
 CHAPTER XX. 
 
 I Demonstrate that Gambling does not pay I Cause a General 
 Stampede Christmas in the Pine Woods of Alabama Mill 
 ions of Dollars, but no Christmas Dinner 239 
 
 CHAPTER XXI. 
 
 I Go Out on a Scouting Expedition My Horse Dies of Poison 
 I Turn Horse-Thief I Capture a Church, Congregation and 
 Minister, but I Spare the Communion Wine 249 
 
 CHAPTER XXH. 
 
 The Spotted Horse His Shameful Behavior at a Funeral I was 
 Tempted to Have my Horse Shot But I Traded Him to the 
 Chaplain. 261 
 
 CHAPTER XXHI. 
 
 Tells How the Chaplain was Paralyzed by the Spotted Circus- 
 Horse I am Court-Martialed I Plead My Own Case and 
 am Acquitted 269 
 
CONTENTS. IX 
 
 CHAPTER XXTV. 
 
 Mingled Reminiscences I Relate a Mississippi River Steamboat 
 Experience 278 
 
 CHAPTER XXV. 
 
 Our Party of Recruits Own the Earth We Live High, Give a 
 Ball, and Go to the Guard-House And are Arrested by Col 
 ored Troops 289 
 
 CHAPTER XXVI. 
 
 I Strike another Soft Snap, which is Harder than Any Snap Here^ 
 tofore I Begin taking Music Lessons, and Fill Up a Con 
 federate Prisoner with Yankee Food 299 
 
 CHAPTER XXVII. 
 
 A. Short Story about a Pair of Boots, Showing the Monumental 
 Gall of Their Owner. . . . .308 
 
ILLUSTRATIONS. 
 
 PAGE. 
 
 FRONTISPIECE The Chaplain up a Tree. 
 
 Mounting my Arab Steed from the Top of a Fence Rail 16 
 
 On Went the Two Night Riders 28 
 
 " Great Caesar s Ghost ! How it did Taste " 41 
 
 "I Never Knew How I Got Out of the General s Tent" 50 
 
 I Pronounce a Solemn Funeral Oration 65 
 
 " You are a Darling Good Man," said the Little Girl 86 
 
 I am Wounded by a Locomotive and a Piece of Coal 95 
 
 We Went into Camp That Way 112 
 
 A Pretty Position for a Man just Promoted to the Proud 
 
 Position of Corporal 121 
 
 " Jim, Excuse Me, but What Kind of a Thing is That ?".... 146 
 Two Stockings and a Pair of Dainty Shoes came Over the Pulpit 163 
 He Fell to the Ground and Gave a Yell you Could have Heard 
 
 a Mile 1 74 
 
 The "Rebel Angel" Gives the Doctor a Piece of Her Mind.. 197 
 
 I Forbid you Touching that Jkare 258 
 
 I Jerked him Down Off u There 265 
 
HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 PUT DOWN THE REBELLION; 
 
 OB 
 
 THE FUNNY EXPERIENCES OF A RAW RECRUIT. 
 
 CHAPTER I. 
 
 THE WAR LITERATURE OP THE "CENTURY" is VERT CONFUSING 
 I AM RESOLVED TO TELL THE TRUE STORY OP THE WAR 
 How AND WHY I BECAME A RAW RECRUIT MY QUARTERS 
 MY HORSE MY FIRST RIDE. 
 
 For the last year or more I have been reading the arti 
 cles in the Century magazine, written by generals and 
 things who served on both the Union and Confederate 
 sides, and have* been struck by the number of e decisive 
 battles " that were fought, and the great number of generals 
 who fought them and saved the country. It seems that 
 each general on the Union side, who fought a battle, and 
 writes an article for the aforesaid magazine, admits that 
 his battle was the one which did the business. On the 
 Confederate side, the generals who write articles invariably 
 demonstrate that they everlastingly whipped their oppo 
 nents, and drove them off in disorder. To read those arti 
 cles it seems strange that the Union generals who won so 
 many decisive battles, should not have ended the war 
 
 11 
 
12 FOW PEIVATE GEORGE TV. PECK 
 
 much sooner than they did, and to read the accounts of 
 battles won by the Confederates, and the demoralization 
 that ensued in the ranks of their opponents, It seems mar 
 vellous that the Union army was victorious. Any man who 
 has followed these generals of both sides, in the pages of 
 that magazine, must conclude that the war was a draw 
 game, and that both sides were whipped. Thus far no 
 general has lost a battle on either side, and all of them 
 tacitly admit that the whole thing depended on them, 
 and that other commanders were mere ciphers. This is a 
 kind of history that is going to mix up generations yet un 
 born in the most hopeless manner. 
 
 It has seemed to me as though the people of this coun 
 try had got so mixed up about the matter that it was 
 the duty of some private soldier to write a description of 
 the decisive battle of the war, and as I was the private sol 
 dier who fought that battle on the Union side, against 
 fearful odds, viz: against a Confederate soldier who 
 was braver than I was, a better horseback rider, and a 
 better poker player, I feel it my duty to tell about it. I 
 have already mentioned it to a few veterans, and they have 
 advised me to write an article for the Century, but I have 
 felt a delicacy about entering the lists, a plain, unvarnished 
 private soldier, against those generals. While I am some 
 thing of a liar myself, and can do fairly well in my own 
 class, I should feel that in the Century I was entered in too 
 fast a class of liars, and the result would be that I should 
 not only lose my entrance fee, but be distanced. So I 
 have decided to contribute this piece of history solely for 
 the benefit of the readers of my own paper, as they will 
 believe me. 
 
PUT DOWN" THE REBELLION. 13 
 
 It was in 1864 that I joined a cavalry regiment in the 
 department of the Gulf, a raw recruit in a veteran regiment. 
 It may be asked why I waited so long before enlisting, and 
 why I enlisted at all, when the war was so near over. I 
 know that the most of the soldiers enlisted from patriotic 
 motives, and because they wanted to help shed blood, and 
 wind up the war. I did not. I enlisted for the bounty. 
 I thought the war was nearly over, and that the probabili 
 ties were that the legiment I had enlisted in would be 
 ordered home before I could get to it. In fact the re 
 cruiting officer told me as much, and he said I would get 
 my bounty, and a few months pay, and it would be just 
 like finding money. He said at that late day I would 
 never see a rebel, and if I did have to join the regiment, 
 there would be no fighting, and it would just be one con 
 tinued picnic for two or three months, and there would be 
 no more danger than to go off camping for a duck shoot. 
 At my time of life, now that I have become gray, and bald, 
 and my eyesight is failing, and I have become a grand 
 father, I do not want to open the sores of twenty-two years 
 ago. I want a quiet life. So I would not assert that the 
 recruiting officer deliberately lied to me, but I was the 
 worst deceived man that ever enlisted, and if I ever meet 
 that man, on this earth, it will go hard with him. Of 
 course, if he is dead, that settles it, as I shall not follow 
 any man after death, when I am in doubt as to which road 
 he has taken, but if he is alive, and reads these lines, he 
 can hear of something to his advantage by communicating 
 with me. 1 would probably kill him. As far as the 
 bounty was concerned, I got that all right, but it was only 
 three-hundred dollars. Within twenty-four hours after I 
 
14 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 had been credited to the town from which I enlisted, I heard 
 of a town that was paying as high as twelve-hundred dol 
 lars for recruits. I have met with many reverses of fortune 
 in the course of a short, but brilliant career, have loaned 
 money and never got it back, have been taken in by de 
 signing persons on three card monte, and have been beaten 
 trading horses, but I never suffered much more than I did 
 when I found that I had got to go to war for a beggerly 
 fliree-hundred dollars bounty, when I could have had 
 twelve hundred dollars by being credited to another town. 
 1 think that during two years and a half of service nothing 
 tended more to dampen my amor, make me despondent, 
 and hate myself, than the loss of that nine-hundred dollars 
 bounty. There was not an hour of the day, in all of my 
 service, that I did not think of what might have been. It 
 was a long time before I brought to my aid that passage of 
 scripture, "There is no use crying for spilled bounty," 
 but when I did it helped me some. I thought of the hun 
 dreds who didn t get any bounty. 
 
 I joined my regiment, and had a cavalry horse issued to 
 me, and was assigned to a company. I went up to the cap 
 tain of the company, whom I had known as a farmer before 
 the war commenced, and told him I had come to help him 
 put down the rebellion. I never saw a man so changed as 
 he was. I thought he would ask me to bring my things 
 into his tent, and stav with him, but he seemed to have 
 forgotten that he had known me, when he worked on the 
 farm. He was dressed up nicely, and I thought he put on 
 style, and I could only think of him at home, with his 
 overalls tucked in his boots, driving a yoke of oxen to plow 
 a field. He seemed to feel that I had known him under 
 
PT7T DOW1C THE BEBELLIOtf. Id 
 
 unfavorable circumstances before the war, and acted as 
 though he wanted to shun me. I had drawn an infantry 
 knapsack, at Madison, before I left for the front, and had 
 it full of things, besides a small trunk. The captain called 
 a soldier and told him to find quarters for me, and I went 
 out of his presence. At my quarters, which consisted of 
 what was called a pup-tent, I found no conveniences, and 
 it soon dawned on me that war was no picnic, as that lying 
 recruiting officer had told me it was. I found that I had 
 got to throw away my trunk and knapsack, and all the 
 articles that I couldn t strap on a saddle, and when I asked 
 for a mattress the men laughed at me. I had always slept 
 on a mattress, or a feather bed, and when I was told that 
 I would have to sleep on the ground, under that little tent, 
 I felt hurt. I had known the colonel when he used to 
 teach school at home, and I went to him and told h*m what 
 kind of a way they were treating me, but he only laughed. 
 He had two nice cots in his tent, and I told him I thought 
 I ought to have a cot, too. He laughed some more. 
 Finally I asked him who slept in his extra cot, and inti 
 mated that I had rather sleep in his tent than mine, but he 
 sent me away, and said he would see what could be done. 
 I laid on the ground that night, but I didn t sleep. If I 
 ever get a pension it will be for rheumatism caught by 
 sleeping on the ground. The rheumatism has not got hold 
 of me yet, though twenty-two years have passed, but it 
 may be lurking about my system, for all I know. 
 
 I had never rode a horse, before enlisting. The only 
 thing I had ever got straddle of was a stool in a country 
 printing office, and when I was first ordered to saddle up 
 my horse, I could not tell which way the saddle and bridle 
 
 2 
 
16 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 went, and I got a colored man to help me, for which I paifl 
 him some of the remains of my bounty. I hired him per- 
 manently, to take care of my horse, but I soon learned 
 that each soldier had to take care of his own horse. That 
 seemed pretty hard. I had been raised a pet, and had 
 edited a newspaper, which had been one of the most out 
 spoken advocates of crushing the rebellion, and it seemed 
 to me, as much as I had done for the government, in 
 urging enlistments, I was entitled to more consideration 
 then to become my own hostler. However, I curbed my 
 proud spirit, and after the nigger cook had saddled my 
 horse, I led the animal up to a fence to climb on. From 
 the remarks of the soldiers, and the general laugh all 
 around, it was easy to see that mounting a cavalry 
 horse from off the top of a rail fence was not according to 
 tactics, but it was the only way I could see to get on, in 
 the absence of step-ladders. They let me ride into the 
 ranks, after mounting, and then they laughed. It was 
 hard for me to be obliged to throw away all the acticles I 
 had brought with me, so I strapped them on the saddle in 
 front and behind, and only my head stuck out over them. 
 There was one thing, it would be a practicable impossi 
 bility to fall off. The regiment started on a raid. The 
 colonel came along by my company during the afternoon, 
 and I asked him where we were going. He gave me an 
 evasive answer, which hurt my feelings. I asked his 
 pardon, but told him I would like to know where we were 
 going, so as to have my letters sent to me, but he went off 
 laughing, and never told me, while the old soldiers laughed, 
 though I couldn t see what they were laughing at. I did 
 not suppose there was so much difference between officers 
 
PUT DOWK THE REBELLION-. 17 
 
 and privates, and wondered if it was the policy of this 
 government to have a cavalry regiment to start off on a 
 long raid and not let the soldiers know where they were 
 going, and during the afternoon I decided to write home to 
 the paper I formerly edited and give my opinion of such a 
 fool way of running a war. Suppose anybody at home was 
 sick, they wouldn t know where to write for me to come 
 back. There is nothing that will give a man such an appe 
 tite as riding on a galloping horse, and along about the 
 middle of the afternoon I began to get hungry, and asked 
 the orderly sergeant when we were going to get any dinner. 
 He said there was a hotel a short distance ahead, and the 
 colonel had gone forward to order dinner for the regiment. 
 I believed him, because I had known the orderly before 
 the war, when he drove a horse in a brickyard, grinding 
 clay. But he was a liar, too, as I found out afterwards. 
 There was not a hotel within fifty miles, and soldiers did 
 not stop at hotels, anyway. Finally the orderly sergeant 
 came along and announced that dinner was ready, and I 
 looked for the hotel, but the only dinner I saw was some 
 raw pork that soldiers took out of their saddle bags, with 
 hard tack. We stopped in the woods, dismounted, and the 
 boys would cut off a slice of fat pork and spread it on the 
 hard tack and eat it. I had never supposed the govern 
 ment would subject its soldiers to such fare as that, and I 
 wouldn t eat. I did not dare dismount, as there was no 
 fence near that I could use to climb on to my horse, so I sat 
 in the saddle and let the horse eat some grass, while I 
 thought of home, and pie and cake, and what a condemned 
 fool a man was to leave a comfortable home to go and put 
 down anybody s rebellion. The way I left then X wouldn t 
 
1.8 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 have touched a rebellion if one lay right in the road. 
 What business was it of mine if some people in the South 
 wanted to dissolve partnership and go set up business for 
 themselves? How was I going to prevent them from hav 
 ing a southern confederacy, by riding an old rack of bones 
 of a horse, that would reach his nose around every little 
 while and chew my legs? If the recruiting officer who in 
 veigled me into the army had come along then, his widow 
 would now be drawing a pension. "While I was thinking, 
 dreaming of home, and the horse was eating grass, the 
 fool animal suddenly took it into his head to lay down and 
 roll, and before I could kick any of his ribs in, he was 
 down, and I was rolling off, with one leg under him. The 
 soldiers quit eating and pulled the horse off me, an<J hoisted 
 me up into the space between my baggage, and then they 
 laughed, lit their pipes and smoked, as happy as could be. 
 T couldn t see how they could be happy, and wondered if 
 they were not sick of war. Then they mounted, and on 
 we went. My legs and body became chafed, and it seemed 
 as though I couldn t ride another minute, and when the 
 captain came along I told him about it, and asked him if I 
 couldn t be relieved some way. He said the only way was 
 for me to stand on my head and ride, and he winked at a 
 soldier near me, and, do you know, that soldier actually, 
 changed ends with himself and stood on his head and hands 
 in the saddle and rode quite a distance, and the captain 
 said that was the way a cavalry soldier rested himself. 
 Gracious, I wouldn t have tried that for the world, and I 
 found out afterwards that the soldier who stood on his 
 head formerly belonged with a circus. 
 
 J impose it was wroug to complain, but the how they 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 19 
 
 gave me was the meanest horse in the regiment. He 
 would bite and kick the other horses, and they would kick 
 back, and about half the time I was dodging the heels of 
 horses, and a good deal of the time I was wondering if a 
 man would get any pension if he was wounded that way. 
 It would seem pretty tough to go home on a stretcher, as 
 a wounded soldier, and have people find out a horse kicked 
 you. I never had been a man of blood, and didn t enlist 
 to kill anybody, as I could prove by that recruiting officer, 
 and I didn t want to fight, but from what I could gather 
 from the conversation of the soldiers, fighting and killing 
 people was about all they thought about. They talked 
 about this one and that one who had been killed, and the 
 hundreds of confederates they had all shot or killed with 
 sabres, until my hair just stood right up. It seems that 
 twelve or fifteen men, more or less, had been shot off the 
 horse I was riding, and one fellow who rode next to me 
 said no man who ever rode that old yellow horse had es 
 caped alive. This was cheering to me, and I would have 
 given my three hundred dollars bounty, and all I could 
 borrow, if I could get out of the army. However, I found 
 out afterwards that the soldier lied. In fact they all lied, 
 and they lied for my benefit. We struck into the woods, 
 and traveled until after dark, with no road, and the march 
 was enlivened by remarks of the soldiers near me to the 
 effect that we would probably never get out of the woods 
 alive. They said we were trying to surround an army of 
 rebels, and cut them off from the main army, and the 
 chances were that when tomorrow s sun rose it would rise 
 on the ghostly corpses of the whole regiment, with jackals 
 siting us. Qnj Q the soldiers took 
 
20 HOW PBIVATE GEORGE W. PECU 
 
 thing from his pocket, about the size of a testament, 
 pressed it to his heart, and then kissed it, and I felt as 
 though I was about to faint, but by the light of a match 
 which another soldier had scratched on his pants to light 
 his pipe, I saw that what I supposed to be a testament, was 
 a box of sardines the soldier had bought of the sutler. I 
 was just about to die of hunger, exhaustion, and fright at 
 the fearful stories the veterans had been telling, when 
 there was a shout at the head of the regiment, which was 
 taken up all along the line, my horse ran under the limb 
 of a tree and raked me out of the saddle, and I hung to 
 the limb, my legs hanging down, and 
 
PUT DOWff THE KEBELLIOM. 
 
 CHAPTER II. 
 
 I AM RUDELY AWAKENED FROM DREAMS OP HOME I Go on 
 PICKET THE FOE ADVANCES A DESPERATE CONFLICT 
 THE UNION- CONFEDERATE BREAKFAST ON THE ALABAMA RACE 
 TRACK A FRIENDLY PARTING 
 
 The careful readers of this history have no doubt been 
 worried about the manner in which the first chapter closed, 
 leaving me hanging to a limb of a tree, like Absalom weep 
 ing for her children, my horse having gone out from under 
 me. But I have not been hanging there all this time. 
 The soldiers took me down, and caught my horse, and the 
 regiment dismounted and a council of war was held. 1 
 suppose it was a council of war, as I noticed the officers 
 were all in a group under a tree, with a candle, examining 
 a map, and drinking out of a canteen. I had read of 
 councils of war, but I had never seen one, and so I walked 
 over to the crowd of officers and asked the colonel if there 
 was anything particular the matter. I never saw a crowd 
 of men who seemed so astonished as those officers were, 
 and suddenly I felt myself going away from where they 
 were consulting, with somebody s strong hand on my 
 collar, and an unmistakable cavalry boot, with a man in it, 
 in the vicinity of my pantaloons. I do not know to this 
 day, which officer it was that kicked me, but I went away 
 and sat under a tree in the dark, so hungry that I was near 
 dead, and I wished I was dead. I guess the officers wished 
 that I was, too. The soldiers tried to console me by tell 
 ing me I was too fresh, but I couldn t see why a private 
 
22 HOW PRIVATE GEOEGE W. PECK 
 
 soldier, right from home, who knew all about the public 
 sentiment at the north in regard to the way the war was 
 conducted, should not have a voice in the consultations of 
 officers. I had written many editorials before I left home, 
 criticising the manner in which many generals had handled 
 their commands, and pointed out to my readers how defeat 
 could have been turned into victory, if the generals had 
 done as I would have done in their places. It seemed to 
 me the officers of my regiment were taking a suicidal course 
 in barring me out of their consultations. A soldier had 
 told me that we were lost in the woods, and as I had 
 studied geography when at school, and was well posted 
 about Alabama, it seemed as though a little advice from me 
 would be worth a good deal. But I concluded to let them 
 stay lost forever before I would volunteer any information. 
 It was crawling along towards midnight, of my first day in 
 the army, and I had eaten nothing since morning. As I 
 sat there under the tree I fell asleep, and was dreaming of 
 home, and warm biscuit, with honey, and a feather bed, 
 when I was rudely awakened by a corporal who told me to 
 mount. I asked him what for, and told him that I didn t 
 want to ride any more that night. What I wanted was to 
 be let alone, to sleep. He said to get on the horse too 
 quick, and I found there was no use arguing with a com 
 mon corporal, so the boys hoisted me on to the horse, and 
 about nine of us started off through the woods in the 
 moonlight, looking for a main road. The corporal was 
 kind enough to say that as soon as we found a road we 
 would put out a picket, and send a courier back to the 
 regiment to inform the colonel that we had got out of 
 tke woo4s,| &n4 t}ie rest pf m would, lay dpwu and gjep till 
 
PUT DOWK THE KEBELLION. 23 
 
 morning. I don t think I was ever so anxious to see a 
 road in all my life, because I did want to lay down and 
 sleep, and die. 0, if I could have telegraphed home, how 
 I would have warned the youth of the land to beware of 
 the allurements held out by recruiting officers, and to let 
 war alone. In an hour or so we came to a clearing, and 
 presently to a road, and we stopped. The corporal detailed 
 me to go up the road a short distance and stand picket on 
 my horse. That was not what I had expected of the cor 
 poral. I used to know him before the war when he worked 
 in a paint shop in a wagon factory, and I had always 
 treated him well, and it seemed as though he ought to 
 favor me by letting somebody else go on picket. I told 
 him that the other boys were more accustomed to such 
 work than I was, and that I would resign in their favor, 
 because what I wanted was rest, but he said I would have 
 to go, and he called me " Camp and Garrison Equipage/ 
 because I carried so much luggage on my horse, a name 
 that held to me for months. I found that there was no 
 use kicking against going on picket duty that night, though 
 I tried to argue with the corporal that it would be just as 
 well to all lay dawn and sleep till morning, and put out a 
 picket when it got light enough to see. I was willing to 
 work during the day time for the government, but it 
 seemed as though it was rushing things a little to make a 
 man work day and night for thirteen dollars a month. So 
 the corporal went out on the road with me about a quarter 
 of a mile, and placed me in position and gave me my in 
 structions. The instructions were to keep a sharp lookout 
 up and down the road for Confederate cavalry, and if 1 
 saw Anybody approaching to sing out "halt I " f*a4 }l * 
 
24 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 party did not halt to shoot him, and then call for the cor 
 poral of the guard, who would come out to see what was 
 the matter. I asked him what I should do if anybody 
 came along and shot me, and he said that would be all 
 right, that the boys would come out and bury me. He 
 said I must keep awake, for if I got to sleep on my post 
 I would be court-martialed and shot, and then he rode 
 away and left me alone, on a horse that kept whinnying, 
 and calling the attention of possible Confederates to my 
 position. 
 
 I do not think any reader of these papers will envy me 
 the position I was in at that time. If I remained awake, 
 I was liable to be killed by the enemy, and if I fell asleep 
 on my post I would be shot anyway. And if I was not 
 killed, it was probable I would be a murderer before morn 
 ing. Hunger was gnawing at my stomach, and the horse 
 was gnawing at my legs, and I was gnawing at a hard tack 
 which I had found in the saddle-bag. Every little while 1 
 would hear a noise, and my hair would raise my hat up, 
 and it would seem to me as though the next minute a 
 volley would be fired at me, and I shrunk down between 
 the piles of baggage on my saddle to be protected from 
 bullets. Suddenly the moon came out from behind a cloud 
 and around a turn in the road a solitary horseman might 
 have been seen coming towards me. I never have seen a 
 horse that looked as high as that horse did. He seemed at 
 least eighteen feet high, and the man on him was certainly 
 twelve feet high. My heart pounded against a tin canteen 
 that I had strung around my shoulder, so I could hear the 
 beating perfectly plain. The man was approaching, and I 
 was trying to think whether I had been instructed to shoot 
 
PUT DOWtf THE REBELLION. 25 
 
 and then call for the corporal of the guard, or call for the 
 corporal and then ask him to halt. I knew there was a 
 halt in my instructions, and wondered if it would not con 
 ciliate the enemy to a certain extent if I would say "Please 
 Halt. " The fact was, I didn t want to have any fuss. If 
 I could have backed my horse up into the woods, and let 
 the man go by, it seemed as though it would save precipi 
 tating a conflict. It is probable that no military man was 
 ever in so tight a place as I was that minute. The enemy 
 was advancing, and I wondered if, when he got near enough, 
 I could say halt," in a commanding tone of voice. I knew 
 enough, then, to feel that to ask the stranger to halt in a 
 trembling and husky voice would give the whole thing 
 away, that I was a recruit and a coward. Ye gods, how I 
 suffered ! I wondered if I could hit a man with a bullet. 
 Before the war I was quite a good shot with a shotgun, 
 shooting into flocks of pigeons and ducks, and I thought 
 what a good idea it would be if I could get that approach 
 ing rebel into a flock. The idea seemed so ridiculous that 
 I laughed right out loud. It was not a hearty, happy 
 laugh, but it was a laugh all the same, and I was proud 
 that I could laugh in the face of danger, when I might be 
 a corpse any minute. The man on the horse stopped. 
 Whether he heard me laugh it is impossible to say, but he 
 stopped. That relieved me a great deal. As he had 
 stopped it was unnecessary for me to invite him to halt. 
 He was welcome to stay there if he wanted to. I argued 
 that it was not my place to go howling around the Southern 
 Confederacy, ordering people to halt, when they had al 
 ready halted. If he would let me alone and stay where he 
 was, what sense was there in picking a quarrel with him ? 
 
26 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 Why should I want to shoot a total stranger, who might 
 have a family at home, somewhere in the South, whf 
 would mourn for him. He might be a dead shot, as man} 
 Southern gentlemen were, and if I went to advising him 
 about halting, it would very likely cause his hot Southern 
 blood to boil, and he would say he had just as much 
 right to that road as I had. If it come right down to the 
 justice of the thing, I should have to admit that Alabama 
 was not my state. Wisconsin was my home, and if I was 
 up there, and a man should trespass on my property, it 
 would be reasonable enough for me to ask him to go away 
 from there, and enforce my request by calling a constable 
 and having him put off the premises. But how did I know 
 but he owned property t aere, and was a tax-payer. I had 
 it all figured out that I was right in not disturbing that 
 rebel, and I knew that I could argue with my colonel for a 
 week, if necessary, on the law points in the case, and the 
 courtesy that I deemed proper between gentlemen, if 
 any complaint was made for not doing my duty. But, 
 lordy, how I did sweat while I was deciding to let him 
 alone if he would let me alone. The war might have been 
 going on now, and that rebel and myself might have been 
 standing there today, looking at each other, if it hadn t 
 been for the action of the fool horse that I rode. My horse 
 had been evidently asleep for some time, but suddenly he 
 woke up, pricked up his ears, and began to prance, and 
 jump sideways like a race horse that is on the track, and 
 wants to run. The horse reared up and plunged, and kept 
 working up nearer to my Southern friend, and I tried to 
 hold him, and keep him still, but suddenly he got the best 
 of me and started towards the other man and horse, and 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 27 
 
 the other horse started, as though some one had said 
 -go."* 
 
 I do not suppose any man on this earth, or any other 
 earth, ever tried to stop a fool horse quite as hard as I did 
 that one. I pulled until my arms ached, but he went for 
 all that was out, and the horse ahead of me was buckling 
 in as fast as he could. I could not help wondering what- 
 would happen if I should overtake that Southern man. 1 
 was gaining on him, when suddenly eight or nine men who 
 were sleeping beside the road, got up and began to shoot 
 at us. They were the friends of the rebel, who believed 
 that the whole Union army was making a charge on them. 
 We got by the shooters alive, and then, as we passed the 
 rickety old judge s stand, I realized that we were on a race 
 track, and for a moment I forgot that I was a soldier, and 
 only thought of myself as a rider of a race horse, and I 
 gave the horse his head, and kicked him, and yelled like a 
 Comanche Indian, and I had the satisfaction of seeing my 
 horse go by the rebel, and I yelled some more. I got a 
 glimpse of my rebel s face as I went by him, and he didn t 
 
 * [Before I get any further on this history of the war, it is necessary to 
 explain. The facts proved to be that my regiment had got lost in the woods, 
 and the scouting party, under the corporal, who had been sent out to find a 
 road, had come upon the three-quarter stretch of an old private race track 
 on a deserted southern plantation, instead of a main road, and I had been 
 placed on picket near the last turn before striking the quarter stretch. A small 
 party of Confederates, who had been out on a scout, and got lost, had come 
 on the track further down, near the judges stand, and they had put a man 
 on picket up near where I was, supposing they had struck the road, and 
 intending to wait until morning so as to find out where they were. My horse 
 was an old race horse, and as soon as he saw the other horse, he was in for a 
 race and the other horse was willing. This will show the situation as well as 
 though I had a race track engraved, showing the positions of the two 
 armies. The Confederates, except the man on picket, were asleep beside the 
 track near the quarter stretch, and our fellows, except myself, were asleeo 
 over by the three-quarter pole.] 
 
28 HOW PEIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 look much more like a fighting man than I did, but he 
 was, for as soon as I had got ahead of him he drew a 
 revolver and began firing at me on the run. I thought 
 that was a mean trick, and spoke to him about it after 
 wards, but he said he only wanted me to stop so he could 
 get acquainted with me. Well, I never could find any 
 bullets in any of the clothes strapped on the back of my 
 saddle, but it did seem to me as though every bullet from 
 his revolver hit very near my vital parts. But a new dan 
 ger presented itself. We were rapidly approaching the 
 corporal and his men, with whose command I belonged, 
 and they would wake up and think the whole Confederate 
 army was charging them, and if I was not killed by the 
 confounded rebel behind me, I should probably be shot all to 
 pieces by our own men. As we passed our men they fired 
 a few sleepy shots towards us, and took to the woods. On 
 went the two night riders, and when the rebel had ex 
 hausted his revolver he began to urge his horse, and passed 
 me, and I drew my revolver and began to fire at him. As 
 we passed the judge s stand the second time a couple of 
 shots from quite a distance in the woods showed that his 
 rebel friends had taken alarm at the frequent charges of 
 cavalry, and had skipped to the woods and were getting 
 away as fast as possible. We went around the track once 
 more, and when near the judge s stand I was right behind 
 him, and his horse fell down and my horse stumbled over 
 him, and I guess we were both stunned. Finally I crawled 
 amt from under my horse, and the rebel was trying to raise 
 up, when I said, " What in thunder you want to chase a 
 man all around the Southern Confederacy for, on a dark 
 night, trying to shoot him?" He asked me to help him 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 29 
 
 up, which I did, when he said, " Who commenced this 
 here chasing? If you had kept whar you was, I wouldn t 
 a had no truck with you." Then I said, "You are my 
 prisoner," and he said, " No, you are my prisoner." I told 
 him I was no hand to argue, but it seemed to me it was 
 about a stand off, as to which was Mother s prisoner. I 
 told him that was my first day s service as a soldier, and I 
 was not posted as to the customs of civilized warfare, but 
 I was willing to wait till daylight, leaving matters just as 
 they were, each of us on the defensive, giving up none of 
 our rights, and after daylight we would play a game of 
 seven-up to see which was the prisoner. That seemed fair 
 to him, and he accepted the situation, remarking that he 
 had only been conscripted a few days and didn t know any 
 more about war than a cow. He said he was a newspaper 
 man from Georgia, and had been taken right from the case 
 in his office before his paper could be got out. I told him 
 I was only a few days out of a country printing office my 
 self, the sheriff having closed out my business on an old 
 paper bill. A bond of sympathy was inaugurated at once 
 between us, and when he limped along the track to the 
 fence, and found that his ankle was hurt by the fall, I 
 brought a bottle of horse liniment out of my saddle-bags, 
 and a rag, and bound some liniment on his ankle. He said 
 he had never seen a Yankee soldier before, and he was glad 
 he had met me. I told him he was the first rebel I had 
 ever met, and I hoped he would be the last, until the war 
 was over. By this time our horses had gone to nibbling 
 grass, as though there were no such thing as war. We 
 could hear occasional bugle calls off in the woods in two 
 directions, and knew that our respective commands had 
 
80 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 gone off and got lost again, so we concluded to camp there 
 till morning. After the excitement was over I began to 
 get hungry, and I asked him if he had anything to eat. 
 He said he had some corn bread and bacon, and he could 
 get some sweet potatoes over in a field. So I built a fire 
 there on the track, and he hobbled oif after potatoes. Just 
 about daylight breakfast was served, consisting of coffee, 
 which I carried in a sack, made in a pot he carried, bacon 
 fried in a half of a tin canteen, sweet potatoes roasted in 
 the ashes, and Confederate corn bread, warmed by holding 
 it over the fire on a sharp stick. My friend, the rebel, sat 
 on my saddle, which I had removed from my horse, after 
 he had promised me on his honor to help me to put it on 
 when it was time to mount. He knew how to put on 
 saddles, and I didn t, and as his ankle was lame I gave him 
 the best seat, he being my guest, that is, he was my guest 
 if I beat him in the coming game of seven-up, which we 
 were to play to see if he was my prisoner, or I was his. It 
 being daylight, I could see him, and study his character, 
 and honestly he was a mighty fine-looking fellow. As we 
 eat our early breakfast I began to think that the recruiting 
 officer was more than half right about war being a picnic. 
 He talked about the newspaper business in the South, and 
 before breakfast was over we had formed a partnership to 
 publish a paper at Montgomery, Ala., after the war should 
 be over. I have eaten a great many first-class meals in m> 
 time, have feasted at Delmonico s, and lived at the bes 
 jiotels in the land, besides partaking pretty fair food camp 
 ing out, where an appetite was worked up by exercise and 
 sporting, but in all my life I have never had anything taste 
 as good as that combination Union-Confederate breakfast 
 
PUT DOWK THI, REBELLION. 31 
 
 on the Alabama race track, beside the judges stand. After 
 the last potato peeling, and the last crumb of corn bread 
 had been "sopped" in the bacon gravy and eaten, we 
 whittled some tobacco off a plug, filled our pipes and leaned 
 up against the fence and smoked the most enjoyable smoke 
 that ever was smoked. After smoking in silence a few 
 minutes my rebel friend said, as he blew the smoke from 
 his handsome mouth, " War is not so unpleasant, after 
 all." Then we fell to talking about the manner in which 
 the different generals on each side had conducted things. 
 He went on to show that if Lee had taken his advice, the 
 Yankees would then be on the run for the North, and I 
 showed him, by a few well-chosen remarks that if I could 
 have been close to Grant, and given him some pointers, 
 that the Confederates would be hunting their holes. We 
 were both convinced that it was a great mistake that we 
 were nothing but private soldiers, but felt that it would 
 not be long before we were called to occupy high places. 
 It seemed to stand to reason that true merit would find its 
 reward. Then he knocked the ashes out of his pipe and 
 said if I had a pack of cards we would go up in the judges 
 stand and play seven-up to see whether I was his prisoner, 
 or he was mine. I wanted to take a prisoner back to the 
 regiment, as I thought it would make me solid with the 
 colonel, and I played a strong game of seven-up, but be 
 fore we got started to playing he suggested that we call it 
 a stand-off, and agree that neither of us should be a pris 
 oner, but that when we got ready to part each should go 
 hunt up his own command, and tell the biggest lie we could 
 think of as to the fight we had had. That was right into 
 my hand, and I agreed, and then my friend suggested that 
 
33 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE TV. 
 
 we play poker for money. I consented and he put up Con 
 federate money, against my greenbacks, ten to one. We 
 played about an hour, and at the close he had won the 
 balance of my bounty, except what I had given to the chap 
 lain for safe keeping, and a pair of pants, and a blouse, and 
 a flannel shirt, and a pair of shoes, which I had on my sad 
 dle. I was rather glad to get rid of some of my extra bag 
 gage, and when he put on the clothes he had won from me, 
 blessed if I wasn t rather proud of him. A man could 
 wear any kind of clothes in the Confederate army, and my 
 rebel looked real comfortable in my clothes, and I felt that 
 it was a real kind act to allow him to win a blue suit that I 
 did not need. If the men of both the armies, and the 
 people of both sections of the distracted country could 
 have seen us two soldiers together, there in the judges 
 stand, peacefully playing poker, while the battles were 
 raging in the East and in the West, they would have felt 
 that an era of good feeling was about to dawn on the coun 
 try. After we had played enough poker, and I had lost 
 everything I had that was loose, I suggested that he sing a 
 song, so he sung the " Bonnie Blue Flag." I did not 
 think it was right for him to work in a rebel song on me, 
 but it did sound splendid, and I forgot that there was any 
 war, in listening to the rich voice of my new friend. When 
 iie got through he asked me to sing something. I never 
 could sing, anyway. My folks had always told me that my 
 voice sounded like a corn sheller, but he urged me at his 
 own peril, and I sung, or tried to, "We ll Hang Jeff Davis 
 to a Sour Apple Tree." I had no designs on Mr. Davis, 
 honestly I hadn t, and it was the farthest thing from my 
 Noughts to hurt the feelings of that young man, but be- 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 33 
 
 fore I had finished the first verse he took his handkerchief 
 out and placed it to his eyes. I stopped and apologized, 
 but he said not to mind him, as he was better now. He 
 -told me, afterwards, in the strictest confidence, that my 
 singing was the worst he ever heard, and gave it as his 
 opinion that if Jeff Davis could hear me sing he would 
 be willing, even anxious, to be hung. If I had been sensi 
 tive about my musical talents, probably there would have 
 been hard feelings, and possibly bloodshed, right there, but 
 I told him I always knew I couldn t sing, and he said that 
 I was in luck. "Well, we fooled around there till about ten 
 o clock in the morning, and decided that we would part, 
 and each seek our respective commands, so I put some more 
 horse liniment on his sprained ankle, and he saddled my 
 horse for me, and after expressions of mutual pleasure at 
 meeting each other, and promises that after the war we 
 would seek each other out, we mounted, he gave three 
 cheers for the "Yanks," and I gave three cheers for the 
 "Johnnies," he divided his plug of tobacco with me, and 
 I gave him the bottle of horse liniment, he turned his horse 
 towards the direction his gray coats had taken the night 
 before, while I turned my horse towards the hole in the 
 woods our fellows had made, and we left the race track 
 where we had fought so gamely, eat so heartily, and played 
 poker so disastrously, to me. As we were each about going 
 into the woods, half a mile apart, he waved his handker 
 chief at me, and I waved mine at him, and we plunged into 
 the forest. 
 
 After riding for an hour or so, alone in the woods, think 
 ing up a good lie to tell about where I had been, and what I 
 had been doing, I heard horses neighing, and presently I 
 
34 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 came upon my regiment, just starting out to hunt me up. 
 The colonel looked at me and said, "Kill the fat prodigal, 
 the calf has got back." 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 35 
 
 CHAPTER 
 
 I DESCRIBE A DEADLY ENCOUNTER AM CONGRATULATED AS A 
 WARRIOR WITH A BIG "W" THE CHAPLAIN GIVES GOOD 
 ADVICE I ATTEND SURGEON S CALL CASTOR OIL OUT OP 
 A DIRTY BOTTLE BACK TO THE CHAPLAIN S TENT I AM 
 WOUNDED IN THE CANTEEN. 
 
 The last chapter of this history left me facing my regi 
 ment, which had started out to hunt me up, after my 
 terrible fight with that Confederate. The colonel rode up 
 to me and shook me by the hand, and congratulated me, 
 and the major and adjutant said they had never expected 
 to see me alive, and the soldiers looked at me as one re 
 turned from the grave, and from what I could gather by 
 the looks of the boys, I was something of a hero, even 
 before I had told my story. The colonel asked me what 
 had become of all the baggage I had on my saddle when I 
 went away, and I told him that I had thrown ballast over 
 board all over the Southern Confederacy, when I was 
 charging the enemy, because I found my horse drew too 
 much water for a long run. He said something about my 
 being a Horse-Marine, and sent me back to my company, 
 telling me that when we got into camp that night he would 
 send for me and I could tell the story of my capture and 
 escape. I rode back into my company, and you never saw 
 such a change of sentiment towards a raw recruit, as there 
 was towards me, and they asked me questions about my 
 first fight. The corporal who had placed me on picket, and 
 stampeded at the first fire, was unusually gracious to me, 
 
36 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 and said when he saw a hundred and fifty rebels conw 
 charging down the road, yelling and firing, he knew it was 
 no place for his small command, so he lit out. He said he 
 supposed of course I was shot all to pieces. I didn t tell 
 him that it was me that did all the yelling, and that there 
 was only one rebel, and that he was perfectly harmless, but 
 I told him that he miscalculated the number of the enemy, 
 as there were, all told, at least five hundred, and that I 
 had killed fourteen that I knew of, besides a number had 
 been taken away in ambulances, wounded. The boys 
 opened their eyes, and nothing was too good for me during 
 that march. We went into camp in the pine woods late in 
 the afternoon, and after supper the colonel sent for me, 
 and I went to his tent. All the officers were there, and as 
 many soldiers as dared crowd around. The colonel said 
 the corporal had reported where he left me, and how the 
 enemy had charged in force, and he supposed that I had 
 been promptly killed. That he felt that he could not hold 
 his position against such immense odds, so he had fallen 
 back slowly, firing as he did so, until the place was too 
 hot for him, and now he wanted to hear my story. I told 
 the colonel that I was new at the business, and may be I 
 did not use the best judgment in the world, by remaining 
 to fight against such odds, but I meant well. I told him 
 I did not wish to complain of the corporal, who no doubt 
 was an able fighter, but it did seem to me that he ought at 
 least to have waited till the battle had actually com 
 menced. I said that the first charge, which stampeded 
 the corporal and his men, was not a marker to what took 
 place afterwards. I said when the enemy first appeared, I 
 dismounted, got behind a tree, and poured a murderous 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 37 
 
 fire into the ranks of the rebels, and that they fell all 
 around. I could not tell how many were killed, but prob 
 ably ten, as I fired eleven shots from my carbine, and I 
 usually calculated on missing one out of ten, when shoot 
 ing at a mark. Then they fell back and I mounted my 
 horse and rode to their right flank and poured it into them 
 red hot from my revolver, and that I saw several fall from 
 their horses, when they stampeded, and I drew my saber 
 and charged them, and after cutting down several, I was 
 surrounded by the whole rebel army and captured. They 
 tied me to the wheel of a gun carriage, and after trying to 
 pump me as to the number of men I had fighting against 
 them, they left me to hold a council of war, when I untied 
 myself, mounted my horse, and cut my way out, and took 
 to the woods. I apologized to the colonel for running 
 away from the enemy, but told him it seemed to me, after 
 the number I had killed,, and the length of time I had 
 held them at bay, it was no more than right to save my 
 own life, as I had use for it in my business. During my 
 recital of the lie I had made up, the officers and soldiers 
 stood around with mouths open, and when I had concluded 
 my story, there was silence for a moment, when the colonel 
 stepped forward and took me by the hand, and in a few 
 well chosen remarks congratulated me on my escape, and 
 thanked me for so valiantly standing my ground against 
 such fearful odds, and he said I had reflected credit upon 
 my regiment, and that hereafter I would be classed as a 
 veteran instead of a recruit. He said he had never known 
 a man to come right from the paths of peace, and develop 
 into a warrior with a big " W" in so short a timfe, T h* 
 other officers congratulated me* and the soldiers said I wa 
 
88 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 a bully boy The colonel treated to some commissary 
 whisky, and then the business of the evening commenced, 
 which I found to be draw poker. I sat around for some 
 time watching the officers play poker, when the chaplain, 
 frho was a nice little pious man, asked me to step outs de 
 the tent, as he wished to converse with me. I went ovt 
 into the moonlight with him, and he took me away fror 
 the tents, under a tree, and told me he had been much i. 
 terested in my story. I thanked him, and said I had been 
 as brief as possible. He said, <f I was interested, because 
 I used to be something of a liar myself, before I reformed, 
 and studied for the ministry." It occurred to me that pos 
 sibly the chaplain did not believe my simple tale, and I 
 asked him if he doubted my story. " That is about the 
 size of it," says he. I told him I was sorry I had not told 
 the story in such a manner that he would believe it, be 
 cause I valued the opinion of the chaplain above all others. 
 He said he had known a good many star liars in his time, 
 some that had national reputations, but he had never seen 
 one that could hold a candle to me in telling a colossal lie, 
 or aggregation of lies, and tell them so easy. I thanked 
 him for his good opinion, and told him that I flattered 
 myself that for a recruit, right fresh from the people, who 
 had never had any experience as a military liar, I had 
 done pretty well. He said I certainly had, and he wa* 
 glad to make my acquaintance. I asked him to promise 
 not to give it away to the other officers, which he did, 
 and then I told him the whole story, as it was, and that I 
 was probably the biggest coward that ever lived, and that 
 1 was only afraid that my story of blood-letting would 
 encourage the officers to be constantly putting me into 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 89 
 
 places of danger, which I did not want to be in. I told 
 him I believed this war could be ended without killing any 
 more men, and cited the fact that I had been a soldier 
 nearly forty-eight hours, and nobody had been killed, and 
 the enemy was on the run. I told the chaplain that if 
 there was one thing I didn t want to see, it was blood. 
 Others might have an insatiable appetite for gore, but I 
 didn t want any at all. I was willing to do anything for 
 this government but fight ; and if he could recommend to 
 me any line of action by which I could pull through with 
 out being sent out to do battle with strangers who could 
 shoot well, I should consider it a favor. AVhat I wanted 
 was a soft job, where there was no danger. The chaplain 
 looked thoughtful a moment, and then took me over to his 
 tent, where he opened a bottle of blackberry brandy. He 
 took a small dose, after placing his hand on his stomach 
 and groaning a little. He asked me if I did not sometimes 
 have a pain under my vest. I told him I never had a pain 
 anywhere. Then he sp^.d I couldn t have any brandy. He 
 said the brandy came from the sanitary commission, and 
 was controlled entirely by the chaplains of the different 
 /egiments, and the instructions were to only use it in case 
 of sickness. He said a great many of the boys had pains 
 regularly, and came to him for relief. He smacked his 
 lips and said if I felt any pain coming on, to help myself 
 to the brandy. It is singular how a pain will sometimes 
 come on when you least expect it. It was not a minute 
 before I began to feel a small pain, not bigger than a 
 manr -:an^.. s^ as - looked at the bottle the pain in 
 creased, and I liaa :o "ell the cnapiain that I must have 
 relief before it was everlastingly too *ate, so ae poureu out 
 
40 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 a dose of brandy for me. I could see that I was becoming 
 a veteran very fast, as I could work the chaplain for sani 
 tary stores pretty early in the game. Well, the chaplain 
 and me had pains off and on, for an hour or two, and be 
 came good friends. He told me of quite a number of 
 methods of shirking active duty, such as being detailed to 
 take care of baggage, acting as orderly, and going to sur 
 geon s call. He said if a man went to surgeon s call, the 
 doctor would report him sick, and he could not be sent out 
 on duty. The next day we went back to our post, where 
 the regiment was stationed, and where they had barracks, 
 that they wintered in, and remained there several weeks, 
 drilling. I was drilled in mounting and dismounting, and 
 soon got so I could mount a horse without climbing on to 
 him from a fence. But the drill became irksome, and I 
 decided to try the chaplain s suggestion about going to 
 surgeon s call. I got in line with about twenty other sol 
 diers, and we marched over to the burgeon s quarters. I 
 supposed the doctor would ta&e each soldier into a private 
 room, feel of his pulse, look at his tongue, and say that 
 what he needed was rest, and give him some powders to be 
 taken in wafers, or in sugar. But all he did was to say 
 " What s the matter ? " and the sick man would tell him, 
 when the doctor would tell his assistant to give the man 
 something, and pass on to the next. I was the last one to 
 be served, and the interview was about as follows : 
 
 Doc. What s the matter? " 
 
 Me Bilious. 
 
 Doc. Run out your tongue. Take a swallow out of 
 the black bottle. 
 
 That seems very simple, indeed, but it nearly killed 
 
GREAT 
 
 BOW IT DID TASTE/ 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 41 
 
 me. When he told me to run out my tongue, I run out 
 perhaps six inches of the lower end of it, the doctor glanced 
 at it as though it was nothing to him anyway, and then he 
 told me to take a swallow out of the bottle. In all my 
 life I had never taken four doses of medicine, and when I 
 did the medicine was disguised in preserves or something. 
 The hospital steward handed me the bottle that a dozen 
 other sick soldiers had drank out of, and it was sticky all 
 around the top, and contained something that looked like 
 castor oil, for greasing a buggy. He told me to take a 
 good big swallow, and I tried to do so. Talk about the 
 suffering brought on by the war, it seems to me nobody 
 ever suffered as I did, trying to drink a swallow of that 
 castor oil out of a two quart bottle, that was dirty. It 
 run so slow that it seemed an age before I got enough to 
 swallow, and then it seemed another age before the oil 
 could pass a given point in my neck. And great Caesar s 
 ghost how it did taste. I think it went down my neck, 
 and I just had strength enough to ask the steward to give 
 me something to take the taste out of my mouth. He 
 handed me a blue pill. 0, I could have killed him. I 
 rushed to the chaplain s tent and took a drink of black 
 berry brandy, and my life was saved, but for three years 
 after that I was never sick enough to get farther than the 
 chaplain s quarters. 
 
 I suppose the meanest trick that was ever played on a 
 raw recruit, was played on me while we were in camp at 
 that place. It seemed to me that some of the boys got 
 jealous of me, because I had become a hero, accidentally. 
 May be some of them did not believe I had killed as many 
 of the enemy as I had owned up to having killed. Any- 
 
42 HOW PKIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 way every little while some soldier would say that he 
 thought it was a mean man that would go out and kill a , 
 lot of rebels and not bury them. He said a man that would 
 do that was a regular pot-hunter, who killed game and left 
 it on the ground to spoil. They made lots of such un 
 charitable remarks, but I did not pay much attention to 
 to them. I had a tent-mate who took a great interest in 
 me, and he said no soldier s life was safe who did not wear 
 a breast-plate, and he asked me if I did not bring any 
 breast-plate with me. I told him I never heard of a breast 
 plate, and asked him what it was. He said it was a vest 
 made of the finest spring steel, that could be worn under 
 the clothes, which was so strong that a bullet could not 
 penetrate it. He supposed of course I had one, when he 
 heard of the fight I had, and said none of the old boys 
 would go into a fight without one, as it covered the vital 
 parts, and saved many a life. I bit like a bass. If there 
 was anything I wanted more than a discharge, it was a 
 breast-plate. If the chaplain should succeed in getting me 
 a soft job, where there was no danger, I could get along with 
 out my breast-plate, but there was no sure thing about the 
 chaplain, so I asked the soldier where I could get a breast 
 plate. He said the quartermaster used to issue them, but 
 he didn t have any on hand now, but he said he knew 
 tyhere there was one that once belonged to a soldier who 
 was killed, and he thought he could get it for me. I asked 
 him how it happened that the soldier was killed, when he 
 had a breast-plate, and he told me the man was killed by 
 eating green peaches. Of course I couldn t expect a breast 
 plate to save me from the effects of eating unripe fruit, 
 and J felt that if it would save me from bullets it would be 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 43 
 
 worth all it cost, so I told the soldier to get it for me. 
 That evening he brought it around, and he helped me put 
 it on. I learned afterwards that it was an old breast-plate 
 that an officer had brought to the regiment when the war 
 broke out, and that it had been played on raw recruits for 
 two years. After I had got it on, the soldier suggested 
 that we go out with several other dare devils, and run the 
 guard and go down town and play billiards, snd have a 
 jolly time. I asked him if the guard would not shoot at 
 us, and he said the guards would be all right, and if they 
 did shoot they would shoot at the breast-plates, as all the 
 boys had them on. So about six of us sneaked through 
 the guards, went to town and had a big time, and came 
 back along towards morning, each with a canteen of 
 whisky. It was not easy getting back inside the lines, as 
 the moon was shining, but we got by the guards, and then 
 my friends suggested that we take our breast-plates off and 
 put them on behind us, as the guards, if they shot at all, 
 would be firing in our rear. I took mine off and put it on 
 behind my pants, and just then somebody fired a gun, and 
 the boys said f run/ and I started ahead, and the firing 
 continued, and about every jump I could hear and feel 
 something striking my breast-plate behind, which seemed 
 to me to be bullets,, and I was glad I had the breast-plate 
 on, though afterwards I found that the boys behind me 
 wore firing off their revolvers in the air, and throwing 
 small stones at my breast-plate. Presently a bullet, as I 
 supposed, struck me in the back above the breast-plate, 
 and I could feel blood trickling down my back, and I 
 knew I was wounded. 0, I hankered for gore, before en 
 listing, and while editing a paper, and now I had got it, 
 
44 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE \V. PECK 
 
 got gore till I couldn t rest. The blood run down my 
 side, down my leg, into my boot, and I could feel I was 
 wading in my own blood. And great heaven s, how it diu 
 smell. I had never smelled blood before, that I knew of. 
 and I thought it had the most peculiar, pungent, intox 
 icating odor. I ran towards my quarters as fast as possible, 
 fainting almost, from imaginary loss of blood, and finally 
 rushed into my tent, threw myself on my bunk and called 
 loudly for the doctor and chaplain, and then I fainted. 
 When I came to I was surrounded by the doctor, and a lot 
 of the boys, all laughing, and the chaplain was trying to say 
 something pious, while trying to keep a straight face. "Have 
 you succeeded in staunching the blood, doc?" I asked, in a 
 trembling voice. He said the blood was quite staunch, but 
 the whisky could never be saved. I did not know what he 
 meant, and I turned to the chaplain and asked him if he 
 wouldn t be kind enough to say something appropriate to the 
 occasion. I told him I had been a bad man, had lied some, 
 as he well knew, and had been guilty of things that would 
 bar me out of the angel choir, but that if he had any influence 
 at the throne of grace, and could manage to sneak me in 
 under the canvass anyway, he could have the balance of 
 my bounty, and all the pay that might be coming to me. 
 The chaplain held up the breast- plate that had been re 
 moved by kind hands, from the back portion of my person, 
 and said I had better take that along with me, as it would 
 be handy to wear when I wanted to stand with my back to 
 the fire in hades. I could not understand why the good 
 man should joke me, on my death bed, and I rolled over 
 with my back to the wall, to weep, unobserved, and I felt 
 the blood sticking to my clothes and person, and I asked 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION". 45 
 
 the doctor why he did not dress my wound. He said he 
 should have to send the wound to tlie tin-shop to be dressed, 
 and then they all laughed. This made me indignant, and 
 I turned over and faced the crowd, and asked them if they 
 had no hearts, that they could thus mock at a dying man. 
 The doctor held up my canteen with a hole in it, made by 
 a stone thrown by one of my companions, and said, " You 
 d d fool, you are not wounded. Somebody busted your 
 canteen, and the whiskey run down your leg and into your 
 boot, and you/ like an idiot, thought it was your life blood 
 ebbing away. Couldn t you tell that it was whiskey by the 
 smell ?" I felt of myself, where I thought I was wounded, 
 and couldn t find any hole, and then I took off my boot, 
 and emptied the whisky out, and felt stronger, and finally 
 t got up, and the boys went away laughing at me, leaving 
 the chaplain, who was kind enough to tell me that of all 
 the raw recruits that had ever come to the regiment, he 
 thought I was the biggest idiot of the lot, to let the boys 
 play that ancient breast-plate and canteen joke on me. I 
 asked him if the boys didn t all wear breast-plates, and he 
 said "naw! " He told me that was the only breast-plate in 
 the whole Department of the Gulf, and it was kept to play 
 on recruits, and that I must keep it until a new recruit 
 came that was green enough to allow the boys to do him 
 up. So I hid the breast-plate under my bunk, and went 
 to bed and tried to dream out some method of getting even 
 with my persecutors, while the chaplain went out, after 
 offering to hold himself in readiness, day or night, to come 
 and pray for me, if I was wounded in the canteen any 
 more. 
 
HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 CHAPTER IV. 
 
 I YEARN FOR A FURLOUGH -I INTERVIEW THE GENERAL I AM 
 DETAILED TO CARRY A RAIL I MAKE A HORSE-TRADE WITH 
 THE CHAPLAIN I AM PUT IN CHARGE OP A FUNERAL. 
 
 I had now been fighting the battles of my country for 
 two weeks, and felt that I needed rest, and one day I 
 became so homesick that it did seem as though it would 
 kill me. Including the week it had taken me to get from 
 home to my regiment, three weeks had elapsed since I bid 
 good-bye to my friends, and I wanted to go home. I 
 would lay awake nights and think of people at home and 
 wonder what they were doing, and if they were laying 
 awake nights thinking of me, or caring whether I was 
 alive, or buried in the swamps of the South. It was about 
 the time of year when at home we always went off shoot 
 ing, and I thought how much better it was to go off shoot 
 ing ducks and geese, and chickens, that could not shoot 
 back, than to be hunting bold, bloodthirsty Confederates, 
 that were just as liable to hunt us, and who could kill, 
 with great ease. I thought of a pup I had at home that 
 was just the right age to train, and that he would be 
 spoiled if he was not trained that season. 0, how I did 
 want to train that pup. The news that one of my com 
 rades had been granted a furlough, after three years ser 
 vice, and that he was going home, made me desperate, and 
 I dreamed that I had waylaid and murdered the fortunate 
 and gone bpm$ on hi furlough. The idea of get- 
 
PUT DOWN- THE REBELLION. 47 
 
 ting a furlough was the one idea in my mind, and the next 
 morning as I took my horse to the veterinary surgeon for 
 treatment,* I had a talk with the horse doctor about the 
 possibilities of getting a furlough. I had known him 
 before the war, when he kept a livery stable, and as I 
 owed him a small livery bill, I thought he would give it to 
 me straight. The horse doctor had his sleeves rolled up, 
 and was holding a horse s tongue in one hand while he 
 poured some medicine down the animal s throat out of a 
 bottle with the other hand, which made me sorry for the 
 horse, as I remembered my experience at surgeon s call, i 
 drinking a dose of castor oil out of a bottle, and I was 
 mean enough to be glad they played it on horses as well as 
 the soldiers. The horse doctor returned the horse s tongue 
 to it s mouth, kicked the animal in the ribs, turned and 
 wiped his hands on a bale of hay, and said : 
 
 "Well, George, to get a furlough a man has got to 
 have plenty of gall, especially a man who has only been to 
 the front a couple of weeks. There is no use making an 
 application in the regular way, to your captain, have him 
 endorse it and send it to regimental headquarters, and so 
 on to brigade headquarters, because you would never hear 
 of it again. My idea would be for you to go right to the 
 
 *I neglected to say, in my account of the battle at the race-track, that 
 when firing with my revolver, at my friend the rebel, I put one bullet-hole 
 through the right ear of my horse. I was so excited at the time that I did 
 not k?iow it, and only discovered it a week later when currying off my 
 horse, which I made a practice of doing once a week, with a piece of barrel- 
 stave, when I noticed the horse s ear was swelled up about as big as a canvas 
 ham. I took him to the horse doctor, who reduced the swelling so we could 
 find the hole through the horse s ear, and the horse doctor tied a blue ribbon 
 in the hole. He said the blue ribbon would help heal the sore, but later I 
 found that he had put the ribbon in the ear to call attention to my poor 
 marksmanship, and the boys got so they ma,de comments and laughed at ra0 
 every time I appeared with the horse. 
 
48 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 general eommanding the division, and tell him you have 
 got to go home. But you mustn t go crawling to him, and 
 whining. He is a quick-tempered man, and he hates a. 
 coward. Go to him and talk familiar with him, and act 
 as though you had always associated with him, and slap 
 him on the shoulder, and make yourself at home. Just 
 make up a good, plausible story, and give it to him, and if 
 he seems irritated, give him to understand that he can t 
 frighten you, and just as likely as not he will give you a 
 furlough. I don t say he will, mind you, but it would be 
 just like him. But he does like to be treated familiar like, 
 by the boys." 
 
 I thanked the horse doctor and went away with my 
 horse, resolved to have a furlough or know the reason why. 
 The general s headquarters were about half a mile from our 
 camp, and after drill that morning I went to see him. I 
 had seen him several times, at the colonel s headquarters, 
 and he always seemed mad about something, and I had 
 thought he was about the Grossest looking man I ever saw, 
 but if there was any truth in what the horse doctor had 
 told me, he was easily reached if a man went at him right, 
 and I resolved that if pure, unadulterated cheek and mon 
 umental gall would accomplish anything, I would have a 
 furlough before night, for a homesicker man never lived 
 than I was. I went up to the general s tent and a guard 
 halted me and asked me what I wanted, and I said I 
 wanted to see "his nibs," and I walked right by the 
 guard, who seemed stunned by my cheek. I saw the gen 
 eral in his tent, with his coat off, writing, and he did look 
 savage. Without taking off my hat, or saluting him, I 
 went right up to him and sat down on the end of a trunk 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 41 
 
 that was in the tent, and with a tremendous effort to look 
 familiar, I said : 
 
 " Hello, Boss, writing to your girl ? " 
 
 I have seen a good many men in my time who werl 
 pretty mad, but I have never seen a man who appeared to 
 be as mad as the general did. He was a regular army offi 
 cer, I found afterwards, and hated a volunteer as he did 
 poison. He turned red in the face and pale, and I 
 thought he frothed at the mouth, but may be he didn t. 
 He seemed to try to control himself, and said through his 
 clenched teeth, in a sarcastic manner, I thought, in imita 
 tion of a ring master in a circus : 
 
 " What will the little lady have next ? " 
 
 I had been in circuses myself, and when the general 
 said that I answered the same as a clown always does, and, 
 I said : 
 
 " The banners, my lord." 
 
 I thought he would be pleased at my joking with him, 
 but he looked around as though he was seeking a revolver 
 or a saber with which to kill me. Finally he said : 
 
 "What do you want, man ?" 
 
 It was a little tough to be called plain " man," but I 
 swallowed it. I made up my mind it was time to act, so I 
 stood up, put my hand on the shoulder of the general 
 familiarly, and said : 
 
 " The fact is, old man, I want a furlough to go home. 
 I have got business that demands my attention; I am sick 
 of this inactivity in camp, and besides the shooting season 
 is just coming on at home, and I have got a setter pup 
 that will be spoiled if he is not trained this season. I 
 ciown. here two weeks ago, to help put down the 
 
60 H P W PKIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 rebellion; but all we have done since I got here is to 
 monkey around drilling and cleaning off horses, while tne 
 officers play poker for red chips. Let me go home till the 
 poker season is over, and I will be back in time for the 
 fall fighting. What do you say, old apoplexy. Can I go ? " 
 I do not now, and never did know, how I got out of 
 the general s tent, whether he kicked me out, or threw his 
 trunk at me, or whether there was an explosion, but when 
 I got outside there were two soldiers trying to untangle me 
 from the guy ropes of the general s tent, his wash basin 
 and pail of water were tipped over, and a cord that was 
 strung outside with a lot of uniforms, shirts, sabers, etc., 
 had fallen down, and the general was walking up and down 
 his tent in an excited manner, calling me an escaped luna 
 tic, and telling the guards to tie me up by the thumbs, and 
 buck and gag me. They led me away, and from their con 
 versation I concluded I had committed an unpardonable 
 offense, and would probably be hung, though I couldn t 
 feee as I had done much more than the horse doctor told 
 me to. Finally the officer of the day came along and told 
 the guards to get a rail and make me carry it. So they 
 got a rail and put it on my shoulder, and I carried it up 
 and down the camp, as a punishment for insulting the 
 general. I thought they picked out a pretty heavy rail, 
 but I carried it the best I could for an hour, when I threw 
 it down and told the guards I didn t enlist to carry rails. 
 If the putting down of this rebellion depended on carry 
 ing fence rails around the Southern Confederacy, and I 
 had to carry the rails, the aforesaid rebellion never would 
 be put down. I said I would fight if I had to, and be a 
 hostler, and cook my own food, and sleep on the ground, 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 51 
 
 and try to earn my thirteen dollars a month, but there 
 must be a line drawn somewhere, and I drew it at trans 
 porting fences around the sunny South. The guards were 
 inclined to laugh at my determination, but they said I 
 could carry the rail or be tied up by the thumbs; and I 
 said they could go ahead, but if they hurt me I would 
 bring suit against the government. They were fixing to 
 tie me up when the colonel of my regiment rode up to see 
 the general, and he got the guards to let up on me till 
 he could see the general. The general sent for me after 
 the colonel had talked with him, and they called me in 
 and asked me how I happened to be so fresh with the 
 general; and I told them about the horse doctor s advice 
 as to how to get a furlough; and then they both laughed, 
 and said I owed the horse doctor one, and I must get 
 even with him. The colonel told the general who I was, 
 that he had known me before the war, and that I was all 
 right only a little green, and that the boys were having 
 fun with me. The colonel told the general about my first 
 fight the first day of my service, and how I had, single- 
 handed, put to flight a large number of rebels, and the 
 general got up and shook hands with me, and said he for 
 gave me for my impertinence, and gave me some advice 
 about letting the boys play it on me, and said I might go 
 back to my company. He was all smiles, and insisted on 
 my taking a drink with himself and the colonel. When I 
 was about leaving his tent, I turned to him and said: 
 
 " Then I don t get any furlough?" 
 
 " Not till the cruel war is over," said the general, with 
 a laugh, and 1 went away. 
 
 The guards treated me like a gentleman when they 
 
52 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 saw me taking a drink with the general, and I went back 
 to my regiment, resolved not to go home, and to get even 
 with the horse doctor for causing me to make a fool of 
 myself. However, I was glad I visited the general, for, 
 after getting acquainted with him, he seemed a real nice 
 man, and he kept a better article of liquor than the chap 
 lain. 
 
 For several days nothing occurred that was worthy of 
 note, except that the chaplain took a liking to my horse, 
 and wanted to trade a mule for him. I never did like a 
 mule, and didn t really want to trade, but the chaplain 
 argued his case so eloquently that I was half persuaded. 
 He said the horse I rode, from its friskiness, and natural 
 desire to "get there, Eli!" would eventually get me killed, 
 for if I ever got in sight of the enemy the horse would 
 rush to the front, and I couldn t hold him. He said he 
 didn t want to have me killed, and with the mule there 
 would be no danger, as the mule knew enough to keep 
 away from a fight. The chaplain said he had always rode 
 a mule, because he thought the natural solemnity of a 
 mule was in better keeping with a pious man, but lately 
 he had begun to go into society some, in the town near 
 where we were camped, and sometimes had to preach to 
 different regiments, so he thought he ought to have a 
 horse that put on a little more style, and as he knew I 
 wanted an animal that would keep as far from the foe as 
 possible, and not lose its head and go chasing around after 
 rebels, and running me into danger, as my spiritual ad 
 viser he would recommend the mule to me. He warranted 
 the mule sound in every particular, and as a mule was 
 worth more than a horse he would trade with me for te, 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 53 
 
 dollars to boot. He said there was not another man in the 
 regiment he would trade with on such terms, but he had 
 taken a liking to me, and would part with his mule to me, 
 though it broke his heart. At home there was a sentiment 
 against trading horses with a minister, as men who did so 
 always got beat, but 1 thought it would be an insult to the 
 chaplain to refuse to trade, when he seemed to be working 
 for my interests, to prevent me from being killed in a fight 
 by the actions of my horse, so I concluded to trade, 
 though it seemed to me that if I couldn t shoot off a horse 
 without hitting its ears, I would fill a mule s ears full of 
 bullets. I spoke to the chaplain about that, and he said 
 there was no danger, because whenever fighting com 
 menced the mule always wore his ears lopped down below 
 the line of fire. He said the mule had been trained to 
 that, and I would find him a great comfort in time of 
 trial, and a sympathizing companion always, one that I 
 would become attached to. I told him there was one 
 thing I wanted to know, and that was if the mule would 
 kick. I had always been prejudiced against mules because 
 they kicked. He said he knew mules had been traduced, 
 and that their reputations were not good, but he believed 
 this mule was as free from the habit of kicking as any 
 mule he had ever met. He said he would not deny that 
 this mule could kick, and in fact he had kicked a little, 
 but he would warrant the mule not to kick unless some 
 thing unusual happened. He said I wouldn t want a mule 
 that had no individuality at all, one that hadir t sand 
 enough to protect itself. What I wanted, the chaplain 
 said, was a mule that would treat everybody right, but 
 that would, if imposed upon, stand up for its rights and 
 
14 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 kick. I told the chaplain that was about the kind of 
 mule- 1 wanted, if I had any mule at all, and we traded. 
 The chaplain rode off to town on my horse, on a canter, 
 as proud as a peacock, while I climbed on to the solemn, 
 lop-eared mule and went out to drill with my company. I 
 do not know what it was that went wrong with the mule 
 while we were drilling, but as we were wheeling in com 
 pany front, the mule began to " assert his individuality," 
 as the chaplain said he probably would, and he whirled 
 around sideways and kicked three soldiers off their horses; 
 then he backed up the other way and broke up the second 
 platoon, kicked four horses in the ribs, stampeded the 
 company, and stood there alone kicking at the air. The 
 major rode down to where I was and began to swear at me, 
 but I told him I couldn t help it. He told me to dismount 
 and lead the mule away, but I couldn t dismount until the 
 mule stopped kicking, and he seemed to be wound up for 
 all day. The major got too near and the mule kicked him 
 on the shin, and then started for the company again, which 
 had got into ranks, kicking all the way, and the company 
 broke ranks and started for camp, the mule following, 
 kicking and braying all the way. I never was so helpless 
 in all my life. The more I spurred the mule, the more it 
 kicked, and if I stopped spurring it, it kicked worse. 
 When we got to camp, I fell off some way, and rushed into 
 the chaplain s tent, and the mule kicked the tent down, 
 and some boys drove the mule away, and while I was fixing 
 up the tent the chaplain came back looking happy, and 
 asked me how I liked the mule. I never was a hypocrite, 
 anyway, and I was mad, so I said: 
 "Oh, dam that mule!" 
 
PUT DOWN THE EEBELLION. 55 
 
 Of course it is wrong to use such language, especially 
 in the presence of a minister, but I couldn t help it. I 
 could see it hurt the chaplain, for he sighed and said he 
 was sorry to hear such words from me, inasmuch as he had 
 just got me detailed as his clerk, where I would have a soft 
 thing, and no drilling or fighting. He said he had wanted 
 a clerk, one who was a good-hearted, true man, and he 
 had picked me out, but if I used such language, that set 
 tled it. He said he didn t expect to find a private soldier 
 that was as pious as he was, but he did think I would be 
 the best man he could find. I wanted a soft job, with no 
 fighting, as bad as any man ever did, and I told the chap 
 lain that he need not fear as to my swearing again, as it 
 was foreign to my nature, but I told him if he had been 
 on the hurricane deck of a kicking mule for an hour, and 
 seen comrades fall one by one, and bite the dust, and be 
 carried off with marks of mule shoes all over their persons, 
 he would swear, and I would bet on it. So it was arranged 
 that I was to be the chaplain s clerk, and I moved my out 
 fit over to his tent, and for the first time since I had been 
 a soldier, I was perfectly happy. There was no danger of 
 being detailed for guard duty, police duty, drilling, or 
 fighting, and the only boss I had was the chaplain. The 
 chaplain and myself sat that evening in his tent, and ate 
 sanitary stores, drank wine for sickess, and smoked pipes, 
 and didn t care whether school kept or not, and that night 
 I slept on a cot, and had the first good night s rest, and in 
 the morning I awoke refreshed, and with no fear of or 
 derly sergeants, or anybody. I had a soft snap. 
 
 The next morning I asked the chaplain what my duties 
 were to be, and he said I was to take care of the tent, 
 
56 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 write letters for him, issue sanitary stores to deserving 
 soldiers who might need them, ride with him sometimes 
 when he went to town, or to preach, go to funerals with 
 him occasionally, set a good example to the other soldiers, 
 and make myself generally useful. He said I would have 
 to attend to the burial of the colored people who died, and 
 any such little simple details. He went out and left me 
 pondering over my duties. I liked it all except the nigger 
 funerals. I had always been a Democrat, at home, and 
 not very much mashed on our colored brothers, and one 
 thing that prevented me from enlisting before T did was 
 the idea of making the colored men free. I had nothing 
 against a colored man, and got to think a great deal of 
 them afterwards, but the idea of acting as an undertaker 
 for the colored race never occurred to me. I made up my 
 mind to kick on that part of the duties, when the chap 
 lain came in and said the colored cook of one of the com 
 panies was dead, and would be buried that afternoon, and 
 as he had to go to a meeting of chaplains down town, I 
 would have to go and conduct the services, and I better 
 prepare myself with a little speech. I was in a fix. I told 
 the chaplain that it might not have occurred to him, but 
 honestly, I couldn t pray. He paid that didn t make anj 
 difference. I told him I could i t preach hardly at all 
 He said I didn t need to. All I had to do was to go am, 
 find out something about the life of the deceased, what, 
 kind of a man he was, and say a few words at the grave 
 complimentary of him, console the mourners, if there were 
 any, and counsel them to try to lead a different life, that 
 they might eventually enter into the glory of the New 
 Jerusalem, or words to that effect. Well, this made me 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 57 
 
 perspire. This was a tighter place than I was in when I 
 met the rebel. The idea of my conducting the funeral 
 exercises of such a black-burying party, made me tired. 
 The chaplain said a good deal depended on how I got 
 through this first case, as if I succeeded well, it would be 
 a great feather in my cap. His idea, he said, was to try 
 me first on a nigger, and if I was up to snuff, and carried 
 myself like a thoroughbred, there would be nothing too 
 good for me in that regiment. 
 
 I went to the orderly sergeant of the company where 
 the man died, to get some points as to his career, in order 
 to work in a few remarks appropriate to the occasion, and 
 I said to the orderly: 
 
 " I understand your company cook has gone to that 
 bourne from whence no traveler returns." I thought that 
 was pretty good for a green hand, for a starter 
 
 " Yes," said the orderly, as he looked solemn/ "The 
 old son-of-a-gun has passed in his chips, and is now walk 
 ing in green pastures, beside still waters, but he will not 
 r?rink any of the aforesaid still waters, if he can steal any 
 whisky to drink." 
 
 You astonish me," said I to the orderly. <f The fact 
 is, the chaplain has sawed off on to me the duty of seeing 
 to the burial of our deceased friend, and I called to gather 
 some few facts as to his characteristics as a man and a 
 brother. Can you tell me of anything that would inter 
 est those who may attend ? " 
 
 " 0, I don t know," said the orderly. " The deceased 
 was a liar, a thief, and a drunkard. He would steal any 
 thing that was not chained down. He would murder a 
 man for a dollar. He was the worst nigger that ever was. 
 
68 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 If there was a medical college here that wanted bodies, it 
 would be a waste of money to bury him. But when he 
 was sober he could bake beans for all that was out, and 
 there was no man that could boil corned mule so as to take 
 the taste of the saltpetre out, as he could/ 
 
 This was not a very good send off for my first funeral, 
 but I clung to the good qualities possessed by the late 
 lamented. Though he might have been a bad man, all 
 was not lost if he could bake beans well, and boil the salt 
 horse or corned mule that soldiers had to eat, so they were 
 appetizing. Many truly good men of national reputation, 
 could not have excelled him in his chosen specialties, and 
 I made a memorandum of that for future use. I made 
 further inquiries in the company, and found that the de 
 ceased had a bad reputation, owed everybody, had five 
 wives living that he had deserted, and was suspected of 
 having murdered two or three colored men for their 
 money. His death was caused by delirium tremens. He 
 had stole a jug of whisky from the major s tent, laid 
 drunk a week, and when the whisky was gone he had 
 tremens, and had gone to the horse doctor for something 
 to quiet his nerves, and the horse doctor had given him a 
 condition powder to take, to be followed with a swallow of 
 mustang liniment, and the man died. 
 
 This was the information I got to use in my remarks 
 at the grave of the deceased, and I went back to my tent 
 to think it over. I thought perhaps I had better work 
 in the horse doctor for mal-practice, in my discourse, and 
 thus get even with him for sending me to the general 
 after a furlough. While I was thinking over the things I 
 would say, and trying to forget the bad things about the 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 59 
 
 man, the orderly sent word that the funeral cortege was 
 ready to proceed to the bone yard. I looked down the 
 company street and saw the remains being lifted into a 
 cart, and I went out and put the saddle on my mule, and 
 with a mental prayer that the confounded mule wouldn t 
 get to kicking till the funeral was over, started to do the 
 honors at the grave of the late company cook. 
 
60 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 CHAPTER V. 
 
 THE FUNERAL OF THE COLORED COOK I PLEAD FOR A LARGER 
 PROCESSION THE FUNERAL ORATION THE FUNERAL DIS 
 TURBED I AM ARRESTED MY FORTUNATE ESCAPE. 
 
 The last chapter of these celebrated "war papers " 
 closed with me saddling my mule to ride to the funeral of 
 the colored cook, at which I was to act as chaplain. The 
 mule evidently knew that it was a solemn occasion, for 
 there was a mournful look on its otherwise placid face, 
 the ears drooped more than usual, and there seemed a 
 sweet peace stealing over the animal, which well became a 
 funeral, until I began to buckle up the saddle, when the 
 long-eared brute began to paw and kick and bite, and it 
 took six men to get me into the saddle. I rode down the 
 company street where the cart stood with the remains, and 
 a colored driver sitting on the foot of the plain pine box, 
 asleep. I woke the driver up with the point of my saber, 
 when another colored man came out of a tent with a 
 shovel in one hand, and a hardtack with a piece of bacon 
 in the other. He climbed into the cart, sat down on the 
 coffin and began to eat his dinner. This was my funeral. 
 All that seemed necessary for a funeral was a corpse, a 
 driver of a cart, and a man with a shovel. I rode up to 
 the orderly s tent and asked him where the mourners 
 were, and he laughed at me. The idea of mourners 
 seemed to be ridiculous. I had never, in all my life, seen 
 so slim a funeral, and it hurt me. In the meantime the 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 61 
 
 nigger with the shovel had woke up the driver of the cart, 
 and he had followed me, with the remains. I told them 
 to halt the funeral right there, until I could skirmish 
 around and pick up mourners enough for a mess, and a 
 choir, and some bearers. As I rode away to the colonel s 
 tent, the driver of the cart and the man with the shovel 
 were playing " mumbletypeg," with a jack-knife, on the 
 coffin, which shocked me very much, as I was accustomed 
 to living where more respect was paid to the dead. 1 
 went to the colonel s tent and yelled "Say!" The 
 colonel, who was changing his shirt, came to the door 
 with his eyes full of soap, rubbing his neck with a towel, 
 and asked what was the row. I told him I would like to 
 have him detail me six bearers, seven or eight mourners, 
 a few singers, and fifteen or twenty men for a congrega 
 tion. He asked me what on earth I was talking about, 
 and just then the cart with the corpse in was driven up to 
 where I was, the orderly having told the driver to follow 
 me with the late lamented. I pointed to the outfit, and 
 said: 
 
 " Colonel, in that box lie the remains of a colored cook. 
 The chaplain has appointed me to conduct the funeral 
 service, and I find that the two colored men on the cart are 
 the only ones to accompany the remains to their last rest 
 ing place. No man can successfully run a funeral on three 
 niggers, one of whom is dead, one liable to go to sleep any 
 minute, and the other with an abnormal appetite for hard 
 tack. It is a disgrace to civilization to give a dead man 
 such a send oil, and I want you to detail me some men 
 to see me through. I have loaded myself with some inter 
 esting remarks befitting the occasion, anc* I do not want to 
 
62 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE TV. PECK 
 
 fire them off into space, with no audience except these two 
 coons. Give me some mourners and things, or I drop 
 this funeral right where it is." 
 
 While I was speaking the general rode up to visit with 
 the colonel, with his staff, and the colonel came out with 
 his undershirt on, and his suspenders hanging down, and 
 .\e and the general consulted for a minute, and laughed a 
 jHtle, which I thought was disgraceful. Then the colonel 
 p ont for the sergeant-major and told him to detail all the 
 company cooks and officer s servants, to attend the funeral 
 >ith me, and he said I could divide them off into reliefs, 
 letting a few be mourners at a time. In the meantime, he 
 said, I could move my procession off down by the horse- 
 ioctor s quarter s, as he did not want it in front of his tent. 
 That reminded me that the horse-doctor had prescribed 
 for the deceased, and had given him condition powders, 
 and I asked the colonel to compel the horse-doctor to go 
 with me. It had always seemed to me at home that the 
 attending physician, under whose auspices the person died, 
 should attend the funeral of his patient, and when I told 
 the colonel about it, he called the horse-doctor and told 
 him he would have to go. It took half an hour or so tcr 
 get the colored cooks and servants together, but when all 
 was ready to move, it was quite a respectable funeral, ex 
 cept that I could not help noticing a spirit of levity on the 
 part of the mourners. All the followers were mounted, 
 the officer s servant s on officer s horses, and the cooks on 
 mules, and it required all the presence of mind I possessed 
 to keep the coons from turning the sad occasion into a 
 horse race, as they would drop back, in squads, a quarter 
 of a mile or so, and then come whooping up to the cart 
 
PUT DOWN- THE REBELLION. 63 
 
 containing the remains, and each vowing Uiat his horse 
 could clean out the others. I rode in front of the remains 
 with the horse-doctor, and tried to conduct myself in as 
 solemn a manner as befitted the occasion, and tried to 
 reason with the horse-doctor against his unseemly jokes, 
 which he was constantly getting off. He told several 
 stones, hetter calculated for a gathering where bacchana 
 lian revelry was the custom, and I told him that while I 
 respected his calling, he must respect mine. He said 
 something about calling a man on a full hand, against a 
 flush, but I did not pretend to know what he meant. We 
 had to go out of town about two miles, to the cemetery. 
 Unfortunately we were in the watermelon growing section, 
 and the horse-doctor called my attention to the fact that 
 Jhy procession was becoming scarce, when I looked around, 
 and every blessed one of the cooks and servants, and the 
 man with the shovel, had gone off into the field after 
 melons, and I stopped the cart and yelled to them to come 
 back to the funeral. Pretty soon they all rode back, each 
 with a melon under his arm, and every face looked as 
 though there was no funeral that could prevent a nigger 
 from stealing a watermelon. After several stops, to round 
 up my mourners, from corn fields and horse racing, we 
 arrived at the cemetery, and while the grave was being 
 dug the niggers went for the melons, and if it had been a 
 picnic there couldn t have been much more enjoyment. 
 The horse-doctor took out a big knife that he used to bleed 
 horses, and cut a melon, and offered me a slice, and while 
 I did not feel that it was just the place to indulge in melon, 
 it looked so good that I ate some, with a mental reservation, 
 however. It was all a new experience to me* I had never 
 
64 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 believed that in the presence of death, or at a funeral, 
 people could be anything but decorous and solemn. I had 
 never attended a funeral before, except where all present 
 were friends of the deceased, and sorry, but here all seemed 
 different. They all seemed to look upon the thing as a 
 good joke. I had read that in New York and other large 
 cities, those who attended funerals had a horse race on the 
 way back, and stopped at beer saloons and filled up, but I 
 never believed that people could be so depraved. I tried 
 to talk to the coons, and get them to show proper respect 
 for the occasion, but they laughod and threw melon rinds 
 at each other. Finally the colonel and the general, with 
 quite a lot of soldiers, who were out reconnoitering, rode 
 to where we were, and the coons acted a little better, but 
 I could see that the officers were not particularly solemn. 
 They seemed to expect something rich. They evidently 
 looked upon me as a star idiot, who would make some 
 blunder, or say something to make them laugh: I made 
 up my mind that in my new position I would act just as 
 decorous, and speak as kindly as though the deceased was 
 the president. During all my life I had made it a prac 
 tice never to speak ill of any person on earth, and if I 
 could not say a good word for a person I would say nothing, 
 a practice which I have kept up until this writing, with 
 much success, and I decided that the words spoken on that 
 occasion should not reflect against the poor man who had 
 passed in his checks, and laid down the burden of life. 
 The grave was completed, and with a couple of picket 
 ropes the body was let down, and tnere was for a moment 
 a sort of solemnity. I arose, and as near as I can remei 
 her at this late day, spoke about as follows: 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION 65 
 
 : We have met here today to conduct the 
 last rites over a man, who but yesterday was among us 
 but who, in an unguarded moment drank too much 
 whisky, and paid the penalty. (There was a smile percep 
 tible on the faces of the officers.) The ignorant man who 
 died, did not know any better, but I see around me men 
 who know better, but who drink more than this man did, 
 and if they are not careful they will go the same way. 
 (There was less smiling among the officers.) It is said of 
 this man that he was bad, that he would steal. I have 
 investigated, and have found that it is true, but that his 
 peculations consisted of small things, of little value, and I 
 am convinced that the habit was not worse with him than 
 with any of us. In war times, everybody steals. We are 
 all thieves to a certain extent. The soldier will not go 
 hungry if he can jay-hawk anything to eat. The officer 
 will not go thirsty if he can capture whisky, nor will any- 
 body walk if he can steal a horse. The higher a man gets 
 the more he will steal. Shall we harbor unkind thoughts 
 against this dead man for stealing a pair of boots, and 
 honor a general who steals a thousand bales of cotton? 
 (No! no! shouted the cooks and servants, while the officers 
 looked as though they were sorry they attended the fun 
 eral.) Friends let us look at the good qualities of our 
 friend. I say. without fear of successful contradiction, 
 that a man, however humble his station, who can bake 
 beans as well as the remains could bake them, is entitled to 
 a warm place in the heart of every soldier, and if he goes 
 to the land that is fairer than this, and who can say that 
 he will not, he is liable to be welcomed with well done, 
 good and faithful servant/ and he will be received where 
 
S6 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 horse doctors can never enter with their condition powders, 
 and where there will never be war any more. To his family, 
 or several families, as the case may be, I would say " 
 
 At this point I had noticed an uneasiness on the part 
 of my mourners and bearers, as well as the officers. Nine 
 of the negroes fell down on the ground and groaned as if 
 in pain, and the general and his staff looked off to a piece 
 of woods where a few shots had been fired, and rode away 
 hurriedly, the colonel telling me I had better hurry up 
 that funeral or it was liable to be interrupted. The horse- 
 doctor went to the negroes who were sick, and after exam 
 ining them he said they had been poisoned by eating 
 melons that had been doctored, and he advised them to get 
 to town as quick as possible. They scrambled on their 
 horses the best way they could, and just then there was a 
 yell, and out of the woods came half a dozen Union soldiers 
 followed by fifteen or twenty Confederates, and all was con 
 fusion. The niggers scattered towards town, the driver of 
 the cart taking the lead, trying to catch the general and his 
 staff, who were hurrying away, leaving the horse-doctor, 
 myself and the deceased. The horse-doctor seized the 
 shovel and threw a little dirt on the coffin, then mounted 
 his horse, I mounted my mule, and away we went towards 
 town, with the rebels gaining on us every jump. The 
 horse-doctor soon left me, and with a picket I had pulled 
 off the fence of the cemetery, I worked my passage on that 
 mule, I mauled the mule, and the more I pounded the 
 slower it went. There was never a more deliberate mule 
 in the world. I forgot all the solemn thoughts that pos 
 sessed me at the grave, and tried to talk to the mule like a 
 mule-driver, but the animal just fooled along, as though 
 
PUT DOWN TH1 REBELLIOH. 67 
 
 there was no especial hurry. Occasionally I could hear 
 bullets zipping along by me, and the rebels were yelling 
 for all that was out. 0, how I did wish I had my old race 
 horse that the chaplain had beat me out of. In my first 
 engagement my horse was too fast, and there was danger 
 that I would catch my friend, the rebel, and I complained 
 of the horse. Now I had a mule that was too slow. What 
 I wanted was a middling horse, one that was not too con 
 founded fast when after the enemy, and one not so alfired 
 slow when being pursued. The Johnnies were coming 
 closer, but we were only half a mile from town. Would 
 they chase us clear into town? At that critical moment 
 the blasted mule stopped short, never to go again, and 
 began to kick. What on earth possessed that fool mule to 
 take a notion to stop right there and kick, is more than I 
 shall ever know, but it simply kicked, and I felt that my 
 time had come. The Union soldiers that were being chased 
 by the Confederates passed me, and told me I better light 
 out or I would be captured, but I couldn t get the mule to 
 budge an inch. It just kicked. The good Lord only knows 
 what that mule was kicking at, or why it should have been 
 scheduled to stop and kick at that particular time, when 
 every minute was precious. I saw the rebels very near me, 
 and as it was impossible to get the mule to go a step far 
 ther, I raised the large, flat, white- washed picket which I 
 had torn off the cemetery fence to maul the mule with, in 
 token of surrender, and the Confederate boys surrounded 
 me, though they kept a safe distance, after my mule had 
 kicked in the ribs of one of their horses. The rebs had 
 gone about as far towards the town as it was safe to go, and 
 and they knew the whole garrison would be out after them 
 
68 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 pretty soon, so they laughed at me for being armed with a 
 whitewashed picket, and asked me if I expected to put 
 down the rebellion by stabbing the enemy with such 
 things. I told them I had been burying a nigger. One 
 of my captors run the point of his saber into my mule, 
 to stop its kicking, and then he said to his com 
 rades, "Boys, we came out here with the glorious 
 prospect of capturing a Yankee general and his staff, and 
 instead of getting him, we have broken up a nigger funeral 
 and captured the gospel sharp, armed with a picket fence, 
 and a kicking mule. Shall we hang him for engaging in 
 uncivilized warfare, by stabbing us with pickets poisoned 
 with whitewash, or shall we take the red-headed slim-jim 
 back with us as a curiosity." The boys all said not to 
 hang me, but to take me along. I saw that it was all day 
 with me this time. I felt that I was helping put down the 
 rebellion rapidly, as I had been a soldier four weeks, been 
 captured twice, and not a drop of blood had been spilled. 
 The rebels started back, with me and my mule ahead of 
 them, and they kept the mule ahead by jabbing it with 
 a saber occasionally. I felt humiliated and indignant at 
 being called slim-jim, sorrel-top, and elder. They seemed 
 to think I was a preacher. I stood it all until a cuss 
 reached into my pocket and took my meershaum pipe and 
 a bag of tobacco, filled the pipe and lit it, then I was mad. 
 I had paid eight dollars of my bounty for that pipe, and I 
 said to the leader: "Boss, I can stand a joke as well as 
 anybody, but when you capture me, in a fair fight, you 
 have no right to jab my mule with a saber, or call me 
 names. I am a meek and lowly soldier of the army of the 
 *ight, and want to so live that I can meet you all in the 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 69 
 
 great hereafter, but by the gods I can whip the condemned 
 galoot that stole my meershaum pipe. You think I am 
 pious, and a non-combatant, but I am a fighter from away 
 back, and don t you forget it." The young man who 
 seemed to be in command told me to dry up, and he would 
 get my pipe. He went and took it away from the one who 
 had stolen it, filled it and lit it himself, and said it was a 
 good pipe, and then he passed it around among them all. 
 We moved off at a trot, and were getting far away from my 
 regiment, and I realized that I was a captive, and that I 
 should probably die in Andersonville prison. I looked at 
 the dozen stalwart rebels that were riding behind me, and 
 knew I could not whip them all with one picket off the 
 cemetery fence, and so I resolved to remain a captive, and 
 die for my country, of scurvey, if necessary. I turned 
 around in my saddle to ask if it wasn t about time for me 
 to have a smoke out of my own pipe, and as I looked up 
 the road we had come over I saw a large body of our own 
 cavalry, coming like the wind toward us. I said nothing, 
 but my face gave me away. I looked so tickled to see the 
 boys coming that the rebels noticed it, and they looked 
 back and saw the soldiers in pursuit, they yelled, "The 
 Yanks are coming ! " put spurs to their horses, stabbed my 
 mule and told me to pound it with the picket, and hurry 
 up, and then they passed me, and away they went, leaving 
 me in the road alone between them and my own soldiers, 
 I yelled to the leader to give me back my pipe, and I can 
 hear his mocking laugh to this day, as he told me to " go 
 to hell." This made me mad, and drawing my picket I 
 dashed after the retreating rebels, knowing that the men 
 of my regiment would soon overtake me, and they would 
 o 
 
70 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 think I had chased the rebels three miles from town, armed 
 only with a picket off the fence, and saved the garrison 
 from capture. The thing worked to perfection, and when 
 our command came up, the horses panting and perspiring, 
 and the boys looking wild, the captain in command asked 
 me how many there was of em, and I told him about 
 forty, and he said I had done well to drive them so far, and 
 he charged by me after them. I yelled to the captain to 
 try and kill that long-legged rebel on the sorrel horse, and 
 get my meershaum pipe, but he didn t hear me. I hurried 
 along as fast as I could, but before I caught up, there was 
 a good deal of firing, and when I got there flankers were 
 out in the woods, and there was sorrow, for three or four 
 boys in blue had been killed in an ambush, and the rebels 
 had got away across a bayou. As I rode up on my mule, 
 with the picket still in my hand, I saw the three soldiers of 
 my regiment lying dead under a tree, two others were 
 wounded and had bandages around their heads, and for the 
 first time since I had been a soldier, I realized that war was 
 not a picnic. I could not keep my eyes off the faces of my 
 dead comrades, the best and bravest boys in the regiment, 
 boys who always got to the front when there was a skirmish. 
 To think that I had been riding right amongst the rebels 
 who had done this thing but a few minutes before, and 
 never thought that death would claim anybody so soon. I 
 wondered if those rebels were not sorry they had killed 
 such good boys. I wondered, as I thought of the fathers 
 and mothers, and sisters of my dead companions, whether 
 the rebels would not sympathize with them, and then I 
 thought suppose our fellows had not been killed, and we 
 had killed some of the Confederates, wouldn t it have beau 
 
PUT DOWtf THE REBELLION". 71 
 
 just as sorrowful, wouldn t their fathers, mothers and 
 sisters have mourned the same. 
 
 Then I made a resolve that I would never kill anybody 
 if I could help it; I even decided that if I should meet the 
 rebel that had my meershaum pipe, I would not fight him 
 to get it. If he wasn t gentleman enough to give it up 
 peaceably, he could keep it, and be darned. Just then 
 some of our skirmishers came in carrying another dead 
 body, and we were all speculating as to which one of our 
 poor boys had fallen, when we noticed that the dead 
 soldier had on a gray suit, and it was soon found that he 
 was one of the Confederates. He was laid down beside our 
 dead boys, and I don t know but I felt about as bad to see 
 him dead, as it was possible to feel. It is true he had told 
 me, half an hour before, when I asked him for my pipe, to 
 go to hades, but I did not have to go unless I wanted to. 
 And he was gone first. I saw something sticking out o* 
 the breast pocket of the dead Confederate, and could see 
 that it was my pipe. Then I thought of the foolish re 
 mark I made to the captain, to kill that long-legged rebel 
 and get my meershaum. God bless him, I didn t want 
 anybody to kill him for a bad smelling old pipe, and I 
 wondered if that remark would be registered up against 
 me, in the great book above, when I didn t mean it. I 
 tried to make myself believe that my remark did not have 
 any influence on the man s fate. He just took his chances 
 with his comrades, and was killed, no doubt, and yet it was 
 impossible to get the idea off my mind that I was responsi 
 ble for his death. Anyway, I would never touch the con 
 founded old pipe again, and if I ever heard of his mother 
 or sister, after the war was over, I would stand by them as 
 
72 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 long as I had a nickel. An ambulanee was sent for and 
 the dead and wounded were placed in it, and we went back 
 to town, a sad procession. There was no need to detail 
 any mourners for this occasion, and there was no strag 
 gling for watermelons. Everybody was full of sorrow. 
 The next day there was a Union funeral in that Southern 
 town, and the three Union boys were laid side by side, 
 while a little to one side my Confederate was buried, 
 receiving the same kind words from the chaplains. As a 
 volley was about to be fired over the graves, I picked a 
 handful of roses, buds and blossoms, from a rose bush in 
 the cemetery, and went to the grave of the Confederate and 
 tenderly tossed them upon the coffin. The horse doctor 
 saw me do it, and in his rough manner said, 
 
 " What you about there ? It ain t necessary to plant 
 flowers on the graves of rebels." 
 
 " 0, no, it isn t necessary/ I said, as the volley was 
 fired over the graves, "but it will make his mother or his 
 sister feel better to know that there are a few roses in there, 
 and it won t hurt anybody. I will just play that I am the 
 authorized agent of that Confederate soldier s sister." 
 
 "0, all right if you say so," said the horse-doctor, as he 
 drew the sleeve of his blue blouse across his eyes, which 
 were wet. The last volley was fired, and the soldiers re 
 turned to camp, leaving the dead of two armies sleeping 
 together. As I went in the chaplain s tent and sat down 
 to think, the chaplain handed me something, saying: 
 
 " Here s your pipe. They found it on that Confederate 
 soldier that captured you." 
 
 I pushed it away and said, "I don t want it. I have 
 quit smoking." 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION". 73 
 
 CHAPTER VI. 
 
 I CAPTURE " JEFF" I GET BACK AT THE CHAPLAIN- THE CHAP 
 LAIN ARRESTED OFF ON A RAID I MEET THF RELATIVES 
 OF THE DEAD CONFEDERATE MY POWERS OF LYING ARE 
 BROUGHT INTO PLAY. 
 
 The winding up of the last chapter of this history, with 
 its sad incidents, deaths and burials, was unavoidable, but 
 it shall not occur again. The true historian has got to 
 get in all the particulars. I think I never felt quite as down 
 hearted as I did the day or two after the skirmish, when 
 our boys were killed. It had seemed as though there was 
 no danger of anybody getting hurt, as long as they looked 
 out for themselves, but now there was a feeling that any 
 body was liable to be killed, any time, and why not me? 
 Of course the old veterans of the regiment were the ones 
 who would naturally be expected to take the brunt of the 
 battle, but there was a habit of sending raw recruits into 
 places of danger that struck me as being mighty careless, 
 as well as very bad judgment. Then there were great 
 preparations being made for an advance movement, or a 
 retreat, or something, and my mind was constantly occu 
 pied in trying to find out whether it was to be an advance 
 or a retreat. If it was an advance, I wanted to arrange to 
 be in the rear, and if it was a retreat, it seemed to me as 
 as though the proper place for a man who wanted to live 
 to go home, was in front. And yet what chance was there 
 for a common private soldier to find out whether it was an 
 advance or a retreat. Finally I decided that when the 
 
74 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 regiment did start out, I would manage to be about the 
 middle, so it wouldn t make much difference which way 
 we went. When that idea occurred to me I pondered over 
 it a good deal and told the chaplain, and he said it was a 
 piece of as brilliant strategy as he had ever heard of, and 
 he was willing to adopt it, only being a staff officer it was 
 necessary for him and me to ride with the colonel, and the 
 colonel most always rode at the head, though his place was 
 about the middle. He said he would speak to the colonel 
 about it. It made my hair stand to see the preparations 
 that were being made for carnage. Ammunition enough 
 was issued to kill a million men, and the doctors were 
 packing bandages and plasters, and physic, and splints 
 and probes, until it made me sick to look at them. When 
 I thought of actual war, my mind reverted to my mule, 
 the kicking brute that was no good, and I decided to get 
 a horse. I had got so, actually, that I could hear bullets 
 whistle without turning pale and having cold chills run 
 over me, and it seemed as though a horse was none too 
 good for me, so I went to the colonel and told him that a 
 soldier couldn t make no show on a kicking mule and I 
 wanted a horse. I told him I supposed, as chaplain s clerk, 
 I should have to ride with him and his staff, on the march, 
 and he didn t want to see as nice a looking fellow as I was 
 riding a kicking mule that would kick the ribs of the 
 officer s horses, and break the officer s legs. The colonel 
 said he had not thought of that contingency. He had en 
 joyed seeing me ride the mule, because I was so patient 
 when the mule kicked. He said they used that mule in 
 the regiment to teach recruits to ride. A man who could 
 stay on that mule could ride any horse in the regiment, 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 75 
 
 and as I had been successful, and had displayed splendid 
 " mulemanship," I should be promoted to ride a horse, 
 and he told the quartermaster to exchange with me and 
 give me the chestnut-sorrel horse that the Confederate was 
 shot off of. I went with the quartermaster to the corral, 
 turned out my mule, and cornered the beautiful horse that 
 had been rode so proudly a few days before by my friend v 
 the rebel. It took six of us to catch the horse, and bridle 
 and saddle him, and the men about the corral said the 
 horse was no good. He hadn t eaten anything since being 
 captured, and his eyes looked bad, and he wanted to kick 
 and bite everybody. I told them the poor horse was home 
 sick, that was all that ailed him. The horse was a Con 
 federate at heart, and he naturally had no particular love 
 for Yankees. I remembered that once or twice when I 
 was riding with the rebels, after they captured me, the 
 young fellow on this horse patted him on the neck and 
 called him " Jeff," so I knew that was his name, so I led 
 him out of the corral away from the other fellows, where 
 there was some grass growing, and made up my mind I 
 would "mash" him. After he had eaten grass a little 
 while, looking at me out of the corner of his eyes as 
 though he didn t know whether to kick my head off, or 
 walk on me, as I sat under a tree, I got up and patted him 
 on the neck and said, "Well, Jeff, old boy, how does the 
 grass fit your stomach?" 
 
 You may talk about brute intelligence, but that horse was 
 human. He stopped eating, with his mouth full of grass, 
 looked aitonished at being addressed by a stranger without 
 an introduction, and turned a pair of eyes as beautiful and 
 soft as a woman s upon me, and theu began tp chew slowly, 
 
76 HOW PRIVATE GEOKGE W. PECK . 
 
 as though thinking. I rubbed his sleek coat with my fcare 
 hands, and did not say much, desiring to have Jeff make 
 the first advances. He looked me over, and finally put his 
 nose on my sleeve, and rubbed me, and looked in my face, 
 and acted as though he would say, " Well, of course this 
 red-headed fellow is no comparison to my dead master, but 
 evidently he s no slouch, and if I have got to be bossed 
 around by a Yankee, as he is the only one that has spoken 
 a kind word to me since I was captured, and he seems to 
 know my name, I guess I will tie to him," and the intelli 
 gent animal rubbed his nose all over me, and licked my 
 hand. I rubbed the horse all over, petted him, took up 
 his feet and looked at them, and spoke his name, and 
 pretty soon we were the best of friends. I mounted him 
 and rode around and it was just like a rocking chair. That 
 poor, dead Confederate had probably rode Jeff since he was a 
 kid and Jeff was a colt, and had broken him well, and I was 
 awfully sorry that the original owner was not alive, riding his 
 horse home safe and sound, to be greeted by his family with 
 loving embraces. But he was dead and buried, and his horse 
 belonged to me, by all the, laws of war. And yet I had not 
 become a hardened warrior to such an extent that I could 
 forget the hearts that would ache at his home, and I made 
 up mind that horse would be treated as tenderly as though 
 he was one of my family. I rode Jeff around for an hour 
 or two, found that he was trained to jump fences, stand 
 on his hind feet, trot, pace, rack, and that he could run 
 like a scared wolf, and everything the horse did he would 
 sort of look around at me with one eye as much as to say, 
 " Boss, you will find I have got all the modern improve 
 ments, and you needn t be afraid that I will disgrace you 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION 
 
 in any society. " I was fairly in love with my new ho fl*>, 
 and, except for a feeling that I was an interloper with the 
 horse, and sorry for the poor boy that had been shot off 
 him, I should have baen perfectly happy. 
 
 The chaplain had got in the habit of wearing a nice, 
 blue broadcloth blouse which I had brought from home, 
 which had two rows of brass buttons on it. I had paid 
 about twenty dollars of my bounty for the blouse, and had 
 found that the private soldiers did not wear such elaborate 
 uniforms in active duty, so I kept it in the chaplain s tent. 
 I thought if I was killed and my body was sent home, the 
 blouse would come handy. The chaplain wore it occasion 
 ally, and he said any time I wanted to wear any of hi ; 
 clothes to just help myself. An order had been issued t( 
 move the following day, with ten days rations, and some 
 of the boys asked for passes to go down town and have s 
 little blow-out before we started. They wanted me to ga 
 along, and so I got a pass, too. We were to go down town 
 m the afternoon and stay till nine o clock at night, when 
 we had to be in camp. I saddled up Jeff and looked for 
 my blouse, but it was gone, the chaplain having worn it 
 to visit the chaplain of some other regiment, so I took his 
 coat and put it on, as he had told me to. The coat had 
 the chaplain s shoulder-straps on, but I thought there 
 would be no harm in wearing it, so about a dozen of us 
 privates started for town to have a good time, and I with 
 chaplain s shoulder-straps on. It was customary, when 
 soldiers went to town on a pass, to partake of intoxicating 
 beverages more or less, as that was about the only form of 
 enjoyment, and I blush now, twenty-two years afterward, 
 to write the fact that we all got pretty full. It seemed so 
 
78 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 like home to be able to go into a saloon and drink beer, 
 good old northern beer, and who knew but tomorrow we 
 would be killed. So we ate, drank, and were merry. One 
 of the boys said when the officers got on a " tear," they 
 would ride right into billiard saloons, and sometime shoot 
 at decanters of red liquor behind the bar, and he said a 
 private was just as good as an officer any day, and sug 
 gested that we mount our horses and paint the town. We 
 mounted, and rode about town, racing up and down the 
 streets, and finally we came to a billiard saloon, and half 
 a dozen of us rode right in, took cues out of the rack, and 
 tried to play billiards on horse-back. It was a grand pic 
 nic then, though it seems foolish now. My horse Jeff would 
 do anything I asked him, and when I rode up to the bar 
 and told him to rear up, he put both fore feet on the bar, 
 and looked at the bartender as much as to say, "set up 
 the best you have got." 
 
 The chaplain s shoulder-straps gave the crowd a sort of 
 confidence that everything was all right, and after exhib 
 iting in a saloon for a time, there was something said about 
 horse-racing, and I said my horse could beat anything on 
 four legs, so we adjourned to the outskirts of town for a 
 race, followed by half the people in town. We had a 
 horse-race, and Jeff beat them all, and wherever I went 
 the crowd would cheer the chaplain. They said they 
 liked to see a man in that position who could unbend him 
 self and mix up with the boys. There never was a chap 
 lain more popular than the "Wisconsin preacher" was. 
 It did not occur to me that I was placing the chaplain in 
 an unfavorable position before the public, by wearing his 
 coat. Nothing occurred to me, that day, except that we 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 79 
 
 were having a high old time. Finally, after dark, one of 
 our boys got into a row with a loafer in a saloon, and picked 
 the loafer up and tossed him through the window, to the 
 sidewalk. This was very wrong, but it couldn t be helped. 
 There was a great noise, cries for the provost guard, and 
 we knew that the only way to get out of the scrape honor 
 ably, would be to get out real quick, so we mounted and 
 rode to our camp. My horse was the fastest and I got 
 home first, unsaddled my horse and went to the tent, took 
 off the chaplain s coat and hung it up carefully, and was 
 at work writing a letter, and thinking how my horse acted 
 as though he had been on sprees before, he enjoyed it so, 
 when I heard a noise outside, and it was evident that the 
 provcst guard had followed us to camp, and were making 
 complaint to the colonel about our conduct down town. 
 Finally the guard went away, and shortly the colonel and 
 the adjutant called at our tent and inquired for the chap 
 lain. I told them the chaplain had been away most of the 
 day, and had not returned. The colonel and the adjutant 
 winked at each other, and asked me if he wasn t away a 
 good deal. I told them that he was away some. They 
 asked me :f I never noticed that his breath had a peculiar 
 smell. I told them that it was occasionally a little loud. 
 They went away thoughtfully. Now that I think of it I 
 ought to have explained that the peculiarity of the chaplain s 
 breath was caused from eating pickled onions of the sani 
 tary stores, but it did not occur to me at the time. After 
 a while the chaplain came back, asked me if anybody had 
 died during the day, took a drink of blackberry brandy for 
 what ailed him, and we icti-fid. Ths next morning thert 
 
80 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 was a circus. The little town boasted a daily paper, and 
 it contained the following: 
 
 " The community is prepared to overlook an occasional 
 scene of hilarity among the Federal soldiers stationed in 
 this vicinity, but when a gang of roysterers is led by a 
 chaplain, as was the case yesterday, all right-minded people 
 will be indignant. It is said by our informant that the 
 chaplain of a certain cavalry regiment was the liveliest one 
 of the crowd, that he rode into a billiard room, caused his 
 horse to place its forefeet on the bar, and that he played a 
 better game of billiards on horseback than many worldly 
 men can play on foot. It is the duty of the commanding 
 officer to discipline his chaplain. The chaplain also beat 
 the boys several horse races while in town, and they say he 
 is a perfect horseman, and has one of the finest horses ever 
 seen here, which he probably stole." 
 
 I had a boy bring me a paper every morning, and I read 
 the article before the chaplain awoke, and destroyed the 
 paper. Early the next morning the colonel sent for the 
 chaplain, placed him under arrest, and the good man came 
 back to the tent feeling pretty bad. I asked him what was 
 wrong, and he said he was under arrest for conduct un 
 becoming an officer and a gentleman. He said charges 
 were preferred against him for drunkenness and dis 
 orderly conduct, horse-racing, playing billiards on horse 
 back, riding his horse into a saloon and trying to jump 
 him over the bar, and lots of things too numerous to men 
 tion. I felt sorry for him, and told him I had been fear 
 ful all along that he would get into trouble by going away 
 from me so much, and associating with the chaplains of 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 81 
 
 the other regiments, but I had never supposed it would 
 come to this. 
 
 "Wine is a mocker/ said I, becoming warmed up, 
 "and none of us can afford to tamper with it. With me, 
 it does not make so much difference, as I have no reputa 
 tion but that which is already, lost, but you, my dear sir, 
 think of your position. Go to the colonel and confess all, 
 and ask him to forgive you," and I wiped my eyes on my 
 coat sleeve. 
 
 "But. I was not drunk," said the chaplain, indignantly. 
 ( I was not in a saloon, and never saw a game of billiards 
 in my life. I was over to the New Jersey regiment, talk* 
 ing with their chaplain about getting up a revival, among 
 the soldiers," and the good man groaned as he said, "it is 
 a case of mistaken identity. " 
 
 " Bully, elder," said I. " If you can make the court- 
 martial believe you, you will be all right, and you will not 
 be cashiered. But it looks dark, very dark, for you. May 
 heaven help you." 
 
 The chaplain was worried all the morning, and the 
 officers and men joked him unmercifully. At noon the 
 chaplain was released from arrest, as we were to move at 
 four p. M., and he begged so to be allowed to accompany 
 the regiment. The colonel told him he could be tried 
 when we got back, and he was happy. There was a great 
 commotion as the regiment broke up its camp and got 
 ready to move. There was the usual crowd of negresses 
 who had been doing washing for the soldiers, to be paid on 
 pay day, and we were going away, no one knew where, and 
 no one knew when we would meet pay day. There were 
 saloon-keepers with bills against officers, and standing-off 
 
82 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 creditors was just about as hard in the army as at home. 
 I couldn t see much difference. But finally everything 
 was ready, the ammunition wagons, wagon train of stores, 
 and a battery of little guns, about three pounders, had 
 been added. I didn t like the battery. It seemed to me. 
 hard enough to kill our fellow citizens with revolver balls, 
 without shooting them with cannon. At 4 p. M. the 
 bugle sounded <( forward," arid with the clanking of sabers, 
 rattling of hoofs and wagons, we marched outside the 
 picket line, past the cemetery where my deceased friends 
 were buried, and were going towards the enemy. The 
 chaplain and myself were riding behind the colonel, when 
 the colonel asked the good man to ride up to a log that 
 was beside the road, and make his horse put his fore feet 
 upon it, as he did on the bar in the saloon. I felt sorry 
 for the chaplain, and I rode up to the log, and had Jeff 
 put his feet up on it. Then I rode back and saluted the 
 colonel and told him it was I who had done the wicked 
 things the chaplain was accused of, and I told him how the 
 chaplain was using my coat, so I put on his, with the 
 shoulder straps on, and all about it. He laughed at first 
 and then said, "Then you are under arrest. You may 
 dismount and walk and lead your horse until further 
 orders." I dismounted, like a little man, and for five 
 miles I walked, keeping up with the regiment. Finally 
 the colonel sung out, "gallop, march," and I got on my 
 horse. I reasoned that the order to gallop was "further 
 orders," and that as he knew I couldn t very well gallop 
 on foot he must have meant for me to get on. We gal 
 loped for about ten miles, and were ordered to halt, when 
 I dismounted and led my horse up to the colonel, and 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 
 
 saluted him. * Well, you must have had a hard time 
 keeping up with us on foot/ said he. I told him it 
 rested me to go on foot. We were just going into camp 
 for the night, and the colonel said, " Well, as you are 
 rested so much from your walk, you may go out with the 
 foraging party and get some feed for your horse and the 
 chaplain s." I was willing to do anything for a quiet life, 
 so I fell in with a party of about forty, under a lieutenant^ 
 and we rode off into the country to tteal forage from a 
 plantation, keeping a sharp lookout for Confederates who 
 might object. I guess we rode away from camp two or 
 three miles, when we came to a magnificant plantation 
 house, and outhouses, negro quarters, etc. The house was 
 on a hill, in a grove of live oaks, and had immense white 
 pillars, or columns in front. As we rode up to the planta 
 tion the boys scattered all over the premises. This was 
 the first foraging expedition I had ever been with, and 1 
 thought all we went for was to get forage for our horses, 
 so I went to a shock of corn fodder and took all that i 
 could strap on my saddle, and was ready to go, when I 
 passed a smoke house and found some of the boys taking 
 smoked hams and sides of bacon. I asked one of the boys 
 if they had permission to take hams and things, and he 
 laughed and said, "everything goes," and he handed me a 
 ham which I hung on to my saddle. Then the lieutenant 
 told me to go up in front of the house and stand guard, 
 and prevent any soldier from entering the house. I rode 
 up to the house, where there was an old lady and a young 
 married woman with a little girl by her side. They were 
 evidently much annoyed and frightened, though too 
 Droud to show it, and I told them they need have no fear, 
 
84 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 as the men were only after a little forage for their horses. 
 The old lady looked at the ham on my saddle and asked 
 me if the horses eat meat, and I said, "No, but sometimes 
 the men eat horses." I thought that was funny. The 
 young woman was beautiful, and the child was perfectly 
 enchanting. They were on the opposite side of the railing 
 from me, and my horse kept working up towards them, 
 rubbing his nose on the pickets, and finally his nose 
 touched the clasped hands of the mother and child. The 
 kittle girl laughed and patted the horse on the nose, while 
 the mother drew back. It was almost dark and the horse 
 was almost covered with corn fodder, but the little girl 
 screamed and said: 
 
 Mamma, that is Jeff, papa s horse!" 
 
 The mamma looked at me with a wild, hunted look, 
 then at the horse, rushed down the steps and threw her 
 arms around the neck of the horse and sobbed in a despair 
 ing manner: 
 
 "0, where is my husband? Where is he? Is he 
 dead?" 
 
 "My son, my son!" cried the old lady. 
 
 "Bring me my papa, you bad man!" said the little 
 child, and I was surrounded by the three. 
 
 Gentle reader, I have been through many scenes in my 
 life, and have been many times where it was not the toss 
 of a copper whether death or life was my portion, and I 
 had some nerve to help me through, but I never was in a 
 place that tried me like that one. I had been captured by 
 the father of this little child, the husband of this beauti 
 ful, proud woman, the son of this charming old lady. I 
 had seen him brought in, dead, had seen him buried, and 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 85 
 
 nad thrown a bunch of roses in his grave. Now I was sur 
 rounded by these mourners, mourners when they should 
 know the worst. Cold chills ran all over me, and cold 
 perspiration was on my brow. 
 
 "Is he dead?" they all sh rated together. 
 
 I hate a liar, on general principles, and yet there are 
 times when a lie is so much easier to tell than truth. I 
 did not want to be a murderer, and I knew, by the dread 
 ful light in the eyes of that lovely wife, as she looked up 
 at me from the neck of the horse, her face as white as 
 snow, that if I told the truth she would fall dead right 
 where she was. If I told the truth that blessed old lady s 
 heart would be broken, and that little child s face would 
 not have any more smiles, during the war, for mamma and 
 grandma, and, with a hoarse voice, and choking, and try 
 ing to swallow something that seemed as big as a baseball 
 in my throat, I deliberately lied to them. I told them the 
 young man who rode this horse had been captured, after a 
 gallant fight, unharmed, and sent north. That he was so 
 brave that our boys fell in love with him, and there was 
 nothing too good for him in our army, and that he would 
 be well taken care of, and exchanged soon, I had no doubt, 
 and bade them not to worry, but to look at the discomforts 
 and annoyances of war as leniently as possible, and all 
 would be well soon. 
 
 "Thank heaven! Take all we have got in welcome/ 
 said the old lady, as a heavenly smile came over her face. 
 " My boy is safe." 
 
 "0, thank you, sir," said the little mother, as a lovely 
 smile chased a dimple all around her mouth, and corraled 
 it in her left cheek, while a pair of navy-blue eyes looked 
 
66 HOW PRIVATE GEOilGB W. PECK 
 
 up at me as though she would hug me if I was not a 
 Yankee, eyes that I have seen a thousand times since, in 
 dreams, often with tears in them. 
 
 "You are a darling good man/ said the little girl, 
 dancing on the gravel path. The mother blushed and said, 
 "Why, Maudie, don t be so rude"; and there was a shout: 
 
 "Fall in!" 
 
 The lieutenant rode up to me and asked, as he noticed 
 the glad smiles on the faces of the ladies, if this was a 
 family reunion, and, apologizing for being compelled to 
 raid the plantation, we rode away. I was afraid they 
 would mention the news I had brought them, and the 
 lieutenant would tell the truth, so I was glad to move. I 
 was glad to go, for if I had remained longer I would have 
 cried like a baby, and given them back the horse, and 
 walked to camp. As we moved away, I took out my 
 knife and cut the string that held the smoked ham on my 
 saddle, and had the satisfaction of hearing it drop on the 
 path before the house. I could not give back the husband 
 of the blue-eyed woman, the son of the saintly Southern 
 mother, the father of the sweet child, lut I could leave 
 chat ham. As we rode back to camp that beautiful moon 
 light night, I did not join in the singing of the boys, or 
 the jokes. I just thought of that happy home I had left, 
 and how it would be stricken, later, when the news was 
 brought them, and wondered if that fearful 1H I had been 
 telling them was justifiable, under the circumstances, and 
 it it would be laid up against me, charged up in the book 
 above. That night I slept on the ground on some corn fodder 
 and dreamed of nothing but blue-eyed mamma ? and golden- 
 haired Maudie s and white-haired angel grandmothers. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 87 
 
 CHAPTEE VII. 
 
 "BOOTS AND SADDLES" "I AM THE COLONEL S ORDERLY" 
 RIDING FIFTY MILES ON AN EMPTY STOMACH THE CHAPLAIN 
 APPEARS I AM WOUNDED BY A LOCOMOTIVE AND A PIECE OF 
 COAL I NEARLY KILL AN OLD MAN. 
 
 When our foraging party got back to camp, and I un 
 loaded the corn fodder from my horse, I was about as dis 
 gusted with war as a man could be. The faces of those 
 people I had met at the plantation rose up before me, and 
 I could imagine how they would look when they heard that 
 the Confederate soldier who was their all, was dead. I 
 hoped that they would never hear of it. While I was 
 thinking the matter over, and grooming my horse, the 
 chaplain came along and took nearly all the fodder I had 
 brought in, and fed it to his horse, and asked me where 
 the chickens and hams, and sweet potatoes were. I told 
 him I didn t get any. Then he spoke very plainly to me, 
 plainer than he had ever spoken before, and told me that 
 fodder for horses was not all that soldiers got when they 
 went out foraging. He said I wanted to snatch anything 
 that was lying around loose, that could be eaten. I asked 
 him if the government did not furnish rations enough for 
 him to live comfortably, in addition to the sanitary stores. 
 He said sometimes he yearned for chicken. Then I told 
 him his salary was sufficient to buy such luxuries. He was 
 hot, and talked back to me> and told me he didn t propose 
 to be lectured by no red-headed private as to his duties, or 
 hia conduct, and he wanted me to understand that I was 
 
88 HOW PEIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 expected to forage for him as well as myself, and not to let 
 another soldier come into camp with a better assortment of 
 the luxuries afforded by the country, than I did. He said 
 that he picked me out as a man that would fill the bill, and 
 do his duty. I told him if he had selected me from all the 
 men in the regiment as being the most expert sneak thief, 
 he had made a mistake, and I would be teetotally d d if I 
 would go through the country stealing hens and chickens 
 for any chaplain that ever lived, and he could put that in 
 his pipe and smoke it. It was pretty sassy talk for a private 
 soldier to indulge in towards a chaplain, but I was so dis 
 gusted to hear a man who should discountenance anything 
 uiisoldierly, talk so flippantly about taking from the women 
 and children of the country what little they had to live on, 
 because we had the power, their men folks being away in 
 the army, that I got on my ear, as it were. I told him 
 that I was not much mashed on war, and hoped I would 
 never have to fire a gun at a human being, but now that I 
 was into the business, I would fight if I had to, or do any 
 duty of a soldier, but I would be cussed if I would rob hen 
 roosts, and he didn t weigh enough to compel me to. Then 
 he said I could go back to my company, as he didn t want 
 a man around him that hadn t sand enough to do his duty. 
 I asked him if I hadn t better wait till after supper, it 
 being after dark, but he said I could go right away, and 
 he would have another man detailed to take my place. I 
 was discharged, because I struck against stealing hens. 
 I saddled my horse, took my share of the fodder, and 
 started for my company to return to duty a3 a soldier. On 
 the way to my company I saw a half a dozen soldiers, cov 
 ered with mud, and their horses covered with foam, ride 
 
"YOU ABB A DARLING GOOD MAtf," 8AID THB ^^ 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 89 
 
 np to the colonel s tent, and I stopped to see what was the 
 matter. A sergeant gave the colonel a dispatch, which he 
 tore open, read it, looked excited, and then he turned to 
 me and said, "Kide to every commanding officer of a com 
 pany and say with my compliments, that Boots and Sad 
 dles will be sounded in ten minutes, and every man must 
 he in line, mounted, within five minutes after the call is 
 sounded, then come back here." Well, I was about as ex 
 cited as the colonel, and I rode to every captain s tent and 
 gave the command. Some of the captains, who were just 
 sitting down to supper, asked, " What you giving us/ 
 thinking it was some foolishness on my part. One captain 
 said if I came around with any more such orders he would 
 run a saber through me and turn it around a few times ; 
 another said to his lieutenant, "That is the chaplain s 
 idiot, that the boys play jokes on ; some corporal has prob 
 ably told him to carry that message." 
 
 I got all around the companies, and went back to the 
 colonel, and told him that I had delivered his invitation, 
 but the most of the captains sent regrets in one way and 
 another, and one was going to jab me with a saber. He 
 called the bugler, and told him to blow " Boots and Sad 
 dles," and in five minutes to sound, ft To Horse;" then he 
 turned to me and said, You will be my orderly tonight, 
 and you will have the liveliest ride you ever experienced. 
 Buckle up your saddle girth and lead my horse out here." 
 I told the colonel I should have to buckle up my own 
 belt a few holes, as I hadn t had any supper, when he told 
 his servant to bring me out what was left of his supper, 
 which he did, one small hard tack. I eat pretty hearty, 
 and let my horse fill himself all he could on corn stalks,, 
 
yO HOW PRIVATE GEORGE \V. PECK 
 
 and in a short time the bugle calls were echoing through 
 the woods, men were saddling up and mounting, and pick 
 ing up camp utensils in the dark, and swearing some at 
 being ordered out in that unceremonious manner when 
 they had got all ready to have a night s rest. There was 
 not near as much swearing as I had supposed there would 
 be, but there was enough. The chaplain came rushing up 
 to where I was with his coat off, and asked me what was 
 the matter, and the colonel having gone to the major s 
 tent, I answered him that we were going to have the 
 liveliest ride he ever experienced, and not to forget it, and 
 that probably before morning we would have the biggest 
 fight of the season. 
 
 " Come and help me catch my horse," said the chaplain, 
 " I turned him loose so he could roll over, and he has 
 stampeded/ 
 
 " Go catch your own horse," said I with lofty dignity, 
 "and steal your own chickens. I am serving on the 
 staff of the commanding officer, sir. I am the colonel s 
 orderly!" 
 
 I thought that would break the chaplain all up, but it 
 didn t. " The devil you say," remarked the chaplain, as 
 he went off in the darkness, whistling for his horse. Gen 
 tle reader, did you ever ride on horseback fifty miles in one 
 night, on an empty stomach, after having ridden thirty 
 miles during the day? If you never have accomplished 
 such a feat, you don t know anything about suffering. 0, 
 to this day I can feel my stomach freeze itself to my back 
 bone. We started soon after orders were given on a gallop, 
 and if we walked our horses a minute during the whole 
 night, I did not know it. We marched by "fours," but I 
 
PUT DOWV THE KEBELLlOlSr. 01 
 
 had the whole road to myself, as I rode behind the colonel. 
 I wanted to know where we were going and what for, and 
 once, when the colonel fell back to where I was, while he 
 was taking a drink out of a canteen, I said, " This is a 
 little sudden, ain t it?" My idea was to draw him out, 
 and get him to tell me all about the destination of the 
 expedition, and its object. The colonel got through drink 
 ing, and as he knocked the cork into the canteen, he said, 
 "Yes, this is a little spry/ That was all he said, and 
 evidently he wanted me to draw my own inference, which 
 I did. Pretty soon the orderly sergeant of the company 
 that was on the advance, directly behind the colonel, rode 
 up to me and , asked me if I had any idea where we were 
 going. He said he had seen me talking with the colonel, 
 and thought maybe he had told me th programme. He 
 added that he thought it was a shame that men couldn t 
 be allowed a little rest. I told him that I had just been 
 talking with the colonel about it, but I had no authority 
 to communicate what he said. However, I would assure 
 the orderly that we were going to have ths liveliest ride he 
 ever experienced. I knew I was safe in saying that, and 
 the orderly remarked that he had about come to that con 
 clusion himself, and he left me. I had nerer expected to 
 rise, on pure merit, to that proud position of coloneFs 
 orderly, and I made up my mind if that nig ht s ride did 
 not founder me, or drive my spine up into the top of my 
 hat, or glue the two sides of my empty stomach together, 
 so they would never come apart, that I would try to con 
 duct myself so that the commanding officers would all cry 
 for me and want me on their staffs. I argued, to myself, 
 as we rode along, that the position of colonel s orderly 
 
93 HOW PKIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 could not be so very unsafe, as it did not stand to reason 
 that a colonel would go into any place that was particularly 
 dangerous, as long as he could send other officers. I knew 
 that colonels in action should ride behind their regiments, 
 and wondered if this colonel knew his place > or would he 
 be fool enough to go right ahead of his men? I was going 
 to speak to him about it, if we ever stopped galloping long 
 enough, but everything was jarred out of my head. 
 
 A fellow can think of a good many things, riding on a 
 gallop all night, and I guess I thought of about everything 
 that night. There were few interruptions of the march. 
 There were about four stops, two being caused by horses 
 falling down and being run over by those behind them, 
 and two by carbines going off accidentally. One man was 
 dismounted and run over by half the horses in the regi 
 ment, and when he was pulled out from under the horses 
 he asked for a chew of tobacco, and saying he was marked 
 for life by horse shoes, he kicked his horse in the ribs for 
 falling down, climbed on and said the procession might 
 move on. He was all cut to pieces by horse s hoofs, but 
 he was full of fight the next morning. Another soldier 
 had his big toe shot off by the accidental discharge of a 
 carbine, and when the regiment stopped, and the colonel 
 asked him if he wanted to stop there and wait for an am 
 bulance to overtake him, he said, " Not if there is going to 
 be a fight. I don t use a big toe much, anyway, and if 
 there is a fight ahead, I want to be there, if I haven t got 
 a toe left on my feet." The colonel smiled and said, "all 
 right, boy." I never saw fellows who were so anxious to 
 fight, ami I wondered how much money it would take to 
 induce me to O i n t a fight when I was crippled up 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 93 
 
 enough to be excused. Along toward morning everybody 
 felt that we were so far into the enemy s lines that there 
 must be some object in the long ride, and the probabilities 
 of a fight seemed to be settled in every man s mind. Up 
 hill and down we galloped, until it seemed to me I should 
 fall off my horse and die. About half an hour before day 
 light the command was halted, and the officers of each 
 company were sent for, and they surrounded the colonel, 
 separated from the men, and he said: ** There is a town 
 ahead, about four miles, garrisoned by confederate troops. 
 We are to charge it at daylight, drive the enemy out the 
 other side of town, kill as many as possible, and when they 
 go out they will be attacked by another Union regiment 
 that has been sent around to the rear. There is a railroad 
 there, and a bridge across a river, Confederate stores of 
 ammunition, provisions, cotton, etc. The stores are to be 
 burned, the railroad bridge destroyed, the track torn up, 
 engines, if there are any, are to be ditched, and everything 
 destroyed except private residences. You understand?" 
 The officers said they did, and they went back to their 
 companies and ordered the men to get a bite to eat. When 
 the officers had gone I was pretty scared, and I said, 
 " Colonel, suppose the rebels do not get out of that town." 
 The colonel was chewing a hard-tack when he answered. 
 Daylight was just streaking up from the East, and he held 
 a piece of the hard-tack up to the light to pick a worm out 
 of it, after which he answered: "If they don t get out, we 
 will, those of us who are not killed. I always like to eat 
 hard-tack in the dark, then I can t see the worms." To 
 say that I was reassured would be untrue. I admired a 
 man who could mingle business with pleasure, as he did 
 
94 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 when talking of possible death and worms in hard-tack, 
 but death was never an interesting subject to me. I 
 wanted to talk with the colonel more, and asked him if 
 colonels often get killed, and if an orderly was exactly safe 
 in his immediate vicinity, but he leaned against a tree and 
 went to sleep, and I stood near, as wide awake as any man 
 ever was. I wondered whose idea it was to send us fifty 
 miles into the Confederacy to destroy provisions and rail 
 roads. Did they suppose the Confederates didn t want 
 anything to eat. I thought it was a mean man or govern 
 ment that would burn up good wholesome provisions be 
 cause they couldn t eat them themselves. And who owned 
 this railroad that was going to be torn up? Why burn a 
 bridge that probably cost several hundred thousand dollars. 
 As I was thinking these things over and finding fault with the 
 persons responsible for such foolishness, the chaplain, who 
 had not showed up during the night, came up to where 
 I was, without any hat, leading his horse, which was lame. 
 The first thing he asked me how I would trade horses. 
 They all wanted my Jeff, but he was not in the market. 
 The chaplain said he had caught up with the regiment 
 about midnight, and had rode at the rear, with the horse- 
 doctor. He said this expedition was foolish, and had no 
 object except to try the endurance of the horses and men. 
 I told him that we were going to have a fight in less than an 
 hour, and burn a town, and probably we would all be 
 killed. The chaplain turned pale and looked faint. 
 
 I had read about hell, and seen pictures of it, from the 
 imagination of some eminent artist, but the hell I had 
 read of, and seen pictured, was not a marker to the experi 
 ence of the next three hours. In a few minutes the colonel 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. &5 
 
 woke up, and the regiment mounted and moved on. An ad 
 vance guard was put further out than before, with orders to 
 charge the rebel picket almost into town, and then hold up 
 for the rest of us. As we neared the town it was just light 
 enough to see. The advance captured the picket post 
 without a shot being fired, and moved right into town, 
 followed by the regiment, and we actually rode right into 
 the camp of the boys in gray, and woke them up by firing. 
 They scattered, coatless and shoeless, firing as they 
 ran, and in five minutes they were all captured, killed, 
 gone out of town, or were in hiding in the buildings. 
 Then began the conflagration. Immense buildings, filled 
 with goods, or bales of cotton, were fired, and soon the 
 black smoke and falling walls made a scene that was enough 
 to s^t a recruit crazy. A train came in just as the fire was 
 at its greatest, and a squad of men was sent to burn it, and 
 the colonel told me to go and capture the engineer and 
 bring him to the headquarters. I rode up as near to the 
 engine as my horse would go and told the engineer I 
 wanted him. He turned a cock somewhere, and a jet of 
 steam came out towards me that fairly blinded me and the 
 horse, and I couldn t see the engine any more. My horse 
 turned tail, the engineer threw a lump of coal and hit me 
 on the head, and I went away and told the colonel the 
 engineer wouldn t come, and beside had scalded me with 
 steam, and hit me with a lump of coal. The colonel said 
 the engineer could be arrested for such conduct. Pretty 
 soon the train was on fire, and one of our boys clubbed the 
 engineer, got on the engine and run it on to a side track 
 and ditched it, and brought the engineer up to headquar 
 ters, where I had quite a talk with him about squirting 
 
96 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 steam and throwing lumps of coal at peaceable persons. 
 Then the railroad bridge was set on fire, and it looked 
 cruel to see the timbers licked up by flames, but when the 
 burning trestle fell into the river below, it was a grand, an 
 awful sight. I came out of the fight alive, but with a lump 
 on my head as big as a hen s egg, so big I couldn t wear- 
 my hat, and a firm determination to whip that engineer 
 who threw the lump of coal when I could catch him alone. 
 We cooked a late breakfast on the embers of the ruins, 
 and after eating, I noticed a sign, " Printing Office," in 
 front of a residence just outside the burnt district, and 
 asked permission to go there and print a paper, with an 
 account of the fight, and the destruction of the town. 
 Permission was granted, and I went to the office and found 
 an old man and two daughters, beautiful girls, but in 
 tensely bitter rebels. The old man was near eighty years 
 ^Id, and he said he could whip any dozen yankees. I told 
 him I would like to use his type and press, but he said if I 
 touched a thing I did it at my peril, as he should consider 
 the type contaminated by the touch of a yankee. The 
 girls felt the same way, but I talked nice to them, and they 
 didn t kick much when I took a "stick" and began to set 
 type. I worked till dinner time, when they asked me to 
 take dinner with them, which I did. During the conver 
 sation I convinced them that I was practically a non-com 
 batant, and wouldn t hurt anybody for the world. I 
 worked till about the middle of the afternoon, when I 
 noticed that the girls, who had been up on the house, 
 looked tickled about something, and presently I heard some 
 firing at the edge of the town, some yelling, more firing, 
 bugle calls among our soldiers, and finally there was an 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 97 
 
 absence of blue coats, and I looked for my horse, and found 
 the old man leading him away. I halted the old man, and 
 he stopped and told me that the Confederates had come into 
 town from the East and driven our cavalry out on the 
 other side, and I would be a prisoner in about five minutes, 
 and he laughed, and the girls clapped their hands, and I 
 felt as though my time had come. I had never killed an 
 old man in my life, but I made up my mind to have my 
 horse or kill him in his tracks, so I drew my revolver and 
 told him to let go the horse or he was a dead man. It was 
 a questionn with me whether I could hold my hand still 
 enough to kill him, if he didn t let go the horse, and I 
 hoped to heaven he would drop the bridle. He looked so 
 much like my father at home that it seemed like killing a 
 near relative, and when I looked at the two beautiful 
 daughters on the gallery, looking at us, pale as death I 
 almost felt as though it would be better to lose the ho*se 
 and be captured, then to put a bullet through the gvay 
 head of that beautiful old man. How I wished thai he 
 was a young fellow, and had a gun, and had it pointed at 
 me. Then I could kill him and feel as though it was slf- 
 defense. But the rebels were yelling and firing over the 
 hill, and my regiment was going the other way on import 
 ant business, and it was a question with me whether I 
 should kill the old man, and see his life-blood ebb out fchere 
 in front of his children, or be captured, and perhaps shot for 
 burning buildings. I decided that it was my duty to 
 murder him, and get my horse. So I rested my revolver 
 across my left forearm, and took deliberate aim at his left 
 eye, a beautiful, large, expressive gray eye, so much like 
 my father s at home that I almost imagined I was about to 
 
98 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 kill the father who loved me. I heard a scream on the gal 
 lery, and the blonde girl fainted in the arms of her 
 brunette sister. The sister said to me, "Please don t kill 
 my father." He was not ten feet from me, and I said, 
 "Drop the horse or you die/ The old man trembled, the 
 girl said, "Pa, give the man his horse," the old man 
 dropped the bridle and walked towards the house. I 
 mounted the horse and rode off towards the direction my 
 regiment had taken, thanking heaven that the girl had 
 spoken just in time, and that I had not been compelled to 
 put a bullet through that noble-looking gray head. The 
 face haunted me all the way, as I rode along to catch my 
 regiment, and when I overtook it, and rode up to the 
 colonel, and asked him what in thunder he wanted to go off 
 and leave me to fight the whole southern Confederacy for, 
 he said, "0, get out! There were no rebels there. That 
 was the Indiana regiment that started out day before yes 
 terday, to get on the other side of the town. The fellows 
 were shooting some cattle for food. What makes you look 
 so pale? " I was thinking of whether a man ever prospered 
 who killed old people. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 99 
 
 CHAPTER VHI. 
 
 THREE DATS WITHOUT Pood! THE VALUE OP HARD TACK A 
 SILVER WATCH FOR A PINT OF MEAL I STEAL CORN FROM A 
 HUNGRY MULE THE DELIRIUM OF HUNGER I DINE ON 
 MULE I CAPTURE A REBEL RAM. 
 
 After overtaking my regiment, and enjoying a feeling 
 of safety which I did not feel in the presence of that vio 
 lent old man who laid savage hands on my horse, and the 
 girls, I began to reflect. Of course the old man was not 
 armed, and I was, but how did I know but those Confed 
 erate girls had revolvers concealed about their persons, and 
 might have killed me. To feel that I was once more safe 
 with my regiment, where there was no danger as long as 
 they did not get into a fight, was bliss indeed, and I rode 
 along in silence, wondering when the cruel war would be 
 over, and what all this riding around the country, burning 
 buildings and tearing up railroad tracks amounted to, any 
 way. I didn t enlist as a section hand, nor a railroad 
 wrecker, and there was nothing in my enlistment papers 
 that said anything about my being compelled to commit 
 arson. The recruit-officer who, by his gilded picture of the 
 beauties of a soldier s life, induced me to enlist as a soldier, 
 never mentioned anything that would lead me to believe 
 that one of my duties would be to touch a match to another 
 man s bales of cotton, or ditch a locomotive belonging to 
 parties who never did me any harm, and who had a right to 
 expect dividends from their railroad stock. If I had the 
 money that was represented in the stuff destroyed by our 
 
100 HOW PRIVATrj GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 troops that day, I could run a daily newspaper for years, If 
 it didn t have a subscriber or a patent medicine advertise 
 ment. And who was benefitted by such wanton destruction 
 of property. As we rode along I told the colonel I thought 
 it was a confounded shame to do as we had done, and that 
 such a use of power, because AVO had the power, was un 
 worthy of American soldiers. He said it was a soldier s 
 duty to obey orders and not talk back, and if he heard any 
 more moralizing on my part he would send me back to my 
 company, where I would have to do duty like the rest. I told 
 him I was one of the talking backest fellows he ever saw, 
 and that one of my duties as a newspaper man was to criti 
 cise the conduct of the war. Then he said I might report 
 to the captain of my company. It seemed hard to go into 
 the ranks, after having had a soft job with the chaplain, 
 and again as colonel s orderly, but I thought if I got my 
 back up and showed the captain that I was no ordinary 
 soldier, but one who was qualified for any position, that 
 maybe he would be afraid to monkey too much with me. I 
 knew the captain would be a candidate for some office when 
 the war was over, and if he knew I was on to him, and that 
 I should very likely publish a paper that could warm him 
 up quite lively, he would see to it that I wasn t compelled 
 to do very hard work. So I rode back to my company and 
 told the captain that the colonel and the chaplain had got 
 through with me, and I had come back to stay, and would 
 be glad to do any light work he might have for me. The 
 captain heaved a sigh, as though he was not particularly 
 tickled to have me back, and told me to fall in, in the rear 
 of the company. I asked if I couldn t ride at the head of 
 the company. He said no, there was more room at tba 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 101 
 
 rear, I tried to tell him that I was accustomed to riding 
 at the head of the regiment, but he told me to shut up my 
 mouth and get back there, and I got back, and fell in at 
 the tail end of the company, with the cook and an officer s 
 servant, and the orderly sergeant came back and wanted to 
 know if the company had got to have me around again. 
 Here was promotion with a vengeance. From the proud 
 pinnacle from which I had soared, as chaplain s clerk, and 
 colonel s orderly, I had dropped with one fell swoop to the 
 rear end of my company, and nobody wanted me, because I 
 had kicked against stealing hens in one instance, and burn 
 ing buildings and tearing up railroads in the other. We 
 rode all day, and at night laid down in the woods and slept, 
 after eating the last of our rations. I slept beside a log, 
 and before going to sleep and after waking, I swore by the 
 great horn spoons I would not steal anything more while I 
 was in the army, nor do any damage to property. In the 
 morning the soldiers had scarcely a mouthful to eat, and an 
 order was read to each company that for three or four days 
 it would be necessary to live off the country, foraging for 
 what we had to eat. I asked the captain what we would 
 do for something to eat if we didn t find anything in the 
 country to gobble up. He said we would starve. That 
 was an encouraging prospect for a man who had taken a 
 solemn oath not to steal any more. I told the captain 
 I did not intend to steal any more, as I did not think 
 it right. Then he said I better begin to eat the halter off 
 my horse, because leather would be the only thing I would 
 have to stay my stomach. The first day I did not eat a 
 mouthful, except half of a hard-tack that I had a quarrel 
 with my horse to get. In throwing the sacldle op my 
 
102 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 horse, one solitary hard-tack that was in the saddle-bag, 
 fell out upon the ground, and the horse picked it up. I 
 did not know the hard-tack was in the saddle, and when 
 if fell upon the ground I was as astonished as I would have 
 been had a clap of thunder come from the clear sky, and 
 when the horse went for it, my stomach rebelled and I 
 grabbed one side of the hard-tack while the horse held the 
 other side in his teeth. Something had to give, and as the 
 horse s teeth nor my hands would give, the hard- tack had 
 to, and I saved half of it, and placed it in the inside 
 pocket of my vest, as choice as though it were a thousand 
 dollar bill. 
 
 I have listened to music, in my time, that has been 
 pretty bad, and which has sent cold chills up my back, and 
 caused me pain, but I never heard any bad music that 
 seemed to grate on my nerves as did the noise my horse 
 made in chewing the half of my last hard-tack, and the 
 look of triumph the animal gave me was adding insult 
 to injury. Several times during the day I took that piece 
 of hard-tack from my pocket carefully, wiped it on my 
 coat-sleeve, and took a small bite, and the horse would 
 look around at me wickedly, as though he would like to 
 divide it with me again. People talk about guarding 
 riches carefully, and of placing diamonds in a safe place, 
 but no riches were ever guarded as securely as was that 
 piece of hard-tack, and riches never took to themselves 
 wings and flew, regretted more than did my last hard-tack. 
 Each bite made it smaller, and finally, the last bite was 
 taken, with a sigh, and nothing remained for me to eat 
 but the halter. Some of the boys went out foraging, and 
 moderately success! ul, while others did not get a thing 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION". 103 
 
 to eat. The country was pine woods, with few settlers, 
 and those that lived there were so poor that it seemed 
 murder to take what they had. One of the men of our 
 company came back with about two quarts of corn meal, 
 that night, and I traded him a silver watch for about a 
 pint of it. I mixed it up in some water, and after the 
 most of the men had fallen asleep, I made two pancakes 
 of the wet meal, and put them in the ashes of the camp- 
 fire to bake, but fell asleep before it was done, and when I 
 woke up and reached into the ashes for the first pancake, it 
 was gone. Some Union soldier, whom it were base flattery 
 to call a thief, had watched me, and stole my riches as I 
 slept, robbed me of all I held dear in life. With trembling 
 hands I raked the ashes for my other pancake, hopelessly, 
 because I thought that, too, was gone, but to my surprise 
 I found it. The villain who had pursued me as I slept, 
 had failed to discover the second pancake, and I was safe, 
 and my life was saved. I have seen a play in a theater in 
 which a miser hides his gold, first in one place, then in 
 another, looking to the right and to the left to see if any 
 body was watching him. I was the same kind of a miser 
 about my pancake. If I hid it in the woods I might fail 
 to find the place, in the morning, where I had hid it, and 
 besides, some soldier that was peacefully snoring near me, 
 apparently, might have one eye on me, and commit burg 
 lary. If I put it in my pocket, and went to sleep, I 
 might have my pocket picked, so I concluded to remain 
 awake and hold it in my hands. There appeared to be 
 nothing between me and death by starvation, except that 
 cornmeal pancake, and I sat there for an hour, beside the 
 dying embeds of the camp-fire, trying tg m^e up 
 
104 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 who stole my other pancake, and what punishment should 
 be meted out to him if I ever found him out. 1 would 
 follow him to my dying day. I suspected the captain, the 
 colonel, the chaplain, and six hundred soldiers, any one of 
 whom was none too good to steal a man s last pancake if 
 he was hungry. To this day I have never found out who 
 stole my pancake, but I have not given up the search, and 
 if I live to be as old as Methuselah, and I find out the fel 
 low that put himself outside my pancake that dark night 
 in the pine woods, I will gallop all over that old soldier, if 
 he is older than I am. That is the kind of avenger that 
 is 011 the track of that pancake-eater. I sat there and 
 nodded over my remaining pancake, clutched in my hands, 
 and finally started to my feet in alarm. Suppose I should 
 fall asleep, and be robbed ? The thought was maddening. 
 I have read of Indians who would eat enough at one siting 
 to last them several days, and the thought occurred tsjpfeie 
 that if I ate the pancake iny enemies could not get it away 
 from me, and perhaps it would digest gradually, a little 
 each day, and brace me up until we got where there were 
 rations plenty. So I sat there and deliberately eat every 
 mouthful of it, and looked around at the sleeping compan 
 ions with triumph, laid down and slept as peacefully on 
 the ground as I ever slept in bed. 
 
 There may be truth in the story about Indians eating 
 enough to last them a week, but it did not work in my 
 case, for in the morning I was hungry as a she wolf. The 
 pancake had gone to work and digested itself right at 
 once, as though there was no end of food, and my stomach 
 yearned for something. I walked down by the quarter 
 master s wagons, about daylight, and there was a four 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 105 
 
 mule team, each with a nose bag on, with corn in it. Th 
 mules were eating corn, unconscious of a robber being 
 near At home, where I had lived on good fresh meat, 
 bread, pie, everything that was good, nobody could have 
 made me believe that I would steal corn from a government 
 mule, but when I heard the mules eating that corn a 
 demon possessed me, and I meditated robbery. I did not 
 want to take all the corn I wanted from one mule, so I 
 decided to take toll from all of them. I went up to the 
 first one, and reached my hand down into the nose bag 
 beside the mule s mouth and rescued a handful of corn, 
 then went to another to do the same, but that mule kicked 
 at the scheme. I went to two others, and they laid their 
 ears back and began to kick at the trace chains, so I went 
 back to my first love, the patient mule, and took every last 
 kernel of corn in the bag, and as I went away with a 
 pocket full of corn the mule looked at me with tears in its 
 eyes, but I couldn t be moved by no mule tears, with hun 
 ger gnawing at my vitals, so I hurried away like a guilty 
 thing. While I was parching the corn stolen from the 
 mule, in a half of a tin canteen, over the fire, the chaplain 
 came along and wanted to sample it. He was pretty 
 hungry, but I wasn t running a free boarding house for 
 chaplains any more, and I told him he must go forage for 
 himself. He said he would give his birthright for a 
 pocket full of corn. I told him I didn t want any birth 
 right, unless a birthright would stay a man s stomach, but 
 if he would promise to always love, honor and obey me, I 
 would tell him where he could get some corn. He swore 
 by the great bald headed Elijah that if I would steer him 
 onto some corn he would remember J9 the longest day he 
 
106 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 lived, and pray for me. I never was very much mashed 
 on the chaplain s influence at the throne, but I didn t want 
 to see him starve, while government mules were living on 
 the fat of the land, so I told him to go down to the quar 
 termaster s corral and rob the mules as I had done. He 
 bit like a bass, and started for the mules. Honestly, I had 
 no designs on the chaplain, but he traded me a kicking 
 mule once, and got a good ( horse of me, because I thought 
 he wanted to do me a favor. As he was familiar with 
 mules^ I supposed he would know how to steal a little 
 corn. Pretty soon I heard a great commotion down there, 
 and presently the chaplain came out with a mule chasing 
 him, its ears laid back, and blood in its eyes. The chap 
 lain was white as a sheet, and yelling for help. Before I 
 could knock the mule down with a neckyoke, the animal 
 had grabbed the chaplain by the coat tail, with its mouth, 
 taking some of his pants, also, and perhaps a little skin, 
 raised him up into the air, about seven feet, let go of him, 
 and tried to turn around and kick the good man on 
 the fly as he came down. We drove the mule away, 
 rescued the chaplain, tied his pants -together with a piece 
 of string, cut off the tail of his coat which the mule had 
 not torn off, so it was the same length as the other one, and 
 made him look quite presentable, though he said he knew 
 he could never ride a horse again. It seems that instead 
 of reaching into the nose bag, and taking a little corn, he 
 had unbuckled the nose bag and taken it off. I told him 
 he was a hog, and ought < o have known better than take 
 the nose bag off, thus leaving the mule s mouth unmuz 
 zled, while the animal was irritated. He accused me of 
 knowing that the mule was vicious uud deliberately send- 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 101 
 
 ing him there to be killed, so rather than have any hard 
 feelings I gave him a handful of my parched corn. 
 
 A few Sundays afterwards I heard him preach a sermon 
 on the sin of covetousness, and I thought how beautifully 
 he could have illustrated his sermon if he had turned 
 around and showed his soldier audience where the mule eat 
 his coat tail. Soon we saddled up and marched another 
 day without food. Header, were you ever so hungry that 
 you could see, as plain as though it was before you, a din 
 ner-table set with a full meal, roast beef, mashed potatoes, 
 pie, all steaming hot, ready to sit down to? If you have 
 not been very hungry in your life, you can not believe that 
 one can be in a condition to " see things." The man with 
 delirium tremens can see snakes, while the hungry man, in 
 his delirium, can see things he would like to eat. Many 
 times during that day s ride through the deserted pine- 
 woods, with my eyes wide open, I could see no trees, no 
 ground, no horses and men around me, but there seemed a 
 film over the eyes, and through it I could see all of the 
 good things I ever had eaten. One moment there would 
 be a steaming roast turkey, on a platter, ready to be carved. 
 Again I could see a kettle over a cook-stove, with a pigeon 
 pot-pie cooking, the dumplings, light as a feather, bobbing 
 up and down with the steam, and I could actually smell 
 the odor of the cooking pot-pie. It seems strange, and 
 unbelievable to those who have never experienced extreme 
 hunger or thirst, that the imagination can picture eatables 
 and streams of running water, so plain that one will 
 almost reach for the eatables, or rush for the imaginary 
 stream, to plunge in and quench thirst, but I have experi 
 enced both of those sensations for thirteen dollars a 
 
105 HOW PKIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 month, and nary a pension yet. It is such experiences 
 that bring gray hairs to the temples of young soldiers, and 
 cause eyes to become hollow and sunken in the head. To 
 day, your Uncle Samuel has not got silver dollars enough 
 in his treasury to hire me to suffer one day of such hunger 
 as to make me see things that were not there, but twenty- 
 two years ago it was easy to have fun over it, and to laugh 
 it off the next day. When we stopped that day, at noon, 
 to rest, the company commissary sergeant came up to the 
 company, with two men carrying the hind quarter of an 
 animal that had been slaughtered, and he began to cut it 
 up and issue it out to the men. It was peculiar looking 
 meat, but it was meat, and every fellow took his ration, 
 and it was not long before the smell of broiled fresh meat 
 could be "heard" all around. When I took my meat I 
 asked the sergeant what it was, and where he got it. I 
 shall always remember his answer. It was this : 
 
 " Young man, when you are starving, and the means 
 of sustaining life are given you, take your rations and go 
 away, and don t ask any fool questions. If you don t want 
 it, leave it." 
 
 Leave it? Egad, I would have eaten it if it had been 
 a Newfoundland dog, and I took it, and cooked it, and ate 
 it. I do not know, and never did, what it was, but when 
 the quartermaster s mule teams pulled out after dinner, 
 there were two spike teams;" that is, two wheel mules 
 and a single leader, instead of four-mule teams. After I 
 saw the teams move out, each mule looking mournful, as 
 though each one thought his time might come next, I didn t 
 want to ask any questions about that meat, though I ku^w 
 there wasn t a "beef critter" within fifty miles of us, I 
 
PtJT DOWN THE REBELLION. 109 
 
 have had my children ask me, many times, if I ever eat 
 any mule in the army, and I have always said that I did 
 not know. And I don t. But I am a great hand to mis 
 trust. 
 
 It was on this hungry day, when filled with meat suet 
 as I had never met before that I did a thing I shall always 
 regret. The captain came down to the rear of the com 
 pany and said, so we could all hear it. "I want two men 
 to volunteer for a perilous mission. I want two as brave 
 men as ever lived. Who will volunteer ? Don t all speak 
 at once. Take plenty of time, for your lives may pay the 
 penalty ! " I had been feeling for some days as though 
 there was not the utmost confidence in my bravery, among 
 the men, and I had been studying as to whether I would 
 desert, and become a wanderer on the face of the earth, or 
 do some desperate deed that would make me solid with the 
 boys, and when the captain called for volunteers, I swal 
 lowed a large lump in my throat, and said, " Captain, 
 here s your mule. I will go ! " Whether it was that con 
 founded meat I had eaten .that had put a seeming bravery 
 into me, or desperation at the hunger of the past few days, 
 I do not know, but I volunteered for a perilous mission. 
 A little Irishman named McCarty spoke up, and said, 
 " Captain, I will go anywhere that red headed recruit 
 will go." 
 
 So it was settled that McCarty and myself should go, and 
 with some misgivings on my part we rode up to the front 
 and reported. I thought what a fool I was to volunteer, 
 when I was liable to be killed, but I was in for it, and there 
 was no use squealing now. We came to a cross road, and 
 the captain whispered to us that we should camp there, and 
 
110 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 that he had been told by a reliable contraband that up the 
 cross road about two miles was a house at which there was 
 a sheep, and he wanted us to go and take it. He said 
 there might be rebels anywhere, and we were liable to be 
 ambushed and killed, but we must never come back alive 
 without sheep meat. Well, we started off. McCarty said 
 I better ride a little in advance so if we were ambushed, I 
 would be killed first, and he would rush back and inform 
 the captain. I tried to argue with McCarty that I being 
 a recruit, and he a veteran, it would look better for him to 
 lead, but he said I volunteered first, and he would waive 
 his rights of precedence, and ride behind me. So we rode 
 along, and I reflected on my changed condition. A few 
 short weeks ago I was a respected editor of a country news 
 paper in Wisconsin, looked up to, to a certain extent, by 
 my neighbors, and now I had become a sheep thief. At 
 home the occupation of stealing sheep was considered pretty 
 lew down, and no man who followed the business was 
 countenanced by the best society. A sheep thief, or one 
 who was suspected of having a fondness for mutton not be 
 longing to him, was talked about. And for thirteen dollars 
 a month, and an insignificant bounty, I had become a 
 sheep thief. If I ever run another newspaper, after the 
 war, how did I know but a vile contemporary across the 
 street would charge me with being a sheep thief, and prove 
 it by McOarty. May be this was a conspiracy on the part 
 of the captain, whom I suspected of a desire to run for 
 office when we got home, to get me in his power, so that 
 if I went for him in my paper, he could charge me with 
 stealing sheep. It worked me up considerable, but we 
 were out of meat, and if there was a sheep in the vicinity, 
 
PUT DOWN" THE REBELLION, 111 
 
 and I got it, there was one thing sure, they couldn t get 
 any more mule down me. So we rode up to the plantation, 
 Which was apparently deserted. There was a lamb about 
 two-thirds grown, in the front yard, and McCarty and my 
 self dismounted and proceeded to surround the young 
 sheep. As we walked up to it, the lamb came up to me 
 bleating, licked my hand, and then I noticed there was a 
 little sleigh-bell tied to its neck with a blue ribbon. The 
 lamb looked up at us with almost human eyes, and I was 
 going to .suggest that we let it alone, when McCarty 
 grabbed it by the hind legs and was going to strap it to his 
 saddle, when it set up a bleating, and a little boy come 
 rushing out of the house, a bright little fellow about three 
 years old, who could hardly talk plain. I wanted to hug 
 him, he looked so much like a little black-eyed baby at 
 home, that was too awfully small to say "good bye, papa" 
 when I left. The little fellow, with the dignity of an 
 emperor, said, "Here, sir, you must not hurt my little pet 
 lamb. Put him down, sir, or I will call the servants and 
 have you put off the premises." McCarty laughed, and 
 said the lamb would be fine "atin for the boy s," and was 
 pulling the little thing up, when the tears came into the 
 boy s eyes, and that settled it. I said, " Mac, for heaven s 
 sake, drop that lamb. I wouldn t break that little boy s 
 heart for all the sheep-meat on earth. I will eat mule, or 
 dog, but I draw the line at children s household pets. Let 
 the lamb go." " Begorra, yer right," said McCarty, as he 
 let the lamb down. "Luk at how the shep runs to the 
 little bye. Ah, me little mon, yer pet shall not be taken 
 away from yez," and a big tear ran down McCarty s face. 
 The little boy said there was a great big sheep in the 
 
112 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE We PECK 
 
 back yard we could have, if we were hungry, and we went 
 around the house to see. There was an old black ram that 
 looked as though he could whip a regiment of soldiers, but 
 we decided that he was our meat. McCarty suggested 
 that I throw a lariet rope around his horns, and lead him, 
 while he would go behind and drive the animal. That 
 looked feasible, and taking a horse-hair picket rope off my 
 saddle, with a slip noose in the end, I tossed it over the 
 horns of the ram, tied the rope to the saddle, and started 
 The ram went along all right till we got out to the road, 
 when he held back a little. Mac jabbed the ram in the rear 
 with his saber, and he came along all right, only a little 
 too sudden. That was one of the mistakes of the war, 
 Mac s pricking that ram, and it has been the source of 
 much study on my part, for twenty-two years, as to 
 whether the Irishman did it on purpose, knowing the ram 
 would charge on my horse, and butt my steed in the hind 
 legs. If that was the plan of the Irishman, it worked 
 well, for the first thing I knew my horse jumped about 
 eighteen feet, and started down the road towards camp, on 
 a run, dragging the ram, which was bellowing for all that 
 was out. I tried to hold the horse in a little, but every 
 time he slackened up the ram would gather himself and 
 run his head full tilt against the horse, and away he would 
 go again. Sometimes the ram was flying through the air, 
 at the end of the rope, then it would be dragged in the 
 sand, and again it would strike on its feet, and all the time 
 the ram was blatting, and the confounded Irishman was 
 yelling and laughing. We went into the camp that way, 
 and the whole regiment, hearing the noise, turned out to 
 see us come in. As my horse stopped, and the ram was 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 113 
 
 caught by a colored man, who tied its legs, I realized the 
 ridiculousness of the scene, and would have gone off some 
 where alone and hated myself, or killed the Irishman, but 
 just then I saw the captain, and I said, " Captain, I have 
 to report that the perilous expedition was a success. 
 There s your sheep/ and I rode away, resolved that that 
 was the last time I should ever volunteer for perilous duty. 
 The Irishman was telling a crowd of boys the particulars, 
 and they were having a great laugh, when I said : 
 
 "McCarty, you are a villain. I believe you set that 
 ram on to me on purpose. Henceforth we are strangers/* 
 
 "Be gob," said the Irishman, as he held his sides with 
 laughter, " yez towld me to drive the shape, and didn t I 
 obey?" 
 
114 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PEUK 
 
 CHAPTER IX. 
 
 BACON AND HARD-TACK IN DANGER OF AGUE IN SEARCH OF 
 WHISKY AND QUININE I AM APPOINTED CORPORAL I MAKE 
 A SPEECH 1 AM THE LEADER OF TEN PICKED MEN I AM 
 WILLING TO RESIGN. 
 
 The next day we arrived at a post where rations were 
 plenty, and where it was announced we should remain for 
 a week or two, so we drew tents and made ourselves as 
 comfortable as possible. It did seem good to again be 
 where we did not have to depend on our own resources, of 
 stealing, for what we wanted to eat. To be able to draw 
 from the commissary regular rations of meat, tea, coffee, 
 sugar, baker s bread, and beans, was joy indeed, after what 
 we had gone through, and we almost made hogs of our 
 selves. There was one thing those few days of starvation 
 taught us a lesson, and that was, when ordered on a trip 
 with two days rations, to take at least enough for six 
 days, especially of coffee and salt pork or bacon. With 
 coffee and a piece of old smoked bacon, a man can exist a 
 long time. I remember after that trip, wherever I went, 
 there was a chunk of bacon in one of my saddle-bags that 
 nobody knew anything about, and many a time, on long 
 marches, when hunger would have been experienced 
 almost as severe as the time written about last week, I 
 would take out my chunk of bacon, cut off a piece and 
 spread it on a hard-tack, and eat a meal that was more 
 strengthening than any meal Delmonico ever spread. It 
 was at this post that the boys in the regiment played a 
 
PITT DOWN THE REBELLIOH. 115 
 
 trick that caused much fun throughout all the army. 
 There were a few men in each company who had the chills 
 and fever, or ague, and the surgeon gave them each morn 
 ing, a dose of whisky and quinine. It was interesting to see 
 a dozen soldiers go to surgeon s call, take their "bitters," 
 and return to their quarters. The boys would go to the 
 surgeon s tent sort of languid, and drag along, and after 
 swallowing a good swig of whisky and quinine they would 
 walk back to their quarters swinging their arms like Pat 
 Rooney on the stage, and act as though they could whip 
 their weight in wild cats. I got acquainted with the hos 
 pital steward, and he said if the boys were not careful they 
 would all be down with the ague, and that an ounce of 
 prevention was worth more than a pound of cure. I 
 thought I would take advantage of his advice, so I fell in 
 with the sick fellows the next morning, and when the doc 
 tor asked, "What s the matter?" I said "chills," and he 
 said, "Take a swallow out of the red bottle." I took a 
 swallow, and it was bitter, but it had whisky in it, more 
 than quinine, and the idea of beating the government out 
 of a drink of whisky was pleasure enough to overcome the 
 bitter taste. I took a big swallow, and before I got back 
 to my quarters I had had a fight with a mule-driver, and 
 when the quartermaster interfered I had insulted him 
 by telling him I knew him when he carried a hod, before 
 the war, and I shouted, "Mort, more mort!" until he was 
 going to lather me with a mule whip, but he couldn t 
 catch me. As I run by the surgeon s tent, somebody re 
 marked that I had experienced a remarkably sudden cure 
 for chills. The whisky was not real good, but as I had 
 heard the hospital steward say they had just put in a 
 
116 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE TV. PECK 
 
 requisition for two barrels of it, to be prepared for an 
 epidemic of chills, I thought the boys ought to know it, 
 so that day I went around to the different companies and 
 told the boys how to play it for a drink. There are very 
 few soldiers, in the best regiment, that will not take 2 
 Irink of whisky when far away from home, discouraged, 
 and worn out by marching, and our fellows looked favor 
 ably upon the proposition to all turn out to surgeon s call 
 the next morning. I shall never forget the look on the 
 face of the good old surgeon, as the boys formed in line 
 in front of his tent the next morning. The last time I 
 saw him, he was in his coffin, about five years ago, at the 
 soldier s home, and a few of the survivors of the regiment 
 that lived here had gone out to the home to take a last 
 look at him, and act as mourners at the funeral. He 
 looked much older than when he used to ask us fellows the 
 conumdrum, "What s the matter?" but there was that 
 same look on his white, cold face that there was the morn 
 ing that nearly the whole rogiment reported for "bitters." 
 There must have been four hundred men in line, and it 
 happened that I was the first to be called. When he asked 
 me about my condition, and I told him of the chills, he 
 studied a minute, then looked at me, and said, <f You are 
 bilious. David, give him a dose of castor oil/ I know I 
 turned pale, for it was a great come down from quinine 
 and whisky to castor oil, for a healthy man, and I kicked. 
 I told him I had the shakes awfully, and all I wanted was 
 a quinine powder. I knew they had put all their quinine 
 into a barrel of whisky, so I was safe in asking for dry 
 quinine. The good old gentleman finally relented on the 
 castor o*l, and told David to give me a swallow of the 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 117 
 
 quinine bitters, but there was a twinkle in his eye, as he 
 noticed what a big swallow I took, and then he said, 
 "You will be well tomorrow; you needn t come again." I 
 dropped out of the ranks, with my skin full of quinine 
 and whisky, and watched the other fellows. 
 
 There were men in the line who had never been sick a 
 day since they enlisted, big fellows that would fight all 
 day, and stand picket all night, and who never knew what 
 it was to have an ache. And it was amusing to see them 
 appear to shake, and to act as though they had chills. 
 Some of them could not keep from laughing, and it was 
 evident that the doctor had his doubts about there being so 
 many cases of chills, but he dosed out the quinine and 
 whisky as long as there was a man who shook. As each 
 man took his dose, he would show two expressions on his 
 face. One was an expression of hilarity at putting himself 
 outside of a good swig of whisky, and the other was an ex 
 pression of contempt for the bitter quinine, and an evident 
 wish that the drug might be left out. When all had been 
 served, they lingered around the surgeon s quarters, talk 
 ing with each other and laughing, others formed on for a 
 stag quadrille, and danced while a nigger fiddled. Some 
 seemed to feel as though they wanted some one to knock a 
 chip off their shoulders, old grudges were talked over, and 
 several fights were prevented by the interference of friends 
 who were jolly and happy, and who did not believe in 
 fighting for fun, when there was so much fighting to be 
 done in the way of business. The old doctor walked up 
 and down in front of his tent in a deep study. He was 
 evidently thinking over the epidemic of ague that had 
 broken out in a healthy regiment, and speculating as to its 
 
118 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 cause . Suddenly an idea seemed to strike him, and he 
 walked up to a crowd of his patients, who were watching a 
 couple of athletes, who had just taken their quinine, and 
 who had put on boxing gloves and were pasting each other 
 in the nose. "One moment," said the old doctor. The 
 boys stopped boxing, and every last "sick" man listened 
 respectfully to what the old doctor said; "Boys," said he, 
 "you have got it on me this time. I don t believe a con 
 founded one of you have got ague at all. You ( shook me 
 for the whisky. After this, quinine will be dealt out raw, 
 without any whisky, and now you can shake all you please/ 
 Some one proposed three cheers for the boys that had made 
 Uncle Sam stand treat, and the cheers were given, and the 
 boys separated to talk over the event. The next morning 
 only the usual number of sick were in attendance at sur 
 geon s call. The healthy fellows didn t want to take quinine 
 raw. 
 
 About this time an incident occurred that was fraught 
 with great importance to the country and to me, though 
 the historians of the war have been silent about it in their 
 histories, whether through jealousy or something else I do 
 not know, and modesty has prevented me from making 
 any inquiries as to the cause. The incident alluded to was 
 my appointment as corporal of my company. I say the 
 incident was "fraught" with importance. I do not know 
 the meaning of the word "fraught," but it is frequently 
 used in history in that connection, and I throw it in, be 
 lieving that it is a pretty good word. The appointment 
 came to me like a stroke of paralysis. I was not conscious 
 that my career as a soldier had been such as to merit pro 
 motion. I could not recall any particularly brilliant mill- 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 119 
 
 tary achievement that would warrant my government 
 selecting me from the ranks and conferring honors upon me, 
 unless it was my lasooing that ram and dragging him into 
 camp, when we were out of meat. But it was not my place 
 to inquire into the cause that had led to my sudden pro 
 motion over the rank and file. I thought if I made too 
 many inquiries it would be discovered that I was not such 
 an allfired great soldier after all. If the government had 
 somehow got the impression that I was well calculated to 
 lead hosts to victory, and it was an erroneous impression, 
 it was the governments place to find it out without any 
 help on my part. I would accept the position with a cer 
 tain dignity, as though I knew that it was inevitable that 
 I must sooner or later come to the front. So when the 
 captain informed me that he should appoint me Corporal, 
 I told him that I thanked him, and through him, the 
 Nation, and would try and perform the duties of the ex 
 acting and important position to the best of my ability, 
 and hoped that I might not do anything that would bring 
 discredit upon our distracted country. He said that would 
 be all right, that he had no doubt the country would pull 
 through. That evening at dress parade the appointment 
 was read, and I felt elated. I thought it singular that the 
 regiment did not break out into cheers, and make the 
 welkin ring, though they may not have had any welkin to 
 ring. However, I thought it was my duty to make a little 
 speech, acknowledging the honor conferred upon me, as I had 
 read that generals and colonels did when promoted. I took 
 off my hat and said, " Fellow soldiers." That was the end 
 of my speech, for the captain turned around and said to 
 orderly sergeant, " Stop that red-headed cusses mouth 
 
120 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 some way," and the orderly told me to dry up. Everybody 
 was laughing, I supposed at the captain. Anyway, I felt 
 hurt, and when we got back to camp the boys of all the 
 companies surrounded me to offer congratulations, and I 
 was called on for a speech. Not being in the ranks, no 
 body could be prevent me from speaking, so I got up on a 
 barrel, and said; 
 
 FELLOW SOLDIERS: As I was about to remark, when 
 interrupted by the captain, on dress parade, this office has 
 some to me entirely unsought. It has not been my wish 
 to wear the gilded trappings of office and command men, 
 but rather to fight in the ranks, a private soldier. I enlisted 
 as a private, and my ambition has been to remain in the 
 ranks to the end of the war. But circumstances over 
 which I have no control has taken me and placed me on 
 the high pinnacle of Corporal, and I must bow to the 
 decree of fate. Of course, in my new position there must 
 necessarily be a certain gulf between us. I have noticed 
 that there has been a gulf between me and the officers, 
 and I have thought it wrong. I have thought that pri 
 vates and officers should mingle together freely, and share 
 each others secrets, privations and rations. But since 
 being promoted I can readily see that such things cannot 
 be. The private has his position and the officer has his, 
 and each must be separate. It is not my intention to 
 make any radical changes in the conduct of military 
 affairs at present, allowing things to go along about as they 
 have, but as soon as I have a chance to look about me, cer 
 tain changes will be made. All I ask is that you, my 
 fellow soldiers, shall stand by me, follow where I shall 
 lead and " 
 
PUT DOWN- THE REBELLION. 121 
 
 At thi& point in my address the head of the barrel on 
 which I stood fell in with a dull thud, and I found myself 
 up to the neck in corned-beef brine. The boys set up a 
 shout, some fellow kicked over the barrel, and they began 
 to roll it around the camp with me in it. This was a 
 pretty position for a man just promoted to the proud 
 position of Corporal. As they rolled me about and yelled 
 like Indians, I could see that an official position in that 
 regiment was to be no sinecure. All official positions have 
 more or less care and responsibility, but this one seemed 
 to me to have too much. Finally they spilled me out of 
 the barrel, and I was a sight to behold. My first idea was 
 to order the whole two hundred fellows under arrest, and 
 have them court-martialed for conduct unbecoming soldiers; 
 but on second thought I concluded that would seem an 
 Arbitrary use of power, so I concluded to laugh it off. One 
 fellow said they begged pardon for any seeming disrespect 
 to an official; but it had always been customary in the 
 regiment to initiate a corporal who was new and too fresh 
 with salt brine. I said that was all right, and I invited 
 them all up to the chaplain s tent to join me in a glass of 
 wine. The chaplain was away, and I knew he had received 
 & keg of wine from the sanitary commission that day, so 
 we went up to his tent and drank it, and everything passed 
 ^ff pleasantly until the chaplain happened in. The boys 
 dispersed as soon as he came, and left me to fight it out 
 #iih the good man. lie was the maddest truly good man 
 V have ever seen. I tried to explain about my promotion, 
 and that it was customary to set em up for the boys, and 
 that there was no saloon near, and that he had always 
 fcold me to help myself to anything I wanted; but he 
 
122 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 wouldn t be calm at all. I tried to quote from Paul s 
 epistle about taking a little wine for the stomach-ache; but 
 he just raved around and called me names, until I had to 
 tell him that if he kept on I would, in my official capacity 
 as corporal, place him under arrest. That seemed to calm 
 him a little, for he laughed, and finally he said I smelled of 
 stale corned-beef, and he kicked me out of his tent, and I 
 retired to my quarters to study over the mutability of 
 human affairs, and the unpleasant features of holding 
 official position. 
 
 That night I dreamed that General Grant and myself 
 were running the army in splendid shape, and that we 
 were in receipt of constant congratulations from a grateful 
 country, for victories. He and I seemed to be great chums. 
 I dreamed of engagements with the enemy, in which I led 
 men against fearful odds, and always came out victorious. 
 I woke up before daylight and was wondering what dan 
 gerous duty I would be detailed to lead men upon, when 
 the orderly poked his head in my tent and told me I was 
 detailed to take ten picked men, at daylight, for hard ser 
 vice, and to report at once. I felt that my time had come 
 to achieve renown, and I dressed myself with unusual care, 
 putting on the blouse with two rows of buttons, which I 
 had brought from home. I borrowed a pair of Corporal s 
 chevrons and sewed them to the sleeves of my blouse, and 
 was ready to die, if need be. I placed a Testament I had 
 brought from home, inside my blouse, in a breast pocket, 
 as I had read of many cases where a Testament had been 
 struck with a bullet and saved a soldier s life. I placed all 
 my keepsakes in a package, and told my tent mate that I 
 was going out with ten picked men, and it was possible I 
 
PUT DOWK THE REBELLION". 126 
 
 might never show up again, and if I fell he was to send 
 the articles to my family. I wondered that I did not feel 
 afraid to die. I was no professor of religion, though I had 
 always tried to do the square thing all around, but with no 
 consolation of religion at all, I felt a sweet peace that was 
 indescribable. If it was my fate to fall in defence of my 
 country, at the head of ten picked men, so be it. Some 
 body must die, and why not me. I was no better than 
 thousands of others, and while life was sweet to me, and I 
 had anticipated much pleasure in life, after the war, in 
 shooting dacks and holding office, I was willing to give up 
 all hope of pleasure in the future, and die like a thorough 
 bred. I was glad that I had been promoted, and wondered 
 if they would put " Corporal " on my tombstone. I won 
 dered, if I fell that day at the head of my n en, if the 
 papers at the North, and particularly in Wisconsin, would 
 say " The deceased had just been promoted, for gallant 
 conduct, to the position of Corporal, and it will be hard to 
 fill his place." With these thoughts I sadly reported to 
 the orderly. The ten picked men were in line. They were 
 all six-footers, four of them Irishmen, two Yankees, two 
 Germans, a Welshman and a Scotchman. The orderly 
 gave me a paper, sealed in an envelope. I turned to my 
 men, and said, "Boys, whatever happens today, I don t 
 want to see any man show the white feather. The world 
 will read the accounts of this day s work with feelings of 
 awe, and the country will care for those we leave behind. * 
 We started off, and it occurred to me to read my instruc 
 tions. I opened the envelope with the air of a general 
 who was accustomed to receive important messages. I 
 read it, and almost fainted. It read: "Report to the 
 
124 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 quartermaster, at the steamboat landing, to unload quarter- 
 master s stores from steamer Gazelle." Ye gods ! And 
 this was the hard service that I was to lead ten picked men 
 into. They had picked out ten stevedores, to carry sacks 
 of corn, and hard-tack boxes, and barrels of pork, and that 
 was the action I was to engage in as my first duty as cor 
 poral. I almost cried. We rode down to the landing, 
 where a dozen teams were waiting to be loaded. It was all 
 I could do to break the news to my picked men that they 
 were expected to lug sacks of corn instead of fight, and 
 when I did they kicked at once. One of the Irishmen said 
 he would be teetotally d d if he enlisted to carry corn foi 
 mules, and he would lay in the guard-house till the war 
 was over before he would lift a sack. There was a strike 
 on my hands to start on. I was sorry that I had permitted 
 myself to be promoted to Corporal. Trouble from the 
 outset. One of the Yankees suggested that we hold an in 
 dignation meeting, so we rode up in front of a cotton ware 
 house and dismounted. The Scotchman was appointed 
 chairman, and for half an hour the ten picked men dis 
 cussed the indignity that was attempted to be heaped upon 
 them, by compelling them to do the work of niggers. 
 
 They argued that a cavalry soldier s duty was exclu 
 sively to ride on horseback, and that there was no power 
 on earth to compel them to carry sacks of corn. One of 
 the Dutchmen said he could never look a soldier in the face 
 again after doing such menial duty, and he would not sub 
 mit to it. The Scotch chairman said if he had read the 
 articles of war right there was no clause that said that the 
 cavalry man should leave his horse and carry corn. I was 
 called upon for my opinion, and said that I was a little 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 125 
 
 green as to the duties of a soldier, but supposed we had to 
 do anything we were ordered to do, but it seemed a little 
 tough. I told them I didn t want any mutiny, and it would 
 be a plain case of mutiny if they refused to work. One of 
 the Irishmen asked if I would help carry sacks of corn, 
 and I told him that as commander of the expedition it 
 would be plainly improper for me to descend to a common 
 day laborer. I held it to be the duty of a corporal to stand 
 around and see the men work. They all said that was 
 too thin, and I would have to peel off my coat and work if 
 they did. I told them I couldn t lif fc a sack of corn to save 
 me, but they said if that was the case I ought not to have 
 come. The quartermaster was looking around for the 
 detail that was to unload the boat, and he asked me if I 
 had charge of the men detailed to unload. I told him that I 
 did have charge of them when we left camp, but that they 
 had charge of me now, and said they wouldn t lift a pound. 
 He thought a minute, and said, <s I don t like to see you 
 boys carrying corn sacks, and rolling pork barrels. Why 
 don t you chip in and hire some niggers." The idea 
 seemed inspired. There were plenty of niggers around 
 that would work for a little money. One of the Irishmen 
 moved that the Corporal hire ten niggers to unload the 
 quartermasters stores, and the motion was carried unani 
 mously. I would have voted against it, but the Scotchman, 
 who was chairman, ruled that I had no right to vote. So 
 I went and found ten niggers that agreed to work for fifty 
 cents each, and they were set to work, the quartermaster 
 promising not to tell in camp about my hiring the work 
 done. One of my Dutchmen moved that, inasmuch as we 
 had nothing to do all day, that we take in the town, and 
 10 
 
186 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 play billiards, and whoop it up until the boat was unloaded. 
 That seemed a reasonable proposition, and the motion car 
 ried, after an amendment had been added to the effect that 
 the Corporal stay on the boat and watch the niggers, and 
 see that they didn t shisk. So my first command, my ten 
 picked men, rode off up town, and I set on a wagon and 
 watched my hired men. It was four o clock in the after 
 noon before the stuff was all loaded, and after paying the 
 niggers five dollars out of my own pocket, some of my 
 bounty money, I went up to town to round up my picked 
 men to take them to camp. I found the Scotchman pretty 
 full of Scotch whisky. He had found a countryman who 
 kept a tailor shop, who had a bag pipe, and they were hav 
 ing a high old time playing on the instrument, and singing 
 Scotch songs. I got him on his horse, and we looked for 
 the rest. The two Germans were in a saloon playing pee- 
 nuckel, and singing German songs, and their skins were 
 pretty full of beer and cheese. They were got into the 
 ranks, and we found the Irishmen playing forty-five in a 
 saloon kept by a countryman of theirs, and they had evi 
 dently had a shindig, as one of them had a black eye and a 
 scratch on his nose, and they were full of fighting whisky. 
 The Yankees had swelled up on some kind of benzine and 
 had hired a hack and taken two women out riding, and 
 when we rounded them up each one had his feet out of the 
 window of the hack, and they were enjoying themselves 
 immensely. The Welchman was the only one that waa 
 sober, but the boys said there was not enough liquoi in the 
 South to get him drunk. When I got them all mounted 
 they looked as though they had been to a banquet . We 
 started for cam -but I did not want to take them in until 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 12? 
 
 after dark, so we rode around the suburbs of the town until 
 night drew her sable mantle over the scene. They insisted 
 on singing until within half a mile of camp, and it would 
 no doubt have been good music, only the Scotchman in 
 sisted on singing " The March of the Cameron Men/ while 
 the Irishmen sung "Lots of fun at Finnegan s Wake/ and 
 the German s sung " Wacht am Rhine." The Yankees 
 sung the "Star Spangled Banner/ and the Welchman 
 sung something in the Welch language which was worse 
 than all. All the songs being sung together, of course 1 
 couldn t enjoy either of them as well as a Corporal ought 
 to enjoy the music of his command. Arriving near camp, 
 the music was hushed, and we rode in, and up to the cap 
 tain s tent, where I reported that the corn was unloaded, 
 all right. He said that was all right. Everything would 
 have passed off splendidly, only one of the Irishmen pro 
 posed "three cheers for the dandy Corporal of the regi 
 ment/ and those inebriated, "picked men," gave three 
 cheers that raised the roof of the colonel s tent near by, 
 because I had hired niggers to do the work, and let the 
 men have a holiday. I dismissed them as quick as I could, 
 but the colonel sent for me, and I had to tell him the 
 whole story. He said I would demoralize the whole regi 
 ment in a week more, and I better let up or he would have 
 to discipline me. I offered to resign my commission as 
 Corporal, but he said I better hold on till we could have & 
 fight, and may be 1 would get killed. 
 
128 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 CHAPTER X. 
 
 YEARNINGS FOR MILITARY FAME WHAT I WANT is A CHANCE 
 I FEEL I COULD CRUSH THE REBELLION MY CHANCE AR 
 RIVESI AM CRUSHED THE REBELLION REMAINS PRETTY 
 WELL. 
 
 As I could get no one to accept my resignation as 
 corporal, which I tendered after my first service in that 
 capacity, unloading a steamboat, I decided to post myself 
 as to the duties of the position, so I borrowed a copy of 
 " Hardee s Tactics," and studied a good deal. Every place 
 in the book that mentioned the word "corporal," had a 
 particular and thrilling interest for me, and I soon got so 
 it would have been easy for me to have done almost any 
 thing that a corporal would have to do. But I was not 
 contented to study the duty of a corporal. I read about 
 the " school of the company," and the "school of the reg 
 iment," and battalion drills, and everything, until I could 
 handle a regiment, or a brigade, for that matter, as well as 
 any officer in the army, in my mind. This led me to go 
 farther, and I borrowed a copy of a large blue book the 
 colonel had, the name of which I do not remember now, 
 but it was all military, and told how to conduct a battle 
 successfully. I studied that book until I got the thing 
 down so fine that I could have fought the battle of Gettys 
 burg successfully, and I longed for a chance to show what 
 I knew about military science and strategy. It seemed 
 wonderful to me that one small red-head could contain 
 so much knowledge about military affairs, and I felt a pilj 
 
PUT BOWS THE REBELLION-. 
 
 for some officers I knew who never had studied at all, and 
 did not know anything except what they had picked up. 
 I fought battles in my mind, day and night. Some nights 
 I would lay awake till after midnight, planning campaigns, 
 laying out battle-fields, and marching men against the 
 enemy, who fought stubbornly, but I always came ou 
 victorious, and then I would go to sleep and dream that 
 the President and secretary of war had got on to me, as it 
 were, and had offered me high positions, and I would wake 
 up in the morning the same red-headed corporal, and cook 
 my breakfast. Sometimes I thought it my duty to inform 
 the government, in some round about way, what a bonanza 
 the country had in me, if my talent could only be utilized 
 by placing me where I would have a chance to distinguish 
 myself, and bring victory to our arms. I reflected that 
 Grant, and Sherman, and Sheridan, and all of the great 
 generals, were once corporals, and by study they had risen. 
 There was not one of them that could dream out a battle 
 and a victory any better that I could. All I wanted was a 
 chance. Just give me men enough, and turn me loose in 
 the Southern Confederacy, with that head of mine, and 
 the result would be all an anxious nation could desire. 
 
 My first chance came sooner than I expected. The 
 next day a part of the regiment went out on a scout, to be 
 gone a couple of days, and my company was along. I was 
 unusually absorbed in thought, and wondered if I would 
 be given a chance to do anything. It seemed reasonable 
 that if any corporal was sent out with a squad of men, to 
 fight, it would be an old corporal, while if there was any 
 duty that was menial, the new corporals would get it. The 
 second day out we stopped at noon to let our horses rest, 
 
130 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 when little scouting parties that had been sent out on dif 
 ferent roads during the forenoon, began to come in. Many of 
 them had picked up straggling rebels, and brought them to 
 camp, and they were carefully guarded, and the major, who 
 was in command of our party, was asking them questions, 
 and pumping them to find out all he could. I went over 
 and looked at them, and they were quite a nice looking lot 
 of fellows, some being officers, with plenty of gold lace on 
 their gray suits. They were home from the Confederate 
 army on a leave of absence, probably recruiting. After 
 talking with a rebel officer for a time the major turned to 
 the adjutant and said, "send me a corporal and ten men." 
 The adjutant started off, and I followed him. I used to 
 know the adjutant when he taught a district school, before 
 the war, and I asked him as a special favor to let me be the 
 corporal. He said the detail would be from my company, 
 and if I could fix it with the orderly sergeant of my com 
 pany it was all right. I rushed to my company and found 
 the orderly, and got him to promise if there was a detail 
 from the company that day, I could go. Before the words 
 were out of his mouth the detail came, and in five minutes 
 I reported to the major with ten men. The major simply 
 told me that a certain rebel captain, from Lee s army, was 
 reported to be at home, and his plantation was about four 
 miles east, and he described it to me. He told me to 
 ride out there, surround the house, capture the captain, 
 and bring him into camp. 
 
 No general ever received his orders in regard to fighting 
 a battle, with a feeling of greater pride and responsibility 
 than I did my orders to capture that rebel. We started 
 out, and then for the first time I noticed that there was 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 131 
 
 another corporal in the squad with me, and at once it oc 
 curred to me that he might claim a part of the glory of 
 capturing the rebel. I had heard of the jealousy existing 
 between generals, and how the partisans of different gen 
 erals filled the newspapers, after a battle, with accounts of 
 the part taken by their favorites, and that the accounts got 
 so mixed up that the reader couldn t tell to whom the 
 credit of success was due, and I decided to take prompt 
 measure with this supernumerary corporal, who had evi 
 dently got in by mistake, so I told him he might go back 
 to the regiment. He said he guessed not. He had been 
 detailed to go on the scout, and he was going, if he knew 
 himself, and he thought he did. He said when it come 
 right down to rank, he was an older corporal than I was, 
 and could take command of the squad if he wanted to. I 
 told him he was mistaken as to his position. That if the 
 major had wanted him to take charge of the expedition, 
 he would have given him the instructions, but as the major 
 had given me the instructions, in a low tone of voice, no 
 body but myself knew where we were going or what w 
 were going for, arid that I was responsible, and the first in 
 timation I had from him that he wanted to mutiny, or re 
 lieve me from my command, I would have him shot at 
 once. I told him he could go along, but he must keep his 
 mouth shut, and obey orders. He said he would obey, 
 if he felt like it. We moved on, and I would have given a 
 month s pay if that corporal had not been there. In a 
 ahort time we were in sight of the house, and at a cross 
 road I told the corporal to take one man and stop there, 
 until further orders, and if any rebel came along, to cap 
 ture him. He was willing enough to stay there, because 
 
132 HOW PEIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 there was a patch of musk melons just over the fence. I 
 moved my remaining eight men to a high piece of ground 
 near the house, and halted, to look over the field of battle. 
 Pulling a spy glass from my pocket, which I had borrowed 
 from the sutler, I surveyed, as near like a general as pos 
 sible, the situation. On one side of the house was a ravine, 
 which I decided must be held at all hazards, and after 
 studying my copy of tactics a moment, I sent an Irishman 
 over there to hold the key to the situation, and told him he 
 might consider himself the Iron Brigade. The lay of the 
 ground reminded me much of pictures I had seen of the 
 battle of Bull Eun, and the road on which I had left the 
 corporal and one man, was the road to Washington, on 
 which we would retreat, if overcome by the enemy. To 
 the right of the ravine, which was held by the Iron 
 Brigade, I noticed a hen-house with a gate leading back to 
 the nigger quarters, and I called a soldier and told him to 
 make a detour behind a piece of woods, and at a signal 
 from me, the waving of my right arm, to charge directly 
 to the gate of the hen-house, and hold it against any force 
 that might attempt to carry it, and to let no guilty man 
 escape. Fifteen years afterwards Gen. Grant used those 
 self-same words, "Let no guilty man escape," and they 
 became historic, but I will take my oath I was the first 
 commander to use the words, when I sent that man to hold 
 the gate of the hen-house. That man I denominated the 
 First Division. Farther to the right was a field of sweet 
 potatoes, in which was a colored man digging the potatoes. 
 I sent a Dutchman to hold that field, with the right rest 
 ing on the left of the First Division, located at the gate of 
 the hen-house, whose right was supposed to rest on the left 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 133 
 
 of the Iron Brigade, the Irishman who commanded the 
 ravine. Then I turned my attention to the left of the 
 battle-field, placed one man at the milk-house, with his left 
 resting on the right of the Irishman, and a man at the 
 smoke-house. This left three men, one of whom I ap 
 pointed an aid de camp, one an orderly and the other I 
 held as a reserve, at a cotton gin. When I had got my 
 army into position, I sat under a tree and reflected a little, 
 and concluded that the Iron Brigade was in rather too ex 
 posed a position, so I sent my aid de camp to order the 
 Iron Brigade to move forward, under cover of the ravine, 
 and take a position behind a mule-shed. The aide soon 
 returned and reported that the Iron Brigade had taken off 
 his shirt and kanoodled a negro woman to wash it for him, 
 and would not be able to move until the shirt was dry. 
 
 This altered my plans a little, but I was equal to the 
 emergency, and ordered my reserve to make a detour and 
 take the mule-shed, and hold it until relieved by the Iron 
 Brigade, which would be as soon as his shirt was dry, and 
 then to report to me^ on the field. Then I took my aide 
 and orderly, and galloped around the lines, to see that all 
 was right. I found that the First Division, holding the 
 gate of the hen-house, was well in hand, though he had 
 killed five chickens, and had them strapped on his saddle, 
 and was trying to cut off the head of another with his 
 sabre. He said he thought I said to let no guilty hen 
 escape. I found the Iron Brigade dismounted, his shirt 
 hung on a line to dry, and the colored woman had 
 been pressed into the Federal service, and was frying a 
 chicken for the Brigade. I told him to get his shirt on as 
 soon as it was dry, and move by forced marches, to relieve 
 
134 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 the force holding the mule-shed, and the Iron Brigade 
 said he would as soon as he had his dinner. I found the 
 Division composed of the Dutchman, stubbornly holding 
 the sweet-potato field, and he was eating some boiled ham 
 and corn-bread he had sent the nigger to the house after, 
 and he had a bushel of sweet-potatoes in a sack strapped 
 to his saddle. The force at the milk-house had a fine 
 position, and gave me a pitcher of butter-milk, which I 
 drank with great gusto. I do not know as there is any 
 thing in butter-milk that is stimulating, but after drink 
 ing it my head seemed clearer, and I could see the whole 
 battle-field, and anticipate each movement I should cause 
 to be made. I was so pleased with the butter-milk, on the 
 eve of battle, that I ordered the Second Division to fill my 
 canteen with it, which he did. Then I rode back to my 
 headquarters, where I started from, having ridden clear 
 around the beleaguered plantation. Presently the reserve 
 returned to me and reported that he had been relieved by 
 the Iron Brigade at the mule-shed, whose shirt had become 
 dry, and who had given the reserve a leg of fried chicken, 
 and a corn dodger. I took the leg of chicken away from 
 my reserve, eat it with great relish, and prepared for the 
 onslaught, the reserve picking some persimmons off a tree 
 and eating them for lunch. I was about to. order the dif 
 ferent divisions and brigades of my army to advance from 
 their different positions, and close in on the enemy, when 
 a colored man came out of the house and moved toward 
 me, signalling that he would fain converse with me. I 
 struck a dignified attitude, by throwing my right leg over 
 the pommel of the saddle, like a hired girl riding a plow- 
 horse to town after a doctor, and waited. When he came 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 135 
 
 dp to me, he said, " Massa wants to know what all dis dam 
 foolishness is about. He says if you all don t go away 
 from here he will shoot de liver outen you all." I told the 
 negro to be calm, and not cause me to resort to extreme 
 measures, and I asked him if his master was at home. He 
 said he was, and he was a bad man wid a gun. He had 
 killed plenty of men before the war, and since the war he 
 had killed more Yankees than enough to build a rail-fence 
 around the plantation. I did not exactly like the reports 
 in regard to the enemy. I told the colored man to take a 
 flag of truce to his master, and tell him I would like an in 
 terview. The colored man went to the house, and I sent 
 for the Iron Brigade to report to me at once, in light 
 marching order, and the Irishman came riding up without 
 any shirt on. I caused the Brigade to put on his shirt, 
 when I sent him to the house, to follow the flag of truce 
 and feel of the enemy. He went to the house, and was 
 evidently invited in, for he disappeared. I waited half an 
 hour for him, and as he did not show up, I called th Sec 
 ond Division, and sent the Dutchman to the hou^e. The 
 Second Division went in, and did not come out. A ordered 
 the whole right wing of my army to deploy to my support, 
 and the fellow at the hen-house gate came, and I uent him 
 in after the Irishman and the Dutchman. He didn t come 
 back, and I sent an orderly after the force stationed at the 
 milk-house, and he came, and I sent him, with the same 
 result. It was evident I was frittering away my command, 
 with no good result, so I looked at my tactics, and decided 
 to hold a council of war. My aide, orderly, and reserve, 
 three besides myself, composed the council of war. The 
 three were in favor of ordering up the other corporal and 
 
136 HOW PEIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 man from the cross-roads, but I opposed it. I did not 
 want the other corporal to have any finger in the pie. So 
 I decided that the four of us would go in a body to the 
 house and demand the surrender of the rebel captain. We 
 rode down the lane where the other men had gone, and it 
 was a question whether we ever came back alive. I thought 
 they had a trap door in the house, which probably let the 
 soldiers down suddenly into a dungeon. Certainly unless 
 there was something of the kind my men would have come 
 back. As we dismounted at the door; and walked up the 
 steps, the door opened and a fine looking rebel officer ap 
 peared, smiling. 
 
 "Come in, Captain, with your men, and join me in a 
 glass of wine/ said the rebel. 
 
 I had never been called "Captain" before, and it 
 touched me in a tender spot. The rebel evidently thought 
 I looked like a captain, and I was proud. He had prob 
 ably watched my maneuvers, and the way I handled my 
 men, and thought I was no common soldier. 
 
 "Well, I don t care if I do," said I, and we walked 
 into a splendid old room, and were bidden to be seated. 
 
 * Hello, Corp," said my Iron Brigade, as he took his 
 legs down from a table, and poured out a glass of whisky 
 from a bottle near him, " This is the divil s own place for 
 an aisy life." 
 
 " Gorporal," said my Dutch fellow soldier, as he poured 
 out a glass of schnapps, "Led me indroduce you mit 
 dot repel. He is a tasy, und don d you forgot aboud it. 
 Mishder repel, dot ish der gorporal fun my gumpany." 
 
 The rebel smiled and said he was glad to see me, and 
 hoped I was well, and would I take wine, or something 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 137 
 
 stronger. I took a small glass of wine, but the rest of the 
 fellows took strong drink, and my Iron Brigade was already 
 full, and the Dutchman was getting full rapidly. Finally 
 I told the rebel officer that I did not like to accept a man s 
 hospitality when I had such an unpleasant duty to perform 
 as to arrest him, but circumstances seemed to make it nec 
 essary. He said that was all right. In times of war we 
 must do many things that were unpleasant. We took 
 another drink, and then I told him I was sorry to incon 
 venience him, but he would have to accompany me to 
 camp. He said certainly, he had expected to be captured 
 ever since he saw that the house was surrounded, and 
 while at first he had made up his mind to take his rifle and 
 kill us all from the gallery of the house, he had thought 
 better of it, and would surrender without bloodshed. What 
 was the use of killing any more men ? The war was 
 nearly over, and why not submit, and save carnage. I 
 told him that was the way I felt about it. Then he said if 
 I would wait until he retired to an adjoining room and 
 changed his linen, he would be ready. I said of course, 
 certainly, and he went out of a door. I waited about half 
 an hour, until it seemed to me the rebel had had time to 
 change all the linen in the state of Alabama. The Iron 
 Brigade had gone to sleep on a lounge, and the German 
 troop was full as a goat, and some of the others were be 
 ginning to feel the hospitality. 
 
 " I beg your pardon for intruding," said I, as I opened 
 -the door and walked into the room the rebel had entered. 
 t( Great Scott, he is gone I" 
 
 My army, all except the Iron Brigade and the Dutch 
 man, followed me, and the room was empty. A window 
 
138 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 was up, through which he had escaped. We searched the 
 house, but there was no rebel captain. On going to the 
 front door I found that the horse belonging to the iron 
 brigade was gone, and that the saddle girths of all the 
 other horses had been unbuckled, so we would be delayed 
 in following him. The Irishman was awakened, and when 
 he found his horse was gone, he sobered up and went to 
 the pasture and borrowed a mule to ride. 
 
 It took us half an hour to fix our saddles, so we could 
 ride, and then we sadly started for camp. How could 1 
 face the major, and report to him that I had met the rebel 
 captain, talked with him, drank with him, enjoyed his hos 
 pitality, and then let him escape? I felt that my military 
 career had come to an inglorious ending. We rode slow, 
 because the Iron Brigade was insecurely mounted on a 
 slippery bare-backed mule. As we neared the corporal and 
 one man, that I had left to guard the cross-roads, I noticed 
 that there was a stranger with them, and on riding closer 
 what was my surprise to find that it was the rebel captain, 
 under arrest. So the confounded corporal, whom 1 had 
 left there so he would be out of the way, and not get any 
 of the glory of capturing the rebel, had captured him, and 
 got all the glory. I was hurt, but putting on a bold mili 
 tary air, like a general who has been whipped, I said: 
 
 " Ah, corporal, I see my plan has worked successfully. 
 I arranged it so this prisoner would run right into the 
 trap." 
 
 " Yes," said the corporal, throwing away a melon rind 
 that he had been chewing the meat off of, " I saw his nibs 
 coming down the road, and I thought may be he was the 
 one you wanted, so I told him to halt or I would fill his 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 139 
 
 lungs full of lead pills, and he said he guessed he would 
 halt. He said it was a nice day, and he was only trying 
 one of the Yankee cavalry horses, to see how he liked it." 
 " Here, you murdherin divil, get down afl that harse," 
 said the Iron Brigade, who had got awake enough to see 
 that the rebel was on his horse. Take this mule, and 
 lave a dacent gintleman s harse alone." 
 
 The rebel smiled, dismounted, gave the Irishman his 
 horse, mounted the mule, and we started for camp. I was 
 never so elated in my life aa 1 was when I rode into camp 
 with that rebel captain beside me on the mule. The object 
 of the expedition had been accomplished, a little different, 
 it is true, from what I had expected and planned, but who 
 knew that it was not a part of my plan to have it turn out 
 as it did? I reflected much, and wondered if it was right 
 for me to report the capture of the Confederate and say 
 nothing about the part played by the other corporal. That 
 corporal was no military strategist, like me. It was just a 
 streak of luck, his capturing the rebel. He was leaning 
 against the fence where I left him, eating melons, and the 
 rebel came along, and the corporal quit chewing melon long 
 enough to obey my orders and arrest the fellow. By all 
 rules of military law I was entitled to the credit, and I 
 would take it, though it made me ashamed to do so. How 
 ever, generals did the same thing. If a major-general 
 was in command, and ordered a brigadier-general to do a 
 thing, and it was a success, the major-general got the 
 credit in the newspapers. So I rode into camp and turned 
 my prisoner over to the major as modestly as possible, with 
 a few words of praise of my gallant command. 
 " Hello, Jim," said the major to the rebel. 
 
140 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 " Hello, Maje," said the rebel. 
 
 " Better take off them togs now, and join your com 
 pany," said the major. 
 
 "I guess so," said the rebel, and he took off his rebel 
 uniform, and the major handed him a blue coat and pair 
 of pants, and he put them on. 
 
 I was petrified. The fact was, the " rebel " was a ser 
 geant in our regiment, who had been detailed as a scout, 
 and had been making a trip into the rebel lines as a 
 spy. I had made an ass of myself in the whole business, 
 and he would tell all the boys about it. I went back to my 
 company crushed. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 141 
 
 CHAPTER XL 
 
 I AM DETAILED TO BUILD A BRIDGE IT WAS A GOOD BRIDGE, 
 BUT OVER THE WRONG STREAM THE GENERAL APPEARS 
 I AM CRUSHED, IN FACT PULVERIZED ! I AM ATTACKED 
 WITH RHEUMATISM. 
 
 After the episode, related last week, in which I fool 
 ishly organized a regular battle, to capture a supposed 
 rebel, who turned out to be a member of my own regi 
 ment, I expected to be the laughing stock of all the sol 
 diers, and that my commission as corporal would be taken 
 away from me, and that I would be reduced to the ranks, 
 and when, the next morning, the colonel sent for me to 
 come to his tent, it was a stand-off with me whether I 
 would take to the woods and desert, in disgrace, and never 
 show up again, or go to the colonel, face the music, and 
 admit that I had made an ass of myself. Finally I de 
 cided to visit the colonel. On the way to his tent I 
 noticed that our force had been augmented greatly. The 
 road was full of wagons, the fields near us were filled with 
 infantry and artillery, and there were fifty wagons or more 
 loaded with pontoons, great boats, or the frame- work of 
 boats, which were to be covered with canvass, which was 
 water-proof, and the boats were to be used for bridges 
 across streams. The colonel had not told me anything 
 about the expected arrival of more troops, and it worried 
 me a good deal. May be there was a big battle coming off, 
 and I might blunder into it unconscious of danger, and 
 ge ; the liver blowed out of me by a cannon. I felt that 
 11 
 
142 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 the colonel had not treated me right in keeping me in 
 ignorance of all this preparation. I went to the colonel s 
 tent and there was quite a crowd of officers, some with 
 artillery uniforms, several colonels, and one general with a 
 star on his shoulder straps, and a crooked sword with a 
 silver scabbard, covered with gold trimmings. I felt quite 
 small with those big officers, but I tried to look brave, and 
 as though I was accustomed to attending councils of war. 
 The colonel smiled at me as I came in which braced me up 
 a good deal. 
 
 " General, this is the sergeant I spoke to you about," 
 said the colonel, as he turned from a map they had been 
 looking at. I felt pale when the colonel addressed me as 
 sergeant, and was going to call his attention to the mis 
 take, when the general said : 
 
 " Sergeant, the colonel tells me that you can turn your 
 hand to almost anything. What line of business have you 
 worked at previous to your enlistment ? " 
 
 " Well, I guess there is nothing that is usually done in 
 a country village that I have not done. I have clerked in 
 a grocery, tended bar, drove team on a threshing machine, 
 worked in a slaughter house, drove omnibus, worked in a 
 saw-mill, learned the printing trade, rode saw-logs, worked 
 in a pinery, been brakeman on a freight train, acted as as 
 sistant chambermaid in a livery stable, clerked in a hotel, 
 worked on a farm, been an auctioneer, edited a newspaper, 
 took up the collection in church, canvassed for books, been 
 life-insurance agent, worked at bridge-building, took tin 
 types, sat on a jury, been constable, been deck-hand on a 
 steamboat, chopped cord-wood, run a cider-mill, and drove 
 a stallion in a four-minute race at a county fair." 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLIOH. 143 
 
 " That will do," said the general. " You will be placed 
 in charge of a pioneer corps, and you will go four miles 
 south, on the road, where a bridge has been destroyed 
 across a small bayou, build a new bridge strong enough to 
 cross artillery, then move on two miles to & river you will 
 find, and look out a good place to throw a pontoon bridge 
 across. The first bridge you will build under an artillery 
 fire from the rebels, and when it is done let a squad of 
 cavalry cross, then the pontoon train, and a regiment of 
 infantry. Then light out for the river ahead of the pon 
 toon train, with the cavalry. The pioneer corps will be 
 ready in fifteen minutes." 
 
 The colonel told me to hurry up, but I called him 
 out of his tent and asked him if I was really a ser 
 geant, or if it was a mirage." He said if I made a suc- 
 ces of that bridge, and the command got across, and I was 
 not killed I would be appointed sergeant. He said the 
 general would try me as a bridge-builder, and if I was a 
 success he would try me, no doubt, in other capacities, such 
 as driving team on a threshing machine, and editing a 
 newspaper. 
 
 Well, I went off after my horse, feeling pretty proud. 
 The idea of being picked out of so many non-commissioned 
 officers, and placed in charge of a pioneer corps, and sent 
 ahead of the army to rebuild a bridge that had been de 
 stroyed, with a prospect of being promoted or killed, was 
 glory enough for one day, and I rode back to headquarters 
 feeling that the success of the whole expedition rested on 
 me. If I built a corduroy bridge that would pass that 
 whole army safely over, artillery and all, would anybody 
 enquire ^ r ho built the bridge. Of course, if I built a bridge 
 
144 HOW PEIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 that would break down, and drown somebody, everybody 
 would know who built it. The twenty men were mounted, 
 and ready, and the general told me to go to the quarter 
 master and get all the tools I wanted, and I took twenty 
 axes, ten shovels, two log chains, and was riding away, 
 when the general said : 
 
 " When you get there, and look the ground over, make 
 up your mind exactly at what hour and minute you can 
 have the bridge completed, and send a courier back to in 
 form me, and at that hour the head of the column will be 
 there, and the bridge must be ready to cross on." 
 
 I said that would be all right, and we started out. In 
 about forty minutes we had arrived at the bayou, and I 
 called a private soldier who used to do logging in the 
 woods, and we looked the tning over. The timber neces 
 sary was right on the bank of the stream. 
 
 " Jim," I said to the private, " I have got to build a 
 bridge across this stream strong enough to cross artillery. 
 I shall report to the general that he can send along his 
 artillery at seventeen minutes after eight o clock this 
 evening. Am I right ? " 
 
 " Well," said Jim, as he looked at the standing timber, 
 at the stream, and spit some black tobacco juice down on 
 the red ground, " I should make it thirty-seven minutes 
 after eight. You see, a shell may drop in here and kill a 
 mule, or something, and delay us. Make it thirty-seven, 
 and I will go you." 
 
 We finally compromised by splitting the difference, and 
 I sent a courier back to the general, with my compliments, 
 and with the information that at precisely eight o clock 
 and twenty-seven minutes he could start across. Then we 
 
PUT DOWN THE REJ3ELL10K. 145 
 
 fell to work. Large, long trees were cut for stringers, and 
 hewn square, posts were made to prop up the stringers, 
 though the stringers would have held any weight. Then 
 small trees were cut and flattened on two sides, for the 
 road-bed, holes bored in them and pegs made to drive 
 through them into the stringers. A lot of cavalry soldiers 
 never worked as those men did. Though there was only 
 twenty of them, it seemed as though the woods were full 
 of men. Trees were falling, and axes resounding, and men 
 yelling at mules that were hauling logs, and the scene re 
 minded me of logging in the Wisconsin pineries, only these 
 were men in uniform doing the work. About the middle 
 of the afternoon we had the stringers across, when there 
 was a half dozen shots heard down the stream, and bullets 
 began " zipping " all around the bridge, and we knew the 
 rebels were onto the scheme, and wanted it stopped. I got 
 behind a tree when the bullets began to come, to think it 
 over. My first impulse was to leave the bridge and go 
 back and tell the general that I couldn t build no bridge 
 unless everything was quiet. That I had never built 
 bridges where people objected to it. 1 asked the private 
 what we had better do. He said his idea was to knock off 
 work on the bridge for just fifteen minutes, cross the 
 stream on the stringers, and go down there in the woods 
 and scare the life out of those rebels, drive them away, and 
 make them think the whole army was after them, then 
 cross back and finish the bridge. That seemed feasible 
 enough, so about a dozen of us squirreled across the string 
 ers with our carbines, and the rest went down the stream 
 on our side, and all of us fired a dozen rounds from our 
 Spencer repeaters, right into the woods where the rebels 
 
146 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 seemed to be. When we did so, the rebels must have 
 thought there was a million of us, for they scattered too 
 quick, and we had a quiet life for two hours. We had got 
 the bridge nearly completed, when there was a hissing 
 sound in the air, a streak of smoke, and a powder maga 
 zine seemed to explode right over us. I suppose I turned 
 pale, for I had never heard anything like it. Says I, 
 "Jim, excuse me, but what kind of a thing is that?" 
 Jim kept on at work, remarking, " 0, nothing only they 
 are a shellin on us." And so that was a shell. I had 
 read of shells and seen pictures of them in Harper s 
 Weekly, but I never supposed I would hear one. Presently 
 another came, and I wanted to pack up and go away. I 
 looked at my pioneers, and they did not pay any more at 
 tention to the shells than they would to the braying of 
 mules. I asked Jim if there wasn t more or less danger 
 attached to the building of bridges, in the South, and he, 
 the old veteran, said : v 
 
 "Corp, don t worry as long as they hain t got our 
 range. Them ere shell are going half a mile beyond us, 
 and we don t need to worry. Just let em think they are 
 killing us off by the dozen, and they will keep on sending 
 shells right over us. If we had a battery here to shell 
 back, they would get our range, and make it pretty warm 
 for us. But now it is all guess work with them, and we 
 are as safe as we would be in Oshkosh. Let s keep right 
 on with the bridge." 
 
 I never can explain what a comfort Jim s remarks were 
 to me. After listening to him, I could work right along, 
 driving pegs in the bridge, and pay no attention to the 
 shells that were going over us. In fact, I lit my pipe and 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 147 
 
 smoked, and began to figure how much it was going to 
 cost the Confederacy to "celebrate" that way. It was 
 costing them at the rate of fourteen dollars a minute, and 
 I actually found myself laughing at the good joke on the 
 rebels. Pretty soon a courier rode up, from the general, 
 asking if the shelling was delaying the bridge. I sent 
 word back that it was not delaying us in the least; in fact, 
 it was hurrying us a little, if anything, and he could send 
 along his command twenty-seven minutes sooner than I 
 had calculated, as the bridge would be ready to cross on 
 at eight o clock sharp. At a quarter to eight, just as the 
 daylight was fading, and we had lighted pine torches to 
 see to eat our supper, an orderly rode up and said the 
 general and staff had been looking for me for an hour, 
 and were down at the forks of the road. I told the orderly 
 to bring the general and staff right up to the headquarters, 
 and we would entertain them to the best of our ability, 
 and he rode off. Then we sat down under a tree and 
 smoked and played seven up by the light of pine torches, 
 and waited. I was never so proud of anything in my life, 
 as I was of that bridge, and it did not seem to me as 
 though a promotion to the position of sergeant was going 
 to be sufficient recompense for that great feat of engineer 
 ing. It was as smooth as though sawed plank had covered 
 it, and logs were laid on each side to keep wagons from 
 running off. I could see, in my mind, hundreds of 
 wagons, and thousands of soldiers, crossing safely, and I 
 would be a hero. My breast swelled so my coat was too 
 tight. Presently I heard some one swearing down the 
 road, the clanking of sabres, and in a few moments the 
 general rode into the glare of the torch-light. I had 
 
148 HOW PRIVATE GEOKGE W. PECK 
 
 struck an attitude at the approach of the bridge, 
 thought that I would give a good deal if an artist could 
 take a picture of my bridge, with me, the great engineer, 
 standing upon it, and the head of the column just ready 
 to cross. I was just getting ready to make a little speech 
 to the general, presenting the bridge to him, as trustee of 
 the nation, for the use of the army, when I got a sight of 
 his face, as a torch flared up and lit the surroundings. It 
 was pale, and if he was not a madman, I never saw one. 
 He fairly frothed at the mouth, as he said, addressing a 
 soldier who had fallen in the stream, during the afternoon, 
 and who was putting on his shirt, which he had dried by a 
 fire: 
 
 "Where is the corporal, the star idiot, who built that 
 bridge?" 
 
 I couldn t have been more surprised if he had killed 
 me. This was a nice way to inquire for a gentleman who 
 had done as much for the country as I had, in so short a 
 time. I felt hurt, but, summoning to my aid all the gall 
 I possessed, I stepped forward, and, in as sarcastic a, man 
 ner as I could assume, I said: 
 
 "I am the sergeant, sir, who has wrought this work, 
 made a highway in twelve hours, across a torrent, and 
 made is possible for your army to cross." 
 
 " Well, what do you suppose my army wants to cross 
 this confounded ditch for? What business has the 
 army got in that swamp over there ? You have gone 
 off the main road, where I wanted a bridge built, and 
 built one on a private road to a plantation, where nobody 
 wants to cross. This bridge is of no more use to me than 
 , bridge across the Mississippi river at its source. You, 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 14! 
 
 sir, have just simply raised hell,, that s what you have 
 done." 
 
 Talk about being crushed! I was pulverized. I felt 
 like jumping into the stream and drowning myself. For a 
 moment I could not speak, because I hadn t anything to 
 say. Then I thought that it would be pretty tough to go off 
 and leave that bridge without the general s seeing what a 
 good job it was,, so I said: 
 
 "Well, general, I am sorry you did not give me more 
 explicit instructions, but I wish you would get down and 
 examine this bridge. It is a daisy, and if it is not in the 
 right place we can move it anywhere you want it." 
 
 That seemed to give the general an idea, and he dis 
 mounted and examined it. He said it was as good a job 
 as he ever saw, and if it was a mile down the road, across 
 another bayou, where he wanted to cross, he would give a 
 fortune. I told him if he would give me men enough and 
 wagons enough, I would move it to where he wanted it, 
 and have it ready by daylight the next morning. He 
 agreed, and that was the hardest nights work I ever did. 
 Every stick of timber in my pet bridge had to be taken off 
 separately, and moved over a mile, but it was done, and at 
 daylight the next morning I had the pleasure of calling the 
 general and telling him that the bridge was ready. I 
 thought he was a little mean when he woke up and rubbed 
 his eyes, and said 
 
 "Now, you are sure you have got it in the right place 
 this time, for if that bridge has strayed away onto any 
 body s plantation this time, you die." 
 
 The army crossed all right, and I had the proud pleas 
 ure o^ standing by the bridge until the last man was across, 
 
HOW PRIVATE GEOEGE W. PECK 
 
 when I rode up to my regiment and reported to the colonel, 
 pretty tired.* He was superintending the laying of a 
 pontoon bridge across a large river, a few miles from my 
 bridge, and he said: 
 
 " George, the general was pretty hot last night, but he 
 vas to blame about the mistake in the location, and he 
 says he is going to try and get you a commission as lieu 
 tenant." 
 
 I felt faint, but I said, " How can he recommend a star 
 idiot for a commissioned office? 
 
 " 0, that is all right," said the colonel, " Some of the 
 greatest idiots in the army have received commissions." 
 As he spoke the rebels began to shell the place where the 
 pontoon bridge was being built, and I went hunting for a 
 place to borrow an umbrella to hold over me, to ward off 
 
 * A few weeks ago I met a member of my old regiment, who is travel 
 ing through the South as agent for a beer bottling establishment in the 
 North. He was with me when we built the corduroy bridge twenty-two 
 years ago. As we were talking over old times he asked me if I remembered 
 that bridge we built one day in Alabama, in the wrong place, and moved it 
 during the night. I told him I wished I had as many dollars as I remembered 
 that bridge. " Well," said my comrade, " on my last trip through Alabama 
 crossed that bridge, and paid two bits for the privilege of crossing. A 
 man has established a toll-gate at the bridge, and they say he has made a 
 fortune. I asked him how much his bridge cost him, and he said it didn t 
 cost him a cent, as the Yankees built it during the war. He said they cut 
 the timber on his land, and when he got out of the Confederate army he was 
 busted, and he claimed the bridge, and got a charter to keep a toll-gate." My 
 comrade added that the bridge was as sound as it was when it was built. He 
 said he asked the toll-gate keeper if he knew the bridge was first built a mile 
 away, and he said he knew the timber was cut up there, and he wondered 
 what the confounded Yankees went away off there to cut the timber for, 
 when they could get it right on the bank. Then my comrade told the toll- 
 gate keeper that he helped build the bridge, the rebel thanked him, and 
 wanted to pay back the two bits. Some day I am going down to Alabama 
 and cross on that bridge again, the bridge that almost caused me to commit 
 suicide, and if that old rebel for he must be an old rebel now charges me 
 two bits toll, I shall very likely pull off my coat and let him whip me, and 
 then as likely as not there will be another war. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 151 
 
 the pieces of shell. Then a battery of our own opened on 
 the rebels, so near me that every time a gun was discharged 
 I could feel the roof of my head raise up like the cover to a 
 band box. It was the wildest time I ever saw. Cavalry 
 was swimming the river to charge the rebel battery, shells 
 were exploding all around, and it seemed to me as though 
 if I was to lay a pontoon bridge I would go off somewhere 
 out of the way, where it would be quiet. Finally my regi 
 ment was ordered to swim the river, and we rode in. The 
 first lunge my horse made he went under water about a 
 mile, and when we came up I was not on him, but catch 
 ing hold of his tail I was dragged across the river nearly 
 drowned, and landed on the bank like a dog that has been 
 after a duck, I shook myself, we mounted and without 
 waiting to dry out our clothes we went into the fight, before 
 I could realize it, or back out. Scared! I was so scared it is 
 a wonder I did not die. That was more excitement than a 
 county fair. Bullets whizzing, shells shrieking, smoke 
 stifling, yelling that was deafening. It seemed as though 
 I was crazy. I must have been or I could never, as a raw 
 recruit, with no experience, have ridden right toward 
 those guns that were belching forth sulphur and pieces of 
 blacksmith shop. I didn t dare look anywhere except 
 right ahead. All thought of being hit by bullets or any 
 thing was completely out ol my mind. Occasionally some 
 thing would go over me that sounded as though a buzz 
 saw had been fired from a saw mill explosion. Pres 
 ently the firing on the rebel side ceased, and it was 
 seen they were in retreat. I was never so glad of 
 anything in my life. We stopped, and I examined 
 my clothes, and they were perfectly dry. The ex- 
 
152 HOW PRIVATE GriORGE W. PECK 
 
 citement and warmth of the body had acted like a drying- 
 room in a laundry. Then I laid down under a fence and 
 went to sleep, and dreamed I was in hades, building a 
 corduroy bridge across the Styx, and that the devil repre- 
 manded me for building it in the wrong place. When I 
 awoke I was so stiff with rheumatism that I had to be 
 helped up from under the fence, and they put me in an am 
 bulance with a soldier who had his jaw shot off. He was 
 not good company, because I had to do all the talking. 
 And in that way we moved towards the enemy. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 153 
 
 CHAPTER XII. 
 
 I AM INSTRUCTED TO CAPTURE AND SEARCH A FEMALE SMUGGLER 
 I PROTEST IN VAIN THE TERRIBLE ORDEAL BEACTY BE 
 HIND THE PULPIT PILLS, PLASTERS, QUININE THE PATHETIC 
 LETTER WE MEET UNDER HAPPIER STARS. 
 
 It was at this time that the hardest duty that it was my 
 lot to perform during my service, fell to me, and the only 
 wonder to me is that I am alive today to tell of it. If 1 
 ever get a pension it will be on account of night sweats, 
 caused by the terrible and trying work that was assigned 
 to me. One day the colonel sent for me, and I knew at 
 once that there was something unusual in the wind. After 
 seating myself in his tent he opened the subject by asking 
 me if I wasn t something of a hand to be agreeable to the 
 ladies. I told him, with many blushes, that if there was 
 one thing on this earth that I thought was nicer than 
 everything else, it was a lady, and that a good woman was 
 the noblest work of God. He said he was on to all of that, 
 but it wasn t a good woman that he was after. That 
 startled me a little. I had heard the officers had a habit 
 of fooling around a good deal with certain females, and I 
 told the colonel that any duty that I was assigned to I 
 would perform to the best of my poor ability, but I could 
 not go around with the girls as officers did, because I 
 couldn t afford it, and it was against my principles, any 
 way. He showed me a picture of a beautiful woman, and 
 asked me if I would know her if I saw her again. I told 
 Mm I could pick her out of a thousand. He said sne was 
 
HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 a smuggler. She had a pass from a general, who seemed 
 to be under her influence to a certain extent, for some 
 reason, and went in and out of the lines freely. The 
 general didn t want to order her arrest, because she would 
 squeal on him, but he wanted her arrested all the same, 
 and the idea was to have some corporal in charge of a 
 picket post take the responsibility of arresting her without 
 orders,ref use to recognize her pass, take the quinine and other 
 medicines, and money away from her, and then be arrested 
 himselt for exceeding his authority. He said they wanted 
 a corporal who had every appearance of being a big-headed 
 idiot, and yet who knew what he was about, who knew 
 something about women, and who could do such a job up 
 in shape, and never let the woman know that the general 
 or anybody had anything to do with her arrest. The idea 
 was to catch her in the act of smuggling quinine through 
 the lines to the rebels, by the act of a fresh corporal who 
 took the matter into his own hands, and who claimed that 
 the pass she had from the general was a forgery. Then the 
 general could, when the woman was brought before him, 
 be indignant at the corporal for insulting a woman, and 
 order him arrested, and he could also go back on the 
 woman, and have her sent away, after which he would re 
 lease the corporal, and perhaps promote him, and all would 
 be well. It was as pretty a scheme as I ever listened to, 
 and I consented to do the duty, though I wouldn t do it 
 again for a million dollars. The colonel told me to take 
 four men and go to a particular place on an unfrequented 
 road, near a school house, and put out a picket. The 
 female would be along during the afternoon, on horseback, 
 and when she showed her pass, one of the men must take 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 155 
 
 hold of her horse and hold him, while I kicked about the 
 pass, made her dismount, and searched her for quinine. 
 I turned ashy pale when the colonel said that, and I said 
 to him: 
 
 " Colonel, for heaven s sake don t compel me to search 
 a woman. I have a family at home, and they will hear of 
 it. My political enemies will use it against me at home 
 when I run for office, after the war. Let me bring her 
 here to your tent, and you search her." 
 
 "No, that would spoil all/ said the colonel. "We 
 want her searched right there at the little school house, by 
 a corporal without apparent authority, and every last 
 quinine i)ill taken off of he*\ If she was brought here she 
 would cry, and rare, ana we snouid weaken, because we 
 know her, and have been entertained at her house. You 
 are supposed to be a heartless corporal, with no sentiment, 
 no mercy, no nothing, just a delver after smuggled quinine. 
 Besides, I too, have a family, and I don t want to search 
 no females. By the way, one of the general s staff saw 
 her last night, and drew the cartridges from her revolver, 
 and put in some blank cartridges. If the worst comes, she 
 will draw her revolver on you, and perhaps fire at you, 
 but there are no balls in* her revolver, so you needn t be 
 afraid." 
 
 " But suppose she has two revolvers," I asked, "and one 
 is loaded with bullets?" 
 
 "I don t think she has," said the colonel. "But we 
 have to take some chances, you know. Now go right 
 *!ong. Treat her like a lady, disbelieve everything she 
 says, and insist on searching her. The general says she 
 wears an enormous bustle, and probably that is full of 
 
 12 
 
156 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 j 
 
 quinine. Use your judgement, but get it all. Pretend to 
 be an ignorant sort of a corporal who feels that the success 
 of the war depends on him, act as though you outranked 
 the general, and tell her you would not let her pass with 
 that quinine if the general himself was present. Just dis 
 play plenty of gall, and when you have got the quinine, bring 
 the girl here, and I will abuse you, and you take it like a 
 little man, and all will be well. If she bites and scratches, 
 some of you will have to hold her, but the best way will be 
 to argue with her, and persuade her by honied words, to 
 come down with the quinine. Go!" 
 
 ff One word, colonel, before I go," I said. " About 
 how many men should you think it would take to hold 
 this woman? You suggested three, but if one holds her 
 horse, it seems to me, from my knowledge of female kick 
 ing, biting and scratching, that I would need one man for 
 each arm and foot, one to hold her head and choke her, if 
 necessary, and one with a roving commission to work 
 around where he would be apt to make himself useful. 
 What do you say if I take five men ? " 
 
 " All right, take six," said the colonel. te One may be 
 disabled, or have his jaw kicked off, or something. But 
 don t detail anybody to search her. Do that yourself, and 
 do it like a gentleman. And above all things, do not let 
 her kanoodle you with soft words and looks of love, be 
 cause she is full of em. If she can t scare you, with her 
 indignation at the outrage of arresting and searching her, 
 ehe will try to capture you and make you love her. You 
 must be as firm as adamant. Now hurry up." 
 
 I picked out six men, four of whom were young Amen* 
 Cftns, rather handsome, and very polite, regular mashers. 
 
fcOWtf 1HE EBBxiLLlOK. 157 
 
 Then I had an Irishman named Duffy, and a German 
 named Holzmeyer, who was a butcher. We went out on 
 the road, to the school house, and I put the Irishman on 
 picket, and instructed the German about taking the horse 
 by the bridle at the proper time. Then the rest of us got 
 behind the school house and waited. For two hours we 
 waited, and I had a chance to think over the situation. 
 Here I was, putting down the rebellion, laying for a 
 woman, who was loaded. At home, I was a polite man, 
 and full of fun, a person any lady might be proud to meet 
 and talk with, but here I was expected to do something, 
 for thirteen dollars a month, to put down the rebellion, 
 which there was not money enough in the whole state of 
 Wisconsin to hire me to do. Was it such a crime to carry 
 a little quinine to a sick friend ? Suppose a rebel was 
 sick with ague, and I had quinine, would I see him shake 
 himself out of his boots and not give him medicine? No, 
 I would divide my last quinine powder with him. So 
 would any soldier. If it was not treason to give one rebel 
 a quinine powder, when he was sick, why should it be 
 treason to take along enough for a whole lot of sick rebels? 
 Did our government want to put down the rebellion by 
 keeping medicines away from a sick enemy? Were we to 
 gloat over the number of rebels who died of disease, that 
 we could save by sending them medicines? It seemed to 
 me, if I was in command of the army, instead of arresting 
 women for carrying medicine to their sick brothers, I 
 would load up a wagon with medicine and send it to them, 
 and say, " Here, you fellows, fire this quinine down your 
 necks, and get well, and then if you want to fight any 
 more, come out on the field and we will give you the best 
 
158 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 turn in the wheel-house. " It seemed to me that would be 
 the way to win the enemy over, and that they would be 
 thankful, take the medicine, get well, and then say, 
 " Boys, these Yankees are pretty good fellows after all. 
 Let s quit fighting, and call it quits/ But I was not run 
 ning the war, and had got to obey orders, if I broke heart 
 strings and corset strings. I would have given anything 
 to have got out of the job. The idea of arresting a woman 
 and searching her, and seeing her cry, and have her think 
 me a hard-hearted wretch, was revolting, and I found my 
 self wishing she would take some other road. May be she 
 looked like somebody that I knew at home, and may be 
 she had a big broker in the Confederate army who would 
 look me up after the war and everlastingly maul the life 
 out of me for insulting his sister. I made up my mind if 
 anything of that kind happened I would tell on the general 
 and the colonel, and get them whipped, too. 
 
 " Phat the divil is it coming," said the Irishman. 
 "Corporal of the guard, the quane of all the South is 
 coming down the road, riding a high stepper. Phat will I 
 do, I dunno ? " 
 
 " Stop her," I yelled with my teeth chattering. 
 
 Halt right fhere yez are," said the Irishman, with a 
 look on his face that showed he was well, that he was an 
 Irishman, and had an eye for beauty. The German had 
 taken the horse by the bit, and I stepped out from behind 
 the school house. 
 
 Great heavens, but she was a beautiful woman, and she 
 sat on her horse like a statue. I had never seen a more 
 beautiful woman. She was a brunette, with large black 
 eyes, and her face was flushed with the exercise of riding. 
 
PUT DOWK THE REBELLION". 150 
 
 She smiled and showed two rows of the prettiest teeth that 
 ever were put into a female mouth, and one ungloved hand, 
 with which she handed me the pass had a dimple at every 
 knuckle, and was as white as paper, and soft as silk. 1 
 know it was soft, because it touched my red, freckled hand 
 when I took the pass. I did not blame the general foi 
 being in love with her, or for wanting to saw oif the un 
 pleasant duty of breaking up her smuggling, on to a pooi 
 orphan like me. She said : 
 
 "Captain, I have a pass from the general, to go 
 through the lines at any time, unmolested." 
 
 " It is no good," I said, examining it. " This pass i? 
 evidently a forgery." 
 
 " But, my dear captain," she said, with a smile that I 
 would give ten dollars for a picture of, " The pass is not 2 
 forgery. I have used it for months." 
 
 " I am not a dear captain, only a cheap corporal," ] 
 said, with an attempt to be at my ease, which I wasn t. 
 " There has been at least a wagon load of quinine smug 
 gled through the lines on this pass, and it has got to stop ; 
 you cannot go." 
 
 " The dickens you say," said she as she drew her re 
 volver, and sung out, "let go that horse," and firing at 
 the German. 
 
 " Kritz-dunner wetter," said the German, as he got 
 down by the horse s fore feet, and held on to the bridle, 
 " vot vor you choot a man ven he holt your horse ? " 
 
 " Madame," I said, " your revolver is loaded with 
 blank cartridges, and you can do no harm. Try another 
 one on the Irishman." 
 
 "Hold on," said the Irishman, "and don t experiment 
 
160 HOW PRIVATE GEOEGE W. PECK 
 
 on a poor man who has a wife and six children. Shoot the 
 corporal." 
 
 But I had reached up and taken the revolver from her, 
 and she was weak as a kitten. Her nerve had forsaken 
 her, and when I told her to dismount she was like a rag, 
 and had to be helped down. If she was beautiful before, 
 now that she had started her tear mill, she was ravishingly 
 radiant, and I felt like a villain. She leaned on my shoul 
 der, and it was the loveliest burden a soldier ever held. I 
 seated her on the steps of the schoolhouse, and I thought 
 she would faint, but she didn t. She was evidently taken 
 by surprise, and wanted a little time to think it over, and 
 form a plan. So did I. As I looked her over, and thought 
 what I was expected to do, I wondered where it would be 
 best to commence. She began to recover, smiled at me 
 and asked me to have the other soldiers go away, so she 
 could talk with me. I wished she wouldn t smile like that, 
 because it unnerved me. She asked me what I was going 
 to do with her, what caused me to suspect her, if I would 
 not believe her if she told me she was not a smuggler, if I 
 had orders to arrest her, and all that. I said, "Madame, 
 my orders are to arrest all quinine smugglers, and you are 
 one. I am Hawkshaw, the detective. For months I have 
 shadowed you, and I know you have concealed about your 
 person a whole drug store. In that innocent looking bus 
 tle I feel that there is quinine for the million. Your heav 
 ing bosom contains, besides love for your friends and 
 hatred of your enemies, a storehouse of useful medicines, 
 contraband of war. In your stockings there is much that 
 would interest the seeker after the truth, your corset that 
 fits you o beautifully is. liable to be full of revolver car* 
 
PUT DOWK THE REBELLION. 161 
 
 iridges, while in your shoes there may be messages to the 
 rebels. I shall search you from Genesis to Revelations, 
 and may the Lord have mercy on both of us. To begin, 
 please let me examine the hat you have on." 
 
 With some reluctance she took off a sort of half -stove 
 pipe hat, and covered her face with her handkerchief while 
 I looked into it. I found a package of newly printed con 
 federate bonds, and a quantity of court plaster. That set 
 tled it. She cried a little, and wanted to go into the 
 schoolhouse. I went in with her, and two of my soldiers. I 
 told her that it was a duty that was pretty tough, but it was 
 necessary for her to disrobe, as I must have every article 
 she had. She cried, and said if I searched her, or molested 
 her, I would do it at my peril, and that I wouldn t know 
 how to go to work to take off her clothes, anyway, and 
 that I ought to be ashamed of myself. I told her I felt as 
 ashamed as any gentleman could, and though I knew little 
 about the details of the female apparel, I had some gen 
 eral ideas about bustles, polonaise, socks, skirts, and so 
 forth, and while I might be awkward, and uncouth, and 
 nervous, as long as there were- buttons to unbutton, hooks 
 to unhook, and safety-pins to unpin, I thought I could 
 eventually get to the quinine, if she would give me time, 
 and I did not faint by the wayside, but my idea was that it 
 would save all trouble, her modesty would not receive a 
 shock, nor mine either, if she would go behind the little 
 pulpit in the schoolhouse, out of sight of us, take off her 
 clothes, and hand them over the pulpit to us to examine. 
 She said she would die first, besides, she knew we would 
 peek around the pulpit at her. I was getting very nervous, 
 and perspiring a good deal, and wishing it was over, and I 
 
J62 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 swore, upon my honor, that if she would go behind the 
 pulpit and disrobe, she should be as safe from intrusion as 
 though she was in her own room. She swore she would 
 not, and I went up to her to commence unraveling the 
 mystery. Her dress hooked up in the back, which I al 
 ways did think a great nuisance, and I began to unhook 
 it. I wondered that she stood so quietly and let me un 
 hook it, but after it was unhooked from the neck to the 
 small of her back, and I was wishing I was dead, she 
 said: 
 
 " There, now that you have got my dress unhooked, a 
 feat I never could accomplish myself, I will go behind the 
 pulpit and take off my dress, if you will promise not to 
 look, and that you will help me hook up my dress when 
 this cruel quinine war is over." 
 
 I told her by the great Jehosephat, and the continental 
 congress, I would help her, and that I would kill anybody 
 who looked, and she went behind the schoolhouse pulpit, 
 where a country preacher, very likely, preached on Sun 
 days, and bent over out of sight, and it wasn t half a min 
 ute before she handed the dress over to me. In the pockets 
 I found several papers of some kind of medicine, and a few 
 small bottles, sealed up with red sealing-wax. 
 
 ( Now, the bustle, please," I said, in a voice trembling 
 with emotion. 
 
 Take your old bustle," she said, as she whacked it on 
 the top of the pulpit. 
 
 Well, if anybody had told me that a bustle could be 
 made to hold stuff enough to fill a bushel-basket, I would 
 not have believed it. We filled three nose-bags, such as 
 cavalrymen feed horses in, with paper packages and bottles 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 163 
 
 of quinine. There were thirty bottles of pills, and salves 
 and ointments, and plasters. 
 
 This is panning out first rate," I said, with less emotion. 
 The emotion was somehow getting out of me, and the 
 affair was becoming more of a mercantile transaction. It 
 was like a young druggist going from the side of his be 
 loved, to the drug store, to take an inventory. "Now 
 hand out that other lot." 
 
 She evidently knew what I referred to, for she handed 
 out over the pulpit a package just exactly the shape of what 
 I had supposed, in my guileless innocence, was a portion 
 of the female form. That is, I had suspected it was not 
 all human form, but didn t know. That was also full of 
 medicines, of which quinine was the larger part, though 
 there was about a pint of gun caps. 
 
 " Speaking about stockings," I said, "please take them 
 off and hand them over." 
 
 She kicked about taking off her shoes and stockings, 
 and said no gentleman would compel a lady to do that. I 
 said I would wait about two minutes, and then, if it was 
 too much trouble for her to take them off, I would come 
 around the pulpit and help. Bless you, I wouldn t have 
 gone for the world, as I was already more than satisfied with 
 what I had found. She said I needn t trouble myself, as 
 she guessed she could take off her shoes without my help. 
 I heard her unlacing her shoes, and pretty soon two dainty 
 shoes and two very long stockings, came over the pulpit, 
 the heel of one shoe hitting me in the ear. As I picked 
 up the shoes I heard the crumpling of a letter behind the 
 pulpit, and I told her I must have all the messages she 
 She said it was only a letter to one she loved. I told 
 
164 HOW PRIVATE GEOEGE W. PECK 
 
 her I must have it, and she handed it over. I read, My 
 darling husband/ and handed it back, saying I would not 
 pry into her family secrets. She began to cry, and in 
 sisted on my reading it, which I did. It was to her hus 
 band, an officer in the Confederate army, and was about 
 as follows : 
 
 " MY DARLING HUSBAND : This life of deception is 
 killing me. I want to do all in my power to help our cause, 
 but I am each day more nervous, and liable to detection. 
 The Yankee officers are frequently at our house, and I have 
 to treat them kindly, but it is all I can do to keep from 
 crying, and I am expected to laugh. I fear that I am sus 
 pected of smuggling, as the subject is frequently brought 
 up in conversation, and I feel my face burn, though I try 
 hard not to show it. I think of you, away off in Virginia, 
 with your armless sleeve, our children in New Orleans, 
 and I wonder if we will ever be united again. 0, God, 
 when will this all end. I have no fault to find with the 
 Federal troops. The officers are very kind and through 
 one fatherly general I am allowed to pass into our lines. I 
 feel that I am betraying his kindness every trip I make, 
 and only the urgent need that our dear boys have for med 
 icines could induce me to do as I do. After this trip I 
 shall go to New Orleans,* where I fear Madge is sick, as she 
 
 *Eighteen months after the lady rode away from me, leaving her quinine, 
 I was in New Orleans, to be mustered in as Second Lieutenant, having re 
 ceived a commission. I had bought me a fine uniform, and thought I was 
 about as cunning a looking f fleer as ever was. I was walking on Canal street, 
 looking in the windows, and finally went into a store to buy some collars. 
 A gentleman came in with a gray uniform on, and one sleeve empty. He 
 was evidently a Confederate officer. He asked me if I did not belong to a 
 certain cavalry regiment, and if my name was not so and so. I told him he 
 was correct. He told me there was a lady in an adjoining store that wanted 
 to see me. I did not know a soul, that is, a female soul, in New Orleans, but 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 165 
 
 wa not at all well the last I heard from her. Pray earn 
 estly, my dear husband, every day, as I do, that this 
 trouble may end soon, some way, and I beg of you not to 
 have a feeling of revenge in your heart towards your ene 
 mies, 011 account of the loss of your arm, as there are 
 thousands of Federals similiarly afflicted. I shall love you 
 more, and I will wrap your empty sleeve about my neck, 
 and try never to miss the strong arm that was my support. 
 Adieu." Your loving wife. 
 
 That letter knocked me out in one round. I had be 
 gun to enjoy the unpacking of the smuggled goods, and 
 the discomfiture of my female smuggler, but when I read 
 that loving letter, breathing such a Christian spirit, and 
 thought of the poor wife-mother behind the pulpit unrav 
 elling herself, I was ashamed, and I said to myself, " she 
 shall not take off another rag." So I handed back the 
 letter and the dress, and all of the things she had taken 
 off, and I said : 
 
 " Put everything right back onto yourself, and come out 
 at your leisure," and we took the medicines and went out 
 
 I went with him. Any lady that wanted to see me, in my new uniform, could 
 see me. As we entered the store a lady left two little girls and rushed up to 
 me, threw her arms around my neck and (say, does a fellow have to tell 
 everything, when he writes a war history?) Well, she was awfully tickled 
 to see me, and she was my smuggler, the Confederate was her husband, and 
 the children were hers. The officer was as tickled as she was, and they com 
 pelled me to go to their house to dinner, and I enjoyed it very much. We 
 talked over the arrest of the " female smuggler," and she said to her hus 
 band, " Pa, it was an awfully embarrassing situation for me and this Yankee, 
 but he treated me like a lady, and the only thing I have to find fault about, 
 is that he forgot to help me hook up my dress, and I rode clear to town with 
 it unhooked." The Confederate had been discharged at the surrender, and 
 3 was on my way to Texas, to serve another year, hunting Indians. I left 
 them very happy, and as I went out of their door ske wrapped his empty 
 aleeve around her waist, drew the children up to her, and said, " Mr. Yan 
 kee, may you always be very happy," 
 
166 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 of the schoolhouse. Presently she came out, and I told 
 her it was my duty to take her back to headquarters, but 
 if she had no objections to my taking the letter to the 
 general, with the medicines, she could go back to the house 
 where she boarded, and I thought if she took the first boat 
 for New Orleans, it would be all right, and I would see 
 that the letter was sent through the lines to her husband. 
 I helped her on her horse, and I said : 
 
 "You can escape. Your horse is better than ours, 
 and though you are a prisoner, we would not shoot at you 
 if you tried to escape. I hope your prayers will have the 
 effect you desire, and that the trouble will soon be over. 
 I hope you will find the children well, and that the hus 
 band will be spared to be a comfort to you." 
 
 She bowed her head, as she sat in the saddle, and the 
 look of defiance which she had shown, was gone, and one 
 of thankfulness, peace, hope, purity, took its place. She 
 handed me the letter, and asked : 
 
 " Can I go?" 
 
 I told her she was free to go. She turned her horse 
 towards town, touched him with the whip, and he was 
 away like the wind. I stood for two minutes, watching 
 her, when I was recalled to my senses by the Irishman, 
 who said : 
 
 " Fhat are we to do wid the quinane and the gun caps?" 
 
 "VVe packed the smuggled goods in our saddle-bags and 
 elsewhere, and rode back to headquarters. The colonel 
 and the general were in the colonel s tent, and I took the 
 stuff in and reported all the occurrences. 
 
 "But where is the lady?" inquired the general, after 
 reading the letter and wiping his eyes. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 167 
 
 "As we were about to start back," said I, "after tak 
 ing the smuggled goods from her, she gave her horse the 
 whip, and rode away. I had no orders to shoot a woman, 
 taid I let her go." 
 
 ee Thank God," said the general. 
 
 "That s the best way," said the colonel. "She will 
 <[uit smuggling and go to her children." 
 
168 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECi" 
 
 CHAPTER XIII. 
 
 THE FEMALE SMUGGLER EPISODE MAKES ME FAMOUS I AM 
 SENT FORTH IN WOMEN S CLOTHES MY INTERVIEW WITH 
 THE BAD CORPORAL A FIST FIGHT THE REBELLION is 
 Pur DOWN ONCE MORE I REVEAL MY IDENTITY. 
 
 It was not twenty-four hours before the news spread all 
 over my regiment, as well as several other regiments, that 
 a certain corporal had captured a female smuggler, while 
 on picket, had searched her on the spot and found a large 
 quantity of quinine and other articles contraband of war^ 
 and there was a general desire to look upon tne leatures of 
 a man, not a commissioned officer who had gall enough to 
 search a female rebel, from top to toe, without orders from 
 the commanding officer, and I was constantly being visited 
 by curiosity-seekers, who wanted to know all about it. Of 
 course it was not known that I had been ordered to do as I 
 did, and they all wondered why I was not made an ex- 
 ample o|; and many privates, corporals and sergeants 
 wondered if they would get out of it so easily if they 
 should do as I did. There were a great niany women pass 
 ing through the lines, arid I am sure many soldiers decided 
 that the first woman who attempted to pass through would 
 get searched. It was talked among the men, and for a day 
 or two a lady would certainly have stood a poor show to 
 have rode up to a picket post with a pass to go outside. 
 The soldiers had so long been away from female society 
 that it would have been a picnic for them to have captured 
 a suspicious looking woman who was pretty. I was pointed 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 169 
 
 out, down town, as the man who captured the woman 
 loaded with quinine, and women with rebel tendencies 
 would look at me as though I was a bold, bad man that 
 ought to be killed, and they acted as though they would 
 like to eat me. But I tried to appear modest, and not as 
 though I had done anything I was particularly proud of. 
 The next evening the colonel sent for me and said he had 
 got something for me to do that required nerve. I told 
 him that my experience in putting down the rebellion had 
 shown me that the whole thing required nerve. That I 
 had been on my nerve until my nerves were pretty near 
 used up, and I asked him if he couldn t let some of the 
 other boys do a little of the nervous work. He said he had 
 one more woman job that he would like to have me under 
 take. I was sick of the whole woman business, and told 
 him I did not want to be aggravated any more ; that ar 
 resting women and searching them, was nothing but an 
 aggravation, and I wanted to be let out. He said in this 
 case I would not have to arrest anybody of the female per 
 suasion, but that I would have to be arrested, and that it 
 would be the greatest joke that ever was. I told him if 
 there was any joke about it he could count me in. Then 
 he went on to say that my success with the female smug 
 gler had excited all the boys to emulate my deeds, and they 
 were all laying for a female smuggler, and that he feared 
 it wouldn t be safe for a woman to be caught on the picket 
 line. There had got to be a stop put to it, and he and the 
 general had thought of a scheme. He said there was a 
 corporal in one of the companies who had made his brags 
 that he would arrest the first female that came to his picket 
 post, and search her for smuggled goods, and they wanted 
 
 is 
 
170 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 to make an example of him. He asked me if I wasn t some 
 thing of a boxeiv and I told him for a light weight I was 
 considered pretty good. Then he asked me if I could ride 
 on a side saddle. I told him I could ride anything, from 
 a hobby to an elephant. He said that was all right, and I 
 would fill the bill. Then he went into details. I was to 
 go to the town with him, and be fitted out with a riding 
 habit of the female persuasion, false hair, side saddle, and 
 a bustle as big as a bushel basket. That I was to ride out 
 on a certain road, where the corporal would be on picket 
 with two men. He would stop me, and search me, I was 
 to cry, and beg, and all that, but finally submit to be 
 searched, and after the corporal had got started to search 
 me, I was to haul off and give him one " biff " in the nose, 
 another if it was necessary to knock him down, paste one 
 of the men in the ear, if he showed any impudence, jump 
 on my horse and come back to town, and leave the corporal 
 to find his mistake. 
 
 I didn t half like the idea of dressing up in such a mas- 
 quering costume, but of course if I could help put down 
 the rebellion that way, it was my duty to do it, and be 
 sides, I had a grudge against that corporal, anyway, be 
 cause he called me a "jay "and a "substitute," and a 
 " drafted man," when I came to the regiment. The colo 
 nel took me to the residence of a lady friend who rode on 
 horseback a good deal, and as he let her into the secret, 
 she helped fix me up. All I had to do was to remove my 
 cavalry jacket, and she put the dress on over my head. I 
 always supposed they put on these dresses the same as men 
 put on pants, by walking into them feet first, but she said 
 they went ove^ the head. T felt as though my pants were 
 
PUT DOWK THE REBELLION. 171 
 
 going to show, but she gave me some instructions about 
 keeping the dress down, and I began to feel a good deal 
 like a woman. The dress fit me around the waist as though 
 it was made for me, and when it was all buttoned up in 
 front I felt stunning. She and the colonel made a bustle 
 out of newspapers, and a small sofa cushion of eider down 
 was placed where it would do the most good. After the 
 dress was all fixed, she got a wig and put it on my head, 
 and a hat, with a feather in it, and then pinned a veil on 
 the hair, so it reached down to my rose-bud mouth. 
 Then she took a powder arrangement and powdered my 
 face, put on a pair of long gauntlets which she usually 
 wore, and told me to look in the glass. When I looked 
 into the glass I almost fainted. The deception was so good 
 that it would have fooled the oldest man in the world. 
 The colonel said he was almost inclined to fall in love with 
 me himself, and he did put his arm around me and squeeze 
 me, but I didu t notice any particular feeling, such as I did 
 when his lady friend was fooling around me. That was 
 different. Well, I was an inveterate smoker at that time, 
 so I took my pipe and a bag of tobacco, and put it in a 
 pocket of the dress, and some matches, and we went out 
 doors. The colonel took my tiny number eight boot in 
 his hand and tossed me lightly into the saddle, then he 
 mounted his own horse and we rode around the suburbs of 
 the town, so I could get used to the side-saddle. I got him 
 to stop behind a fence and let me have a smoke out of my 
 pipe, and then I told him I was ready. He gave me a pass, 
 and told me to go out on the road the corporal was on, and 
 if he let me pass out of the lines to go on to a turn in the 
 road, where a squad of our men were on a scout, and to re- 
 
172 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 port to the officer in charge, who would bring me in all 
 right, by another road, but if the corporal attempted to 
 search me, to do as I had been told to do. After I had 
 knocked the corporal down, if I would give a yell, the offi 
 cer who was outside would come and arrest us all and bring 
 us to headquarters, where the colonel could reprimand the 
 corporal, etc. I threw a kiss to the colonel and started 
 out on the road. It was about a mile to the picket post, 
 and I had time to reflect on my position. This was put 
 ting down the rebellion at a great rate. I was an ostensi 
 ble female, liable to be insulted at any moment, but I 
 would maintain the dignity of my alleged sex if I didn t 
 lay up a cent. I put on a proud, haughty look, full of 
 purity and all that, and as I neared the picket post, I saw 
 the corporal step out into the road, and as I came up he 
 told rne to halt. I halted, and handed him my pass, but he 
 said it was a forgery, and ordered me to dismount. I 
 turned on the water, from my eyes, and began to cry, but 
 it run off the bad corporal like water off a duck. 
 
 "None of your sniveling around me," said the vile 
 man. " Get down off that horse." 
 
 "Sir," I said, with well feigned indignation, "you 
 would not molest a poor girl who has no one to defend her. 
 Let me go I prithe." 
 
 I had read that, "Let me go I prithe," in a novel, and 
 it seemed to me to be the proper thing to say, thou 6 n I 
 couldn t hardly keep from laughing. 
 
 " Prithe nothing," said the corporal. " What you got in 
 that bustle?" 
 
 " Bustle," I said, blushing so you could have touched 
 a match to my face. " Why speak of such a thing in the 
 
PUT DOWN" THE REBELLION. 173 
 
 presence of a lady. I want you to let me go or I shall 
 think you are real mean, so now. Please, Mr. Soldier, let 
 me go/ 9 and I smiled at him and winked with my left eye 
 in a manner that ought to have paralyzed a marble statue. 
 
 "0, what you giving us," said the vile man. "Get 
 down off that horse and let me go through you for quinine. 
 Do you hear ? " 
 
 I was afraid if he helped me down he would see my 
 boots or pants, which would be a give-away. So I gathered 
 my dress in my hands and jumped down in pretty good 
 shape. I had sparred with the corporal several times in 
 camp, and I knew I could knock him out easy, and I made 
 up my mind that the first indignity he offered me I would 
 just "lam" him one. It was all I could do to keep from 
 pasting him in the nose, when I first landed on the ground, 
 but I had a part to play, and it would not do to go off half 
 cocked. So I looked sad, pouted my lips, and wondered if 
 he would kiss me, and feel the beard where I had been 
 shaved. 
 
 " Now, shuck yourself/ said he. 
 i "Do what ?" I asked, with apparent alarm. 
 
 " Peel," said he, as he put his hand on my back, where 
 the bustle usually is found on the female form. 
 
 " Sir," I said with my eyes flashing fire, and my heart 
 throbbing, and almost bursting with suppressed laughter, 
 you are insolent. I am a poor orphan, unused to con 
 tact with coarse men. I have been raised a pet, and no 
 vile hand has ever been laid upon me until you just touched 
 me. If you touch me I shall scream. I shall call for help. 
 What would you do, you wicked, naughty man." 
 
 "Unbutton," said he as he pointed to my dress in 
 
174 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 front. " Call for help and be darned. You are a smug 
 gler, and I know it." 
 
 " 0, my Ge-od" said I, with a stage accent, " has it 
 come to this ? Am I to be robbed of all I hold dear, by a 
 common Yankee corporal. Has a woman no rights which 
 are to be respected ? Am I to be murdered in cold bel-lud, 
 with all my sins upon my head. 0, Mr. Man, give me a 
 moment to utter a silent prayer/ 
 
 " 0, hush" said he, " and hold up your hands. There 
 ain t going to be any bel-lud. All I want is to go through 
 you for quinine." 
 
 "Spare me, I beseech you," I said, as I held up my 
 hands, and got in position to knock him silly the first 
 move he made. " I am no walking drug store. I am a 
 good girl. Around my awful form I draw an imaginary 
 circle. Step but one foot within that sacred circle, and on 
 thy head I launch the cu-r-r-r-se of Kome, Georgia." 
 
 " Let up on this Shakespeare, and get to business," said 
 the corporal, as he reached up to my neck to unbutton the 
 top button of my dress. He was looking at my dress, and 
 wondering what he would find concealed within, when I 
 brought down both fists and took him with one in each 
 eye, with a force that would have knocked a mule down. 
 He fell backwards, and gave a yell that could have been 
 heard a mile. Then one of his men started for me and I 
 knocked him in the ear, and he fell beside the corporal. 
 The other man was going to come for his share, when the 
 officer who had been stationed outside the lines rode up 
 with his men and asked what was the matter. The soldier 
 who was not hit said I had assassinated the corporal. The 
 officer said that was wrong, and women who would go 
 
PUT mOWN THE REBELLION. 175 
 
 around killing off the Union army with their fists ought to 
 be arrested. Just then the corporal raised up on his elbow 
 and tried to open two of the blackest eyes that ever were 
 seen. Turning to the officer, he said : 
 
 " That woman is a smuggler, and she struck me with a 
 brick house!" 
 
 " Ancient female," said the officer, looking at me and 
 laughing, " why do you go around like a besom of de 
 struction, wiping out armies, one man at a time. You 
 ought to be ashamed of myself, and you should be muz 
 zled." 
 
 "Don t call me a female," said I, in my natural hoarse 
 voice. " That is something that I will not submit to." 
 
 The corporal looked up at me with one eye, the other be 
 ing almost closed from the effects of the fall of the brick 
 house. He looked as though he smelled woolen burning, 
 as the old saying is. The officer said he guessed he would 
 take us all to headquarters, and inquire into the affair. 
 The corporal said that there was nothing to inquire into. 
 That this female came along and insisted on going outside 
 of the lines, and when he asked her, in a polite manner, 
 to show her pass, she struck him down with a billy, or 
 some weapon she had concealed about her person. 
 
 " You are not much of a liar, either," said I, jumping 
 on to my horse astraddle, like a man. 
 
 The corporal looked at me as though he would sink, 
 but he maintained that he had done nothing that should 
 offend the most fastidious female. The corporal and his 
 men mounted, and we all started for headquarters. I rode be 
 side the officer, and the corporal was right behind me. After 
 we had got started I pulled out my pipe, filled it, lit a 
 
176 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 match as soldiers usually do, though, it was quite unhandy^ 
 and began to smoke. As the tobacco smoke rolled out 
 under my veil, from the alleged rosebud mouth, the scene 
 was one that the corporal and the most of the men had 
 never thought of, though the officer was "on" all right 
 enough. The corporal could hardly believe his eyes, or 
 one eye, for the other one had gone closed. I was a fine 
 enough looking female as we rode through the regiment, 
 except the pipe, which I puffed along just as though I had 
 no dress on. As we rode up to the colonel s tent, it was 
 noised around that a scout had captured a daring female 
 rebel, and she had almost killed a corporal, and the whole 
 regiment gathered around the coloneFs tent. 
 
 "What is the trouble, corporal?" asked the colonel of 
 my black-eyed friend. 
 
 " Well this woman wanted to go outside, and when I 
 objected, she knocked me down with a rail off a fence." 
 
 "And you offered her no indignity?" the colonel 
 asked. 
 
 "Not in tho least," said the corporal. 
 
 Then the colonel asked me to tell my story, which I 
 did. The corporal said it was a lie, but the other man, 
 whom I did not hit, said I was right. 
 
 " Can you disrobe, before these soldiers, withont getting 
 off your horse? " asked the colonel, looking at me. 
 
 I told him I could and he told me to proceed. I pulled 
 the hat and hair off first and appeared with my red hair 
 clipped short. Then I threw the dress over my head, and 
 appeared in my cavalry pants, all dressed, except my jacket 
 and cap, which the colonel handed me, having brought it 
 from the house where I put on the dress. I put on the 
 
PELL TO THE GROUND AND GAVE A YELL THAT COULD HAVE 
 
 MILE. 
 
PUT DOWK THE REBELLION. 17? 
 
 jacket, wiped the powder off my face, and the corporal 
 said: 
 
 (t It s that condemned raw recruit." 
 
 All the boys took in the transformation scene, and then 
 the colonel told them that he wanted this to be a lesson to 
 all of them, to let all women ivho came to the picket posts, 
 or anywhere, who had passes, alone, and not think because 
 one woman had been caught smuggling, that all women 
 were smugglers. In fact he wanted every soldier to mind 
 his own business. Then he dismissed us, and we went to 
 our quarters. On the way, the one-eyed corporal touched 
 me on tho arm, and he said: 
 
 " Old man, you played it fine on me, but I will get even 
 with you yet." 
 
178 HOW 1 liIVATE GEOliGE W. PECK 
 
 CHAPTER XIV. 
 
 MILITARY ATTIRE MY SUIT OF GOVERNMENT CLOTHES THE 
 MEMORY OP THEM SADDENS ME STILL THE DREADFUL 
 MARCH THE ADJUTANT APPOINTS ME TO MAKE OUT A 
 MONTHLY REPORT THE REPORT Is AN ASTONISHING ONE. 
 
 About this time I received the greatest shock of the 
 whole war. I had prided myself upon my uniform that I 
 brought from home, which was made by a tailor, and fit 
 me first rate. It was of as good cloth and as well made as 
 the uniforms of any of the officers, and I was not ashamed 
 to go out with a party of officers on a little evening " tear/ 
 because there was nothing about my uniform to distinguish 
 me from an officer, except the shoulder-straps, and many 
 officers did not wear shoulder-straps at all, except on dress 
 parade or inspection. I took great pleasure in riding 
 around town, wherever the regiment was located, looking 
 wise, and posing as an officer. But the time came when 
 my uniform, which came with me as a recruit, became 
 seedy, and badly worn, and it was necessary to discard it, 
 and draw some clothing of the quartermaster. That is a 
 trying time for a recruit. One day it was announced that 
 the quartermaster sergeant had received a quantity of 
 clothing, and the men were ordered to go and draw coats, 
 pants, hats, shoes, overcoats, and underclothing, as winter 
 was coming on, and the regiment was liable to move at any 
 time. Something happened that I was unable to be pres 
 ent the first forenoon that clothing was issued, and, when 
 I did call upon the quariermaster^ergeant, there was only 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLIOtf. 179 
 
 two or three suits left, and they had been tumbled over 
 till they looked bad. I can remember now how my heart 
 sank within me, as I picked up a pair of pants that was 
 left. They were evidently cut out with a buzz-saw, and 
 were made for a man that weighed three hundred. I held 
 them up in installments, and looked at them. Holding 
 them by the top, as high as I could, and the bottom of the 
 legs of the pants laid on the ground. The sergeant 
 charged the pants to my account, and then handed me a 
 jacket, a small one, evidently made for a hump-backed 
 dwarf. The jacket was covered with yellow braid. 0, so 
 yellow, that it made me sick. The jacket was charged to 
 me, also. Then he handed me some undershirts and 
 drawers, so coarse and rough that it seemed to me they 
 must have been made of rope, and lined with sand-paper. 
 Then came an overcoat, big enough for an equestrian 
 statue of George Washington, with a cape on it as big as a 
 wall tent. The hat I drew was a stiff, cheap, shoddy hat, 
 is high as a tin camp kettle, which was to take the place 
 of my nobby, soft felt hat that I had paid five dollars of 
 my bounty money for. The hat was four sizes too large 
 for me. Then I took the last pair of army shoes there 
 was, and they weighed as much as a pair of anvils, and had 
 raw-hide strings to fasten them with. Has any old soldier 
 of the army ever forgotten the clothing that he drew from 
 the quartermaster? These inverted pots for hats, the same 
 size all the way up, and the shoes that seemed to be made 
 of sole leather, and which scraped the skin off the ankles. 
 0, if this government ever does go to Gehenna, as some 
 people contend it will, sometime, it will be as a penalty for 
 issuing such ill-fitting shoddy clothing to its brave soldiers, 
 
180 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 who never did the government any harm. I carried the 
 lot of clothing to my tent, feeling sick and faint. The 
 idea of wearing them among folks was almost more than I 
 could bear to think of. I laid them on my bunk, and 
 looked at them, and "died right there." That hat was of 
 a style older than Methuselah. 0, 1 could have stood it, all 
 but the hat, and pants, and shoes, but they killed me. 
 While I was looking at the lay-out, and trying to make 
 myself believe that my old clothes that I brought with me 
 were good enough to last till the war was over, though the 
 seat of the pants, and the knees, and the sleeves of the 
 coat were nearly gone, an orderly came through the com 
 pany and said the regiment would have a dismounted dress 
 parade at sundown, and every man must wear his new 
 clothes. Ye gods! that was too much! If I could have 
 had a week or ten days to get used to those new clothes, 
 one article at a time, I could have stood it, but to be com 
 pelled to put the pants, and jacket, shoes and hat on all at 
 once, was horrible to think of, and if I had not known 
 that a deserter was always caught, and punished, I would 
 have deserted. But the clothes must be put on, and I 
 must go out into the world a spectacle to behold. Believ 
 ing that it is better to face the worst, and have it over, I 
 put on the pants first. If I could ever meet the army con 
 tractor who furnished those pants to a government almost 
 in the throes of dissolution, I would kill him as I would 
 an enemy of the human race. There was room enough in 
 those pants for a man and a horse. Yes, and a bale of 
 hay. There were no suspenders furnished to the men, and 
 how to keep the pants from falling from grace was a ques 
 tion, but I got a piece of tent rope, cut a hole in the waist 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 181 
 
 band, and run the rope around inside, and tied it around 
 my waist, puckering the top of the pants at proper inter 
 vals. 
 
 When I think of those pants now, after twenty-two 
 years, I wonder that I was not irretrievably lost in them. 
 I would have been lost if I had not stuck out of the top. 
 But when I looked at the bottoms of the pants I found at 
 least a foot too much. If I had tied the rope around under 
 my arms, or buttoned them to my collar button, they 
 would have been too long at the bottom. I finally rolled 
 them up at the bottom, and they rolled clear up above my 
 knees. But how they did bag around my body. There 
 was cloth enough to spare to have made a whole uniform 
 for the largest man in the regiment. At that time I was a 
 slim fellow, that weighed less than 125 pounds, and there 
 is no doubt I got the largest pair of pants that was issued 
 in the whole Union army. I only had a small round mir 
 ror in my tent, so I could not see how awfully I looked, 
 only in installments, but to a sensitive young man who had 
 always dressed well, any one can see how a pair of such 
 pants would harrow up his soul. If the pants were too 
 large, you ought to have seen the jacket. The contractor 
 who made the clothes evidently took the measure of a 
 monkey to make that jacket. It was so small that I could 
 hardly get it on . The sleeves were so tight that the vac 
 cination marks on my arm must have shown plainly. The 
 sleeves were too short, and my hands and half of my fore 
 arm hung outside. The body was so tight that I had to 
 use a monkey-wrench to button it, and then I couldn t 
 breathe without unbuttoning one button. It was so tight 
 that my ribs showed so plain they could be counted. 
 
182 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 I stuffed some pieces of grain sack in the shoes, and got 
 them on, and tied them, put on that awful hat, the bugle 
 sounded to "fall in," and I "fell out" of my tent towards 
 the place of assembly, with my carbine. If we had been 
 going out mounted, I could have managed to hide some of 
 the pants around the saddle, if I could have got my shoe 
 over the horse s back, but to walk out among men, stub 
 bing my shoes against each other, and interfering and 
 knocking my ankles off, was pretty hard. The company 
 was about formed when I fell out of my tent, and when 
 the men saw me they snickered right out. I have heard a 
 great many noises in my time that took the life out of me. 
 The first shell that I heard whistle through the air, and 
 shriek, and explode, caused my hair to raise, and I was 
 cold all up and down my spine. The first flock of minnie 
 bullets that sang about my vicinity caused my flesh to 
 creep and my heart s blood to stand still. Once I was 
 near a saw mill when the boiler exploded, and as the pieces 
 of boiler began to rain around me, I felt how weak and in 
 significant a small, red-headed, freckled-faced man is. Once 
 I heard a girl say "no," when I had asked her a civil ques 
 tion, and I was so pale and weak that I could hardly replj 
 that I didn t care a continental whether she married me or 
 not, but I never felt quite so weak, and powerless, and 
 ashamed, and desperate as I did when I came out, falling 
 over myself and the men of my company snickered at my 
 appearance. The captain held his hand over his face and 
 laughed. I fell in at the left of my company, and the cap 
 tain went to the right and looked down the line, and see 
 ing my pants out in front about a foot, he ordered me to 
 stand back. I stood back, and he looked at the rear of the 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 183 
 
 line, and I stuck out worse behind, and he made me move 
 up. Finally he came down to where I was and told me to 
 throw out my chest. I tried to throw it out, and busted a 
 button off, but the pressure was too great, and my chest 
 went back. Finally the captain told me I could go to 
 the right of the company and act as orderly sergeant on 
 dress parade. He said as our company was on the right 
 of the regiment, they could dress on my pants, and I 
 wouldn t be noticed. 
 
 What I ought to have done, was to have committed 
 suicide right there, but I went to the right, trying to look 
 innocent, and we moved off to the field for dress parade. 
 Everything went off well enough, except that in coming to 
 a (< carry arms, with my carbine, from a present, the 
 muzzle of the carbine knocked off my stiff hat, and the 
 stock of the carbine went into the pocket of my pants and 
 run clear down my leg, before I could rescue it. A file 
 closer behind me picked up my hat and put it on me, with 
 the yellow cord tassels in front, and before I could fix it, 
 the order came, " First sergeants to the front and center, 
 march." Those who are familiar with military matters, 
 know that at dress parade the first sergeants march a few 
 paces to the front, then turn and march to the center of 
 the regiment, turn and face the adjutant, and each salutes 
 
 that officer in turn, and reports, " Co. , all present or 
 
 accounted for." That was the hardest march I ever had in 
 all of my army experience. I knew that every eye of every 
 soldier in the six companies at the right of the regiment, 
 would be on my pants, and the officers would laugh at me, 
 and the several hundred ladies and gentlemen from town, 
 who were back of the colonel, witnessing the dress parade, 
 u 
 
184 HOW PEIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 would laugh, too. A man can face death in the discharge 
 of his duty, better than he can face the laughter of a thou 
 sand people. I seemed to be the only soldier in the whole 
 regiment who had not got a pretty good fit in drawing his 
 new clothes, but I was a spectacle. As I marched to the 
 front, with the other eleven first sergeants, and stood still 
 for them to dress on me, I felt as though the piece of tent 
 rope with which I had fastened my large pants up, was be 
 coming untied, and I began to perspire. What would be 
 come of me if that rope should become untied? If that 
 rope gave way, it seemed to me it would break up the 
 whole army, stampede the visitors, and cause me to be 
 court-martialed for conduct unbecoming any white man. 
 I made up my mind if the worst came, I would drop my 
 carbine and grab the pants with both hands, and save the 
 day. At the command, "right and left face," I turned to 
 the left, and I could feel the pants begin to droop, as it 
 were, so I took hold of the top of them with my left hand, 
 and at the command, "march," 1 started for the center. I 
 had got almost past my own company, and there had been 
 no general laugh, but when I passed an Irishman, named 
 Mulcahy, I heard him whisper out loud to the man next to 
 him, "Howly Jasus, Ink at the pants." Then there was a 
 snicker all through the company, which was taken up by 
 the next, and by the time I got to the center, and " front 
 faced," a half of the regiment were laughing, and the 
 officers were scolding the men and whispering to them to 
 shut up. Just then I felt that the one hand that was try 
 ing to hold the pants up, was never going to do the work 
 in the world, so I dropped my carbine behind me, said, 
 : *Co. E, all present or accounted for," and stood there like 
 
I 
 
 PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 185 
 
 a stoughton bottle, holding the waist-band of those pants 
 with both hands, as pale as a ghost. I could see that the 
 adjutant and the colonel and two majors, were laughing, 
 and many of the visitors were trying to keep from laugh 
 ing. I think I lived seventy years in five minutes, while 
 the other eleven orderlies were reporting, and when the 
 order came to return to our posts, I whispered to the next 
 orderly to me, and told him if he would pick up my car 
 bine and bring it along, I would die for him, and he picked 
 it up. The dress parade was soon finished, but instead of 
 marching the companies back to their quarters, they were 
 ordered to break ranks on the parade ground, and for an 
 hour I was surrounded with officers and men, who laughed 
 at me till I thought I would die. 
 
 The colonel and adjutant finally told me that it was a 
 put up job on me, to make a little fun for the boys. They 
 said I had often had fun at the expense of the other boys 
 and they wanted to see if I could stand a joke on myself, 
 and they admitted that I had done it well. If I had known 
 it was a joke, I could have lived through it better. The 
 adjutant said he had got a little work for me that evening, 
 and the next morning L could take my clothes down town 
 to the post quartermaster, and exchange them for a suit 
 that would fit me. I went to his tent, and he showed me 
 a lot of company reports, and wanted me to make out a 
 consolidated monthly report, for the assistant adjutant 
 general of the brigade. I had done some work for him 
 before, and he left a blank signed by himself and colonel, 
 and told me to make out a report and send it to the brig 
 ade headquarters, as he was going down town with a party 
 of officers. I made up my mind that I would get even 
 
186 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 with the adjutant and the colonel, so I took a pen and 
 filled out the blank. My idea was to put all the figures in 
 the wrong column, which I did, and sent it to the brigade 
 headquarters. The next morning I went down town with 
 the quartermaster, and got a suit of clothes to fit me, and 
 on the way back to camp I passed brigade headquarters, 
 when I saw our adjutant looking quite dejected. He 
 called to me and said he had been summoned to brigade 
 headquarters to explain some inaccuracies in the monthly 
 report sent in the night before, and he wanted me to stay 
 and see what was the trouble, but I acted as though if 
 there was a mistake, it was an error of the head rather 
 than of the feet. Pretty soon the old brigade adjutant, 
 who was a strict diciplinarian, and a man who never heard 
 of a joke, came in from the generaFs tent, with his brow 
 corrugated. They had evidently been brooding over the 
 report. 
 
 " I beg your pardon, adjutant," said he, with a pre 
 occupied look, " but in your report I observe that your 
 regiment contains forty-three enlisted men, and nine hun 
 dred and twenty-six company cooks. This seems to me 
 improbable, and the general cannot seem to understand 
 it." 
 
 The adjutant turned red in the face, and was about to 
 stammer out something, when the adjutant general con 
 tinued : 
 
 " Again, we observe that your quartermaster has on 
 hand nine hundred bales of condition powders, which is 
 placed in your report as rations for the men, that you only 
 have eleven horses in your regiment fit for duty, that you 
 have the same number of men, while the commissioned 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 18? 
 
 officers. foot up at nine hundred and twenty-six. Of your 
 sick men there seems to be plenty, some eight hundred, 
 which would indicate an epidemic, of which these head 
 quarters had not been informed previously. In the column 
 headed "officers detailed on other duty " I find four six- 
 mule teams," and one " spike team of five mules." In the 
 column ( officers absent without leave " I find the entry 
 " all gone off on a drunk." This, sir, is the most incon 
 gruous report that has ever been received at these head 
 quarters, from a reputably sober officer. Can this affair 
 be satisfactorily explained, at once, or would you prefer to 
 explain it to a court-martial ? " 
 
 " Captain," said the adjutant in distress, and perspiring 
 freely, " my clerk has made a mistake, and placed a piece 
 of waste paper that has been scribbled on, in the envelope, 
 instead of the regular report. Let me take it, and I will 
 send the proper report to you in ten minutes." 
 
 The adjutant general handed over my report, after ask 
 ing how it happened that the signature of the colonel and 
 adjutant was on the ridiculous report, and the adjutant 
 and the red-headed recruit went out, mounted and rode 
 away. On the way the adjutant said, I ought to kill you 
 on the spot. But I wont. You have only retaliated on us 
 for playing them pants on you. I hate a man that can t 
 take a joke." 
 
 Then we made out a new report, and I took it to head 
 quarters, and all was well. But the adjutant was not as 
 kjtteny with his jokes on the other fellows for many 
 moons. 
 
188 HOW PEIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 CHAPTEK XV. 
 
 MY EXPERIENCE AS A SICK MAN JIM THINKS I HAVE YELI^OW 
 FEVER WHAT I SUFFERED A REBEL ANGEL I AM SENT 
 TO THE HOSPITAL. 
 
 Up to this time I had never been sick a day in my life, 
 that is, sick enough to ache and groan and grunt, and lay 
 in bed. At home I had occasionally had a cold, and I was 
 put to bed at night, after drinking a quart of ginger tea, 
 and covered up with blankets in a warm room, and I was 
 fussed over by loving hands until I got to sleep, and in 
 the morning I would wake up as fresh as a daisy, with my 
 cold all gone. Once or twice at home I had a bilious attack 
 that lasted me almost twenty-four hours; but the old family 
 doctor fired blue pills down me, and I came under the wire 
 an easy winner. I did have the mumps and the measles, 
 of course before enlisting, but the loving care I was given 
 brought me out all right, and I looked upon those little 
 sicknesses as a sort of luxury. The people at home would 
 do everything to make sick experiences far from bitter 
 memories. It was getting along towards Christmas of my^ 
 first year in the army, and though it was the Sunny South 
 we were in, I noticed that it was pretty all-fired cold. The 
 night rides were full of fog and malaria; and one morning 
 I came in from an all-night ride through the woods and 
 swamps, feeling pretty blue. The mud around my tent 
 was frozen, and there was a little snow around in spots. 
 As I laid down in my bunk to take a snooze before break 
 fast, I noticed how awfully thin an army blanket was. It 
 
PUT DOWN THE EEBELLIOK. 189 
 
 was good enough for summer, but when winter came the 
 blanket seemed to have lost its cunning. I was again 
 doing duty as a private soldier, having learned that my 
 promotion to the position of corporal was only temporary. 
 I had been what is called a " lance corporal," or a brevet 
 corporal. It seemed hard, after tasting of the sweets of 
 official position, to be returned to the ranks, but I had to 
 take the bitter with the sweet, and a soldier must not kick. 
 I had never laid down to sleep before without dropping off 
 into the land of. dreams right away, but now, though I was 
 tired enough, my eyes were wide open and I felt strange. 
 At times I would be so hot that I would throw the blanket 
 off, and then I would be so cold that it seemed as though I 
 would freeze. I had taken a severe cold which had settled 
 everywhere, and there was not a bone in my body but what 
 ached; my lungs seemed of no use; I could not take a long 
 breath without a hacking cough, and I felt as though I 
 should die. It was then that I thought of the warm little 
 room at home and the ginger tea, and the soaking of my 
 feet in mustard water and wrapping my body in a soft 
 flannel blanket, and the kindly faces of my parents, my 
 sister, my wife everybody that had been kind to me. I 
 would close my eyes and imagine I could see them all, and 
 open my eyes and see my cold little tent and shiver as I 
 thought of being sick away from home. I laid for an 
 hour wishing I was home again; and while alone there I 
 made up my mind I would write home and warn all the 
 boys I knew against enlisting. The thought that I should 
 die there alone was too much, and I was about to yell for 
 help when my tent mate, who had been on a scout, came 
 in. He was a big green Yankee, who had a heart in him 
 
190 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 as big as a water pail, but he wasn t much of a nurse. He 
 came in nearly frozen, threw his saddle down in a corner, 
 took out a hard tack and began to chew it, occasionally 
 taking a drink of water out of a canteen. That was his 
 breakfast. 
 
 " Well, Fve got just about enough of war," said he, as 
 he picked his teeth with a splinter off his bunk, and filled 
 his pipe and lit it. " They can t wind up this business 
 any too soon to suit the old man. War in the summer is a 
 picnic, but in winter it is wearin on the soldier." 
 
 Heretofore I had enjoyed tobacco smoke very much, 
 both from my own pipe and Jim s, but when he blew out 
 the first whiff of smoke it went to my head and stomach 
 and all up and down me, and I yelled, in a hoarse, pneu 
 monia sort of voice: 
 
 "Jim, for God s sake don t smoke. I am at death s 
 door, and I don t want to smell of tobacco smoke when St. 
 Peter opens the gate." 
 
 "What, pard, you ain t sick," said Jim, putting his 
 pipe outside of the tent, and coming to me and putting his 
 great big hand on my forehead, as tender as a woman. 
 " Great heavens! you have got the yellow fever. You 
 won t live an hour." 
 
 That was where Jim failed as a nurse. He made things 
 out worse than they were. He, poor old fellow, thought 
 it was sympathy, and if I had let him go on he would have 
 had me dead before night. I told him I was all right. 
 All I had was a severe cold, on my lungs, and pneumonia, 
 and rheumatism, and chills and fever, and a few such 
 things, but I would be all right in a day or two. I wanted 
 to encourage Jim to think I was not very bad off, but he 
 
I 
 
 PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 191 
 
 wouldn t have it. He insisted that I had typhoid fever, 
 and glanders, and cholera. He went right out of the tent 
 and called in the first man he met, who proved to be the 
 horse doctor. The horse doctor was a friend of mine, and 
 a mighty good fellow, but I had never meditated having 
 him called in to doctor me. However, he felt of my fore 
 leg, looked at my eyes, rubbed the hair the wrong way on 
 my head, and told Jim to bleed me in the mouth, and 
 blanket me, and give me a bran mash, and rub some mus 
 tang liniment on my chest and back. I didn t want to 
 hurt the horse doctor s feelings by going back on his direc 
 tions, but I told him I only wanted to soak my feet in 
 mustard water, and take some ginger tea. He said all 
 right, if I knew more about it than he did, and then he 
 said he would skirmish around for some ginger, while Jim 
 raised the mustard, and they both went out and left me 
 alone. It seemed an age before anybody come, and I 
 thought of home all the time, and of the folks who would 
 know just what to do. if I was there. Pretty soon Jim 
 came in with a camp kettle half full of hot water, and a 
 bottle of French mixed mustard which he had bought of 
 the sutler. I told him I wanted plain ground mustard, 
 but he said there wasn t any to be found, and French 
 mustard was the best he could do. We tried to dissolve it 
 in the water, but it wouldn t work, and finally Jim sug 
 gested that he take a mustard spoon and plaster the French 
 mustard all over my feet, and then put them to soak that 
 way. He said that prepared mustard was the finest kind 
 for pigs feet and sausage, and he didn t know why it was 
 not all right to soak feet in. So he plastered it on and I 
 proceeded to soak my feet. I presume it was the most un- 
 
192 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 successful case of soaking feet on record. The old camp 
 kettle was greasy, and when the hot water and French 
 mustard began to get in their work on the kettle, the odor 
 was sickening, and I do not think I was improved at all in 
 my condition. I told Jim I guessed I would lay down and 
 wait for the ginger tea. Pretty soon the horse doctor came 
 in with a tin cup full of hot ginger tea. I took one swallow 
 of it and I thought I had swallowed a blacksmith s forge, 
 with a coal fire in it. I gasped and tried to yell murder. 
 The horse doctor explained that he couldn t get any ginger, 
 so he had taken cayenne pepper, which, he added, could 
 knock the socks off of ginger any day in the week. I felt 
 like murdering the horse doctor, and I felt a little hard at 
 Jim for playing French mustard on me, but when I come 
 to reflect, I could see that they had done the best they 
 could, and I thanked them, and told them to leave me 
 alone and I would go to sleep. They went out of the tent 
 and I could hear them speculating on my case. Jim said 
 he knew I had diabetes, and lung fever combined, with 
 sciatic rheumatism, and brain fever, and if I lived till 
 morning the horse doctor could take it out of his wages. 
 The horse doctor admitted that my case had a hopeless 
 look, but he once had a patient, a bay horse, sixteen hands 
 high, and as fine a saddle horse as a man ever threw a leg 
 over, that was troubled exactly tne same as I was. He 
 blistered his chest, gave him a table-spoonful of condition 
 powders three times a day in a bran mash, took off his 
 shoes and turned him out to grass, and in a week he sold 
 him for two hundred and fifty dollars. I laid there and 
 tried to go to sleep listening to that talk. Then, some of 
 the boys who had heard that I was sick, came along and 
 
1 
 
 PUT DOWN THE EEBELLION. 193 
 
 inquired how I was, and I listened to the remarks they 
 made. One of them wanted to go and get some burdock 
 leaves, and pound them into a pulp, and bind them on me 
 for a poultice. He said he had an aunt in Wisconsin who 
 had a milk sickness, and her left leg swelled up as big as a 
 post, and the doctors tried everything, and charged her 
 over two hundred dollars, and never did her any good, and 
 one day an Indian doctor came along and picked some 
 burdock leaves and fixed a poultice for her, and in a week 
 she went to a hop-picker s dance, and was as kitteny as 
 anybody, and the Indian doctor only charged her a quarter. 
 Jim was for going out for burdock Jeaves at once, for 
 me, but the horse doctor told him I didn t have no milk 
 sickness. He said all the milk soldiers got was condensed 
 milk, and mighty little of that, and he would defy the 
 world to show that a man could get milk sickness on con 
 densed milk. That seemed to settle the burdock remedy, 
 and they went to inquiring of Jim if he knew where my 
 folks lived, so he could notify them, in case I was not 
 there in the morning. Jim couldn t remember whether it 
 was Atchison, Kan., or Fort Atkinson, Wis., but he said 
 he would go and ask me, while I was alive, so there would 
 be no mistake, and the poor fellow, meaning as well as any 
 man ever did, came in and asked for the address of my 
 father, saying it was of no account, particularly, only he 
 wanted to know. I gave him the address, and then he 
 asked me if he shouldn t get me something to eat. I told 
 him I couldn t eat anything to save me. He offered to fry 
 me some bacon, and make me a cup of coffee, but the 
 thought of bacon and coffee made me wild. I told him if 
 he could make me a nice cup of green tea, and some milk 
 
194 HOW PIUVATE GEOKGE W. f>ECK 
 
 toast, or poach me an egg and place it on a piece of nice 
 buttered toast, and give me a little currant jelly, I thought 
 I could swallow a mouthful. Jim s eyes stuck out when I 
 gave my order, which I had done while thinking of home, 
 and a tear rolled down his cheek, and he went out of the 
 tent, saying, "All right, pard." I saw him tap his fore 
 head with his finger, point his thumb toward the tent, and 
 say to the boys outside: 
 
 " He s got em! Head all wrong! Wants me to make 
 him milk toast, poached eggs, green tea, and currant jelly. 
 And I offered him bacon. Sow belly for a sick man ! There 
 isn t a loaf of bread in camp. Not an egg within five 
 miles. And milk! currant jelly! Why, he might as well 
 ask for Delmonico s bill of farel But we have got to get 
 em. I told him he should have em, and, by mighty! he 
 shall. Here, Mr. Horse-doctor, you stay and watch him, 
 and I and Company D here will saddle up and go out on 
 the road to a plantation, and raid it for delicacies." 
 
 "You bet your life," says the Company "D " man, and 
 pretty soon I heard a couple of saddles thrown on two 
 horses, and then there was a clatter of horses feet on the 
 frozen ground. I have thought of it since a good many 
 times, and have concluded that I must have dropped 
 asleep. Any way, it didn t seem more than five minutes 
 before the tent flap opened and Jim came in. 
 
 "Come, straighten out here, now, you red-headed 
 corpse, and try that toast," said he, as he came in with a 
 piece of hard-tack box for a tray, and on it was a nice 
 china plate, and a cup and saucer, an egg on toast, and a 
 little pitcher of milk, and some jelly. 
 
 "Jim," I said, tasting nf the tea, which was not much 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 195 
 
 like army tea, "you never made this tea. A woman made 
 that tea, or I m a goat. And that toast was toasted by a 
 woman, and that egg was poached by a woman. Where 
 am I?" I asked, imagining that I was home again. 
 
 " You guessed it the first time, pard," said Jim, as he 
 threw the blanket over my shoulders, as I sat up on the 
 bunk to try and eat. " The whole thing was done by the 
 rebel angel." 
 
 " Rebel angel, Jim; what are you talking about? 
 There ain t any rebel angels," and I became weak and laid 
 down again. 
 
 " Yes, there is a rebel angel, and she is a dandy," said 
 Jim, as he covered me up. She is out by the fire mak 
 ing milk toast for you. You see, I went out to the Brown 
 plantation, to try and steal an egg, and some bread, and 
 milk, but I thought, on the way out, as it was a case of 
 life and death, the stealing of it might rest heavy on your 
 soul when you come to pass in your chips, so I concluded 
 to go to the house and ask for it. There was a young 
 woman there, and I told her the rtd-headed corporal that 
 captured the female smuggler, was dying, and couldn t eat 
 any hard-tack and bacon, and I wanted to fill him up on 
 white folks food before he died, so he could go to heaven 
 or elsewhere, as the case might be, on a full stomach, and 
 she flew around like a kernel of pop-corn on a hot griddle, 
 and picked up a basket of stuff, and had the nigger saddle 
 a mule for her, and she came right to the camp with me, 
 and said she would attend to everything. She s a thor 
 oughbred, and don t you make no mistake about it." 
 
 I must have gone to sleep when Jim was talking about 
 Hie girl, for I dreamed that there was a million angels in 
 
196 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 rebel uniforms, poaching eggs for me. Pretty soon I heard 
 a rustle of female clothes, and a soft, cool hand was placed 
 on my forehead, my hair was brushed back, a perfumed 
 handkerchief wiped the cold perspiration from my face, 
 and I heard the rebel angel ask Jim what the doctor said 
 about me. Jim told her what the horse doctor had said 
 about curing a horse that had been sick the same as I was, 
 and then she asked if we had not sent for the regular doc- 
 doctor. Jim said we had not thought of that. She asked 
 what had been done for me, and Jim told her about the 
 French mustard episode, and the cayenne pepper tea. I 
 thought she laughed, but it had become dark in the tent, 
 and I couldn t see her face, but she told Jim to go after the 
 regimental surgeon at once, and Jim went out. The angel 
 asked me how I felt, and I told her I was all right, but she 
 said I was all wrong. I thanked her for the trouble she 
 had taken to come so far, and she said not to mention it. 
 She said she had a brother who was a prisoner at the North, 
 and if somebody would only be kind to him if he was sick, 
 she would be well repaid. She said the last she heard of 
 him he was a prisoner of war at Madison, Wis., and she 
 wondered what kind of people lived there, away off on the 
 frontier, and if they could be kind to their enemies. That 
 touched me where I lived, and I raised up on my elbow, 
 and said : 
 
 "Why bless your heart, Miss, if your brother is a pris 
 oner in old Camp Kandall, in Madison, he has got a pic 
 nic. That town was my home before I came down here on 
 this fool job. The people there are the finest in the world. 
 All of them, from old Governor Lewis, to the poorest man 
 in town, would set up nights with a sick person, whether 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 197 
 
 he was a rebel or not. Your brother couldn t be better 
 fixed if he was at home. The idea of a man suffering for 
 food, clothing, or human sympathy in Madison, would be 
 ridiculous. There is not a family in that town," I said, 
 becoming excited from the feeling that any one doubted 
 the humanity of the people of Wisconsin, "but would 
 divide their breakfast, and their clothes, and their money, 
 with your brother, egad, I wish I was there myself. 1 
 will be responsible for your brother, Miss." 
 
 She told me to lay down and be quiet, and not talk any 
 more, as I was becoming wild. She said she was glad to 
 know what kind of people lived there, as she had supposed 
 it was a wilderness. In a few minutes Jim came back and 
 said the doctor was playing poker with some other officers, 
 in a captain s tent, and he didn t dare go in and break up 
 the game, but he spoke to the doctor s orderly, and he said 
 I ought to take castor oil. That didn t please the little 
 woman at all, and she told Jim to go to the poker tent and 
 tell the doctor to come at once, or she would come after 
 him. It was not long before the doctor came stooping in 
 to my pup tent. His idea was to have all sick men attend 
 surgeon s call in the morning, and not go around visiting 
 the sick in tents. He asked me what was the matter, and 
 I told him nothing much. Then he asked me why I wasn t 
 at surgeon s call in the morning. I told him the reason 
 was that I was wading in a swamp, after the rebels that 
 ambushed some of our boys the day before. "Then you ve 
 got malaria," said he. " Take some quinine tonight, and 
 come to surgeon s call in the morning." The little woman, 
 the "rebel angel," got her back up at the coolness of the 
 doctor, and she gave him a piece of her mind, and then he 
 
198 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. .PECK 
 
 called for a candle, and he examined me carefully. When 
 he got through, he said : 
 
 "He is going to have a run of fever. He must be sent 
 to the hospital. Jim, go tell the driver to send the ambu 
 lance here at once, and you, Jim, go along and see that 
 siiis fellow gets to the hospital all right. He can t live here 
 in a tent, and I doubt if he will in the hospital." 
 
 That settled it. In a short time the ambulance came, 
 and I got in and sat on a seat, and the "rebel angel" got 
 in with me, and we rode seven miles to the hospital, over 
 the roughest road a sick man ever jolted over, and I would 
 have died, if I could have had my own way about it, but 
 the little woman talked so cheerfully that when we arrived 
 at the great building, I should have considered myself 
 well, only that my mind was wandering. All I remember 
 of my entrance to the hospital was that when we got out of 
 the ambulance Jim was there on his horse, leading the 
 mule belonging to the angel. Some attendants helped me 
 up stairs, and down a corridor, where we met two stretch 
 ers being carried out to the dead house with bodies on 
 them, and I had to sit in a chair and wait till clean sheets 
 could be put on one of the cots where a man had just died. 
 The little woman told me to keep up my courage, and she 
 would come and see me often, Jim cried and said he would 
 come every day, a man said, "your bed is ready, No. 197," 
 and I laid down as No. 197, and didn t care whether I ever 
 got tip again or not. I just had breath enough left to bid 
 the angel good bye, and tell Jim to see her safe home. 
 Jim said, " You bet your life I will," and the world seemed 
 blotaed out, and for ail I cared, I was dead. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 199 
 
 CHAPTER XVI. 
 
 MY VARIED EXPERIENCES IN THE HOSPITAL THE DOCTOR SEEMS 
 SURE OF MY DEATH I SUGGEST THE POSTPONEMENT OF MY 
 FUNERAL I GET VERY SICK OF GRUEL I Go BACK TO MY 
 REGIMENT. 
 
 Let s see, last week I wound up in the hospital. When 
 Jim, my old comrade, and the rebel angel, left me, I died, 
 to all intents and purposes. I supposed I was going to 
 sleep, but after I got well enough to know what was going 
 on, I found that for about ten days I had been out of my 
 head. It was not much of a head to get out of, but how 
 ever small and insignificant a man s head is, he had rather 
 have it with him, keeping good time, than to have it wan 
 dering around out of his reach. When I "come to/ as 
 the saying is, it only seemed as though I had been asleep 
 over night, but I dreamed more than any able-bodied man 
 could have done in one night. I was what they call un 
 conscious, but I did a great deal of work during that 
 period of unconsciousness. One thing I did, which I was 
 proud of, was to wind up the war. I arranged it so that 
 all of the bullets that were fired on each side, were made 
 of India-rubber, like those little toy balloons, and war was 
 just fun. The boys on both sides would fire at each other 
 and watch the rubber balloons hit the mark, and explode, 
 and nobody was hurt, and everybody laughed. There was 
 no more blood. Everything was rubber and wind. There 
 was no one killed, no legs shot off, and the men on each 
 side, when not fighting with the harmless missiles, were 
 is 
 
200 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 gathered together, blue and gray, having a regular picnic, 
 and every evening there was a dance, the rebels furnishing 
 the girls. In my delirium I could see that my rebel angel 
 was dancing a good deal with the boys, and frequently with 
 my comrade, Jim, and I was pretty jealous. I made up my 
 mind that I wouldn t speak to either of them again. I 
 would watch my balloon battles with a good deal of interest, 
 and think how much better and safer it was to fight that 
 way. Every day, when the battle was over, and the two 
 sides would get together for fun, I noticed when the bugle 
 sounded for battle again, that on each side the boys were 
 terribly mixed, there being about as many blue-coated 
 Yankees among the gray rebels as there were rebels among 
 the Yankees, and after awhile it seemed as though all 
 were dressed alike, in a sort of " blue-gray," and then they 
 disappeared, and I recovered my senses. Frequently, dur 
 ing my delirium and unconsciousness, I would feel my 
 mouth pulled open, and hear a spoon chink against my 
 teeth, and I would taste something bad going down my 
 neck, and then my head would buzz as though a swarm of 
 bees had taken up their abode where my brain used to be. 
 Sometimes I would hear the clanking of a saber and a pair 
 of Mexican spurs, and feel a great big hand on my head, 
 and I knew that was Jim, but I couldn t move a muscle, or 
 say a word. "I guess he s dead, ain t he doc?" I would 
 hear in Jim s voice, and the doc would say there was a lit 
 tle life left, but not enough to swear by. Then the doc 
 would say, " You better come in about 10:30 tomorrow, as 
 we bury them all at that hour, and I guess he ll croak by 
 that time." I tried to speak and tell them that I was 
 alive, and that, I was going to get well, but it wasn t any 
 
BfiBBb AHOBL" GIVES XSfi 2X)CTOB A PIECE OF BBR MQOX 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 201 
 
 use. I was tongue-tied. Again I would hear the sweet 
 rustle of a dress, and feel a warm hand on my head, and I 
 knew that the rebel angel had rode her mule to town to 
 see me. Then I would try hard to tell her that I was going 
 to write a letter to the governor of Wisconsin, and ask 
 him to look out particularly for her brother, who was a 
 rebel prisoner at Madison, and take care of him if he was 
 sick, but I couldn t say a word, and after smoothing my 
 hair a little while, she would give my cheek three or four 
 pats, just as a mother pats her child, and she would go 
 away. 
 
 One morning, a little after daylight, I woke up and 
 looked around the ward of the hospital. My eyes were 
 weak, and I was hungry as a bear. I had to try two or 
 three times before I could raise my hand to my head, and 
 when I felt of my head it seemed awfully small. I could 
 feel my cheek bones stick out so that you could hang your 
 hat on them. My cheeks were sunken, and my fingers 
 were like pipe-stems. I wondered how a man could 
 change so in one night. I saw two or three fellows over 
 at the other end of the room, and I thought I would get 
 up and go over there and have some fun with them. I 
 wanted to know where my horse was, and where I was. I 
 tried to raise up and couldn t get any further than on my 
 elbow. From that position I looked around to see what 
 was going on, and tried to attract the attention of some 
 attendant. Finally, I saw four fellows bringing a strecther 
 along towards my cot. They had evidently been told by 
 the doctor that I would be dead in the morning, and hav 
 ing confidence in the word of the professional man, had 
 come to take me to the dead house, before the other sick 
 
202 HOW PRIVATE GEOEGE W. PECK 
 
 man was awake. As they came up to the foot of my cot 
 and sat the stretcher down, I thought I would play a joke 
 on them. I pulled the sheet over my face, and laid still. 
 One of the men said, " Two of us can lift it, as it is thin 
 ner than a lathe." To be considered dead, when I was 
 alive, was bad enough, but to be called "it" was too much. 
 I felt one of the men take hold of my feet, and then I 
 threw the sheet off my face and in a hoarse voice I said, 
 " Say, Mr. Body-snotcher, you can postpone the funeral 
 and bring me a porter-house steak and some fried potatoes." 
 Well, nobody ever saw a couple of men fall over them 
 selves and turn pale, as those fellows did. Before I had 
 given my order for breakfast, the two men had fallen back 
 over the stretcher and the two others were backing off as 
 though a ghost had appeared, But finally they came 
 toward me and I convinced them that I was not dead. 
 They seemed hurt to know that I was still alive, and one of 
 them went off after the doctor, to enter a complaint, I sup 
 posed. The doctor soon came and he was the only one 
 that seemed pleased at my recovery. He ordered some sort 
 of gruel for me, but wouldn t let me have meat and things. 
 I took the gruel under protest but it did strengthen me. I 
 told the doctor I wanted him to send for my horse, because 
 I wanted to go out with the boys, but he said he guessed I 
 wouldn t go out with the boys very soon. He said I might 
 sit up in bed a little while, and when I did so I found that 
 I did not have my clothes on, but was clothed in"a hospital 
 night-gown, which was also used for a shroud for burial 
 when a fellow died. He said Jim and the girl would be 
 in about 10 o clock, as he had sent for them, and some of 
 my comrades. I told him if I was going to entertain com- 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION". 203 
 
 pany. and give a reception, I wanted my pants on, as I was 
 sure no gentleman could give a reception successfully 
 without pants. The doctor seemed sort of glad to see me 
 taking an interest in human affairs again, and so he let me 
 put my pants and jacket on. I got a butcher to shave me, 
 and when ten o clock came I looked quite presentable for 
 a skeleton. I was sitting up in bed, with a little round 
 zinc frame looking-glass, noting the changes in my personal 
 appearance, when a door opened and Jim entered, dressed 
 up in his best, with the rebel angel on his arm, and fol 
 lowed by six boys from the regiment. They came in as 
 solemn as any party I ever saw. The angel looked 
 as sad as I ever saw anybody, and I thought she had prob 
 ably heard that her brother was dead. It did not occur to 
 me that they had come to attend my funeral. They stood 
 there by the door, in that helpless manner that people 
 always stand around at a funeral, waiting for the master of 
 ceremonies to tell them that they can now pass in the other 
 room and view the remains. I finally caught Jim looking 
 my way, and I waved a handkerchief at him. He gave me 
 one look, and jumped over two cots and came up to me 
 with tears in his eyes, and a package in his hand, and said, 
 " Pard, you ain t dead worth a cent," and then he hugged 
 me, and added, " but there ain t enough left of you for a 
 full size funeral." Then he unrolled the package he had 
 in his hand, and dropped on the bed four silver-plated coffin 
 handles. By that time the girl, and the six boys had seen 
 me, and they came over, and we had a regular visit. They 
 were all surprised to find me alive, as they had been notified 
 that I was on my last legs, and would be buried in the 
 morning, and the captain had detailed the six boys to act 
 
204 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 as pall- bearers and fire a salute over the grave, while Jim 
 and the girl were to act as mourners. 
 
 " Well, it saves ammunition/ said Jim. "But how 
 be I going to get these coffin handles off my hands. There 
 is no dependence to be placed on doctors, anyway. When 
 that doctor appointed this funeral, we thought he knew 
 his business, and I told the angel, says I, My pard aint 
 going to be buried without any style, in one of those pine 
 boxes that aint planed, and has got slivers on/ So I 
 hired the hospital coffin-maker to sand-paper the inside 
 and outside of a box, and black it with shoe-blacking, and 
 I went to a store down town and bought these handles. Of 
 course, pard, I am glad you pulled through, and all that, 
 but I want to say to you, if you had croaked in the night, 
 and been ready to bury this A. M., you would have had a 
 more sl/lish outfit than anybody, except officers, usually 
 get in this army, and the angel and I would have been a 
 pair of mourners that would l.cxe slung grief so your folks 
 to home would have felt proud of you." 
 
 The angel was tickled to see me alive, and suggested to 
 Jim and the boys, that it was easy to talk a fellow to death 
 after he had been so sick, and told them to go back to 
 camp, and she would stay with me all day. So the boys 
 shook hands with me, and Jim had an attendant to roll 
 my cot up to a window, so I could see my horse when they 
 rode away. The boys got on their horses and Jim led my 
 horse, and I could see that my pet had been fixed up for 
 the occasion. He had the saddle on, and it was draped 
 with black, a pair of boots were fastened in the stirrups, 
 and my carbine was in the socket. The idea was to have 
 my horse, with empty boot and saddle, tied behind th 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLIOtfc 205 
 
 wagon that took me to the cemetery where soldiers wind 
 up their career. It was not a cheerful thing to look at, 
 and to think of, but it did me good to see the old horse, 
 and the boys ride away in good health, and happy at my 
 escape, and it encouraged me to make every effort to get 
 well, so I could ride with the gang. The rebel angel re 
 mained with me till almost night, and superintended my 
 eating. No person who has never had a fever, can appre 
 ciate the appetite of a person when the fever ls turns." I 
 wanted everything that was ever eaten, and roast beef or tur 
 key was constantly in my mind. As anything of that kind 
 would have made use for Jim s coffin-handles, I had to put up 
 with soups and gruels. The doctor thought that this thin 
 gruel was good enough, but it didn t seem to hit thje spot, 
 and so the girl asked the doctor if he thought nice gumbo 
 soup and a weak milk punch wouldn t be pretty good for 
 me. He said it would, but nobody in the hospital could 
 make gumbo soup, or milk punch. She said she could, 
 and she told me not to eat a thing until she came back, 
 and she would bring me a dish fit for the gods. She said 
 she knew an old colored woman in town, who cooked for a 
 lady friend of hers, who had some gumbo, and the lady 
 had a little brandy that was seventy years old, but she said 
 the lady was a rebel, and I must overlook that. I told her 
 I didn t care, as I had got considerably mashed on all the 
 rebels I had met personally. She went out with a smile 
 that would have knocked a stronger man than I was silly, 
 and I turned over and took a nap, the first real sleep I had 
 had in a week. I woke up finally smelling something that 
 Was not gruel. 0, I had got so sick of gruel. The angel 
 handed me a glass of milk punch, and told me tc drink a 
 
206 HOW PRIVATE GEOKGE W. PECK 
 
 swallow and a half. I have drank a great many beverages 
 in my lifetime, but I never swallowed anything that was as 
 good as the milk punch that rebel girl made for me. It 
 seemed to go clear to my toes, and I felt strong. Then she 
 gave me a small soup plate and told me to taste of the 
 gumbo. I had never tasted gumbo soup before, but I had 
 no difficulty in mastering it. No description can do gumbo 
 soup justice, or explain to a person who has never tasted it 
 the rich odor, and palatable taste. The little that I ate 
 seemed to make a man of me again, instead of the weak 
 invalid. Since then I have been loyal to southern gumbo 
 soup, and have always eaten it wherever it could be ob 
 tained, and I never ptft a spoonful of it to my lips without 
 thinking of the rebel girl in the hospital, who prepared 
 that dish for me. If I ever become a glutton, it will be on 
 gumbo soup, and if I am ever a drunkard, it will be a 
 milk-punch drunkard, and the soup and the punch must 
 be prepared in the South. 
 
 Well, my experience after that, in the hospital, was 
 about the same as a hundred thousand other boys in blue, 
 only few of the boys had such care, and such food. The 
 girl kept me supplied with gumbo soup and milk punch 
 until I could eat heartier food, and in a couple of days I 
 got so I could walk around the hospital. At home I had 
 never been much of a hand to be around with the sick, 
 but experience had been a good teacher, and I found that 
 going around among the boys, and talking cheerfully did 
 them good and me too. I found men from my own regi 
 ment, that I did not know had been sick. The custom 
 was to make just as little show about sending sick men to 
 the hospital, as possible, hence they were often packed off 
 
\ 
 
 PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 207 
 
 in the night, and the first their comrades would know of 
 their illness would be a detail to bury them, or a boy 
 would suddenly appear in his company, looking pale and 
 sick, having been discharged from the hospital. If the 
 men had known how many of their comrades were sent to 
 the hospital, it would have demoralized the well ones. For 
 ten days I visited around among the sick men, telling a 
 funny story to a group here and there, and cheering them 
 up, and writing letters home for fellows that were too weak 
 to write. I learned to lie a little bit in writing letters for 
 the boys. One young fellow who had his leg taken off, 
 wanted me to write to his intended, and tell her all about 
 it, how the leg was taken off, and how he was sick and 
 discouraged, and would always be a cripple and a burden 
 on his friends, etc. I wrote the letter entirely different 
 from the way he told me. I spoke of his being wounded 
 in the leg, but that the care he received had made him 
 all right, and that he would probably soon have a dis 
 charge, and be home, and make them all happy. I thought 
 to myself that if she loved him as a girl ought to, that a 
 leg or two short wouldn t make any difference to her, and 
 there was no use of harrowing up her feelings in advance, 
 and that he could buy a cork leg before he got home, and 
 may be she would never find it out. I might have been 
 wrong, but when he got an answer from that letter he 
 was the happiest fellow I ever saw in this world, and he 
 arranged at my suggestion, to stop over in New York and 
 get a cork leg before he went home. I have never learned 
 whether the girl ever found out that he had a cork leg, but 
 if she did, and blames anybody, she can lay it to me. Lots 
 of the boys that I wrote letters for wanted to detail all of 
 
208 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 their calamities to their mothers and sisters and sweet 
 hearts, but I worded the letters in a funny sort of way, so 
 that the friends at home would not be worried , and the 
 answers the boys got would please them very much. The 
 hardest work I had was a couple of days writing letters for 
 a doctor, to relatives of boys who had died, detailing the 
 sickness, death and burial, and notifying friends that they 
 could obtain the personal effects of the deceased, clothing, 
 money, pipes, knives, etc., by sending express charges. It 
 always seemed to me that if I had been running the govern 
 ment I would have paid the express charges on the cloth 
 ing of the boys who had died, if I didn t lay up a cent. 
 
 Finally I got well enough to go back to my regiment, 
 and one day I showed up at my company, and the first 
 man I met saluted me and said, " Hello, Lieutenant." I 
 told him he did wrong to joke a sick man that way, and I 
 went on to find Jim. He was in our tent, greasing his 
 shoes, and he looked up with a queer expression on his face 
 and said, "Hello, Lieutenant." 
 
 "Look a here." I said, as I grasped his greasy hand, 
 "what do you fellows mean by calling me names, I have 
 never done anything to deserve to be made a fool of. Pard, 
 what ails you anyway?" 
 
 "Didn t they tell you," said Jim, as he scraped the 
 mud off his other shoe with a stick. "The colonel has 
 sent your name to the governor of Wisconsin to be com 
 missioned as second Lieutenant of the company. All the 
 boys are tickled to death, and they are going to whoop it 
 up for you when your commission comes. But this pup tent 
 will not be good enough for you then, and old Jim will have 
 to pick up another pard^ You won t have to cook your bacon 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 209 
 
 on a stick when you get your commission, and you can drink 
 out of a leather covered flask instead of a flannel covered 
 canteen. But by the great horn spoons I shall love you if 
 you get to be a Jigadier Brindle," and the old pard looked 
 as though he wanted to cry like a baby. 
 
 "Jim/ I said, " I think the fellows are giving us taffy, 
 and that there is nothing in this Lieutenant business. But 
 if there is, you will be my pard till this cruel war is over, 
 and don t you forget it," and I went along the company 
 street towards the colonel s tent, leaning on a cane, and all 
 the boys congratulated me, and I felt like a fool. 
 
 "Lieutenant, I am glad to see you back," said the 
 Colonel, as I entered his tent, and he showed it in his face. 
 
 "What is the foolishness, colonel?" I asked. "The 
 boys are all guying me. Can t I stay a private?" 
 
210 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 CHAPTER XVII. 
 
 THANKSGIVING DINNER WITH THE "REBEL ANGEL" SHE GIVES 
 ME A WORLD OF GOOD ADVICE CAN AN OFFICER BE DE~ 
 
 TAILED TO GO AND SHOVEL DlRT ? MY FlRST DAY AS A COM 
 MISSIONED OFFICER. 
 
 The last chapter of this history wound up in my inter 
 view with the colonel, in which he told me that what the 
 boys had said was true, and that I had a right to be called 
 " Lieutenant." He said there was a vacancy in the com 
 missioned officers of my company, caused by some dis 
 crepancy in regard to the ownership of a horse which an 
 officer had sold as belonging to him, when investigation 
 showed that fliere was "U. S." branded on the horse. 
 The colonel said he had looked over the company pretty 
 thoroughly, and while I was not all that he could desire 
 in an officer, there were less objections to me than to many 
 others, and he had recommended the governor of our state 
 to commission me. He said he didn t want me to run 
 away with the idea that my promotion from private to a 
 commissioned office was for any particular gallantry, or 
 *hat I was particularly entitled to promotion, but I seemed 
 ,he most available. It was true, he said, that I had done 
 everything I had been told to do, in a cheerful manner, 
 and had not displayed any cowardice, that he knew of, 
 though I had often admitted to him that I was a coward. 
 He said he thought few men knew whether they were 
 cowards or not, until they got in a tight place, and that 
 most men honestly believed they were cowards, but they 
 
\ 
 
 PUT DOWN" THE REBELLION. 211 
 
 didn t want others to know it, and they took pains to con 
 ceal the fact. He said he had rather be considered a cow 
 ard than a dare-devil of bravery, for if he flunked when a 
 chance came to show his metal, it wouldn t be thought 
 much of, and if he pulled through, and made a decent 
 record for bravery, he would get a heap of credit. He 
 said he believed it took a man with more nerve to do some 
 things he had ordered me to do, than it did to get behind 
 a tree and shoot at the enemy, and he was willing to take 
 his chances on me. He congratulated me, and some of the 
 other officers did the same. 
 
 I was invited to sit into a game of draw poker with 
 some of the officers. I pleaded that I was not sufficiently 
 recovered from my sickness to play poker, and I went back 
 to my tent to talk with Jim. I was thinking over the new 
 responsibilities that were about to come to me, and figuring 
 on the salary. A hundred and fifty dollars a month ! It 
 is cruel to raise the salary of a poor devil from thirteen 
 dollars a month to a hundred and fifty. I wondered how 
 in the world the government was ever going to get that 
 much out of me. Certainly I couldn t do any more than 
 I had been doing towards crushing the rebellion for thir 
 teen dollars. And what would I do with so much money? 
 In my wildest dreams of promotion I had never hoped to 
 be a commissioned officer. I had thought sometimes, a 
 week or two after I enlisted, that if I was a general I could 
 put down the rebellion so quick the government would 
 have lots of rations left on its hands to spoil, but a few 
 months active service had taken all that sort of nonsense 
 out of me, and I had been contented as a private. But 
 here I was jumped over everybody, and made an officer un- 
 
HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 beknown to me. It made me dizzy. I was not very strong 
 anyway, and this thing had come upon me suddenly I 
 was thinking of the magnificent uniform I would have, 
 and the fancy saddle and bridle, and the regular officer s 
 tent, with bottles of whiskey and glasses, when Jim asked 
 me if I wouldn t just hold that frying-pan of bacon over 
 the fire, while he cooked some coffee. He said we would 
 just eat a little to settle our stomachs, and then go out to 
 Thanksgiving dinner. 
 
 " Thanksgiving dinner," I said. " What are you talk 
 ing about ? " 
 
 " Don t you know," said Jim, " to-day is Thanksgiving? 
 The <e angel" told me last night to bring you out to the 
 plantation to-day, and I was going after you at the hospital 
 if you hadn t showed up. She has received a letter from 
 her brother, who is a rebel prisoner at Madison, and he 
 says a Yankee hotel-keeper at Madison, that you had writ 
 ten to, had called at the pen where they were kept, and 
 had brought him a lot of turkey and fixings, and offered 
 to send him a lot for Thanksgiving, so the rebel boys could 
 have a big feed, and he says he is well and happy, and 
 going to be exchanged soon. And she wants us to come 
 out and eat turkey and possum. I had rather eat gray 
 tom-cat than possum, but I told her we would come. So 
 we will eat a little bacon and bread, and ride out. 
 
 "Well, all right Jim," I said. "We will go, but in 
 my weak state I can t be expected to eat possum. If there 
 is anything of that kind to be eat, Jim, you will have to 
 eat it. However, I will do anything the rebel angel asks 
 me to do," I added, remembering her kindness to me when 
 I was sick. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION; 213 
 
 The ride to the plantation, after several weeks confine 
 ment, was better than medicine, and I enjoyed every step 
 my proud horse took. The animal acted as though he had 
 been told of my promotion, but it was plain to me that he 
 acted proud, because he had been resting during my sick 
 ness. It was all I could do to keep Jim alongside of me. 
 He would fall back every little while and try to act like an 
 orderly riding behind an officer. I had to discipline him 
 before he would come up alongside like a "partner/* I 
 mention this Thanksgiving dinner in the army, in order to 
 bring in a little advice the rebel girl gave me, which I 
 shall always remember. We arrived at the old plantation 
 house where the girl and her mother and some servants 
 were living, waiting for the war to close, so the men folks 
 could come back. The old lady welcomed us cordially, 
 the girl warmly and the servants effusively. The dinner 
 was good, though not elaborate, except the possum. That 
 was elaborate, and next to gumbo soup, the finest dish I 
 ever tasted. After we had got seated at the table, the old 
 lady asked a blessing, and it was more like a prayer. She 
 asked for a blessing upon all ol the men in both armies, 
 and made us feel as though there was no bitterness in her 
 heart towards the enemies of her people. During the din 
 ner Jim told of my promotion, and the circumstance was 
 commented on by all, and after dinner the rebel angel took 
 me one side, and said she had got a few words of advice t ~> 
 give me. She commenced by saying: 
 
 "Now that you are to be a commissioned officer, don t 
 get the big head. During this war, we have had soldiers 
 near us all the time, and I have seen some splendid soldiers 
 spoiled by being commissioned. Nine out of ten men that 
 
 16 
 
214 HOW PRIVATE GEORQE W. PECK 
 
 have received commissions in this locality, have been 
 spoiled . I am a few years older than you, and have seen 
 much of the world. You are a kind hearted man, and de 
 sire to treat everybody well, whether rich or poor, yankee 
 or confederate. If you let this commission spoil you, ya i 
 are not worthy of it. You will naturally feel as though 
 you should associate with officers entirely, but you will find 
 in them no better companions than you have found in the 
 private soldiers, and I doubt if you will find as true friends. 
 Do not, under any circumstances, draw away from your 
 old friends, and let a barrier raise up between you and 
 them. My observation teaches me that the only difference 
 between the officers and men in the Union army, is that 
 officers get more pay for doing less duty; they become dis 
 sipated and fast because they can better afford it, they 
 drink more, put on style, play cards for money, and think 
 the world revolves around them, and that they are indis 
 pensable to success, and yet when they die, or are discharged 
 for cause, private soldiers take their place and become bet 
 ter officers than they did, until they in turn become spoiled. 
 I can think of no position better calculated to ruin a young 
 man than to commission him in a cavalry regiment. Now 
 take my advice. Do not run in debt for a new uniform 
 and a silver mounted sword, and don t put a stock of whisky 
 and cigars into your tent, and keep open house, because 
 when your whisky and cigars are gone, those who drank 
 and smoked them will not think as much of you as before, 
 and you will have formed habits that will illy prepare you 
 for your work. You will not make any friends among 
 good officers, and you will lose the respect of the men who 
 have known you when you were one of them, but who will 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 
 
 laugh at you for getting the big head and going back on 
 those who are just as good as you are, but who have not 
 yet attained the dignity of wearing shoulder straps. I 
 meet officers every day, who were good soldiers before they 
 were raised from privates, and they show signs of dissipa 
 tion, and have a hard look, leering at women, and trying 
 to look blase. They try to act as near like foreign noble 
 men who are officers, as they can, from reading of their 
 antics, but Americans just from farms, workshops, com 
 mercial pursuits, and the back woods and country villages 
 of the north, are not of the material that foreign officials 
 are made of, and in trying to imitate them they only show 
 their shallowness. Do not, I beg of you, change one par 
 ticle from what you have been as a private soldier, unless 
 it is to have your pants fit better, and wear a collar. Of 
 course, you will be thrown among officers more than you 
 have before. Imitate their better qualities, and do not 
 compete with them in vices. Always remember that when 
 a volunteer army is mustered out, all are alike. The pri 
 vate, who has business ability, will become rich and re 
 spected, after the war, while the officer, who has been 
 promoted through favoritism, and who acquires bad habits, 
 will keep going down hill, and will be glad to drive a de 
 livery wagon for the successful private, whom he com 
 manded and snubbed when he held a proud position and 
 ^ot the big head. Now, my convalescent red-headed 
 yankee, you have the best advice, I know how to give a 
 young man who has struck a streak of luck. Go back to 
 your friends, and may God bless you." 
 
 Well, I l\ad never had any such advice as that before, 
 and as Jim and me rode back to camp that Thanksgiving 
 
816 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. FECK 
 
 evening, her words seemed to burn into my alleged brain. 
 I could see how easy it would be for a fellow to make a 
 spectacle of himself. What did a commission amount to, 
 anyway, that a fellow should feel above anybody. When 
 we arrived in camp, and went into our tent to have a smoke, 
 the chaplain came in. I had not seen much of him lately. 
 When I was sick I felt the need of a chaplain considerably. 
 Not that I cared particularly to have him come and set up 
 a howl over me, as though I was going to die, and he was 
 expected to steer me the right way. But I felt as though 
 it was his duty to look after the boys when they were sick, 
 and talk to them about something cheerful. But he did 
 not show up when I needed him, and when he called at our 
 tent after I was well, there wasn t that cordiality on my 
 part that there ought to have been. He had a package 
 which he unrolled, after congratulating me on my recov 
 ery, and it proved to be a new saber, with silver mounted 
 scabbard and gold sword handle. The chaplain said he 
 had heard that I was to be commissioned, and he had 
 found that saber at a store down town, and thought I 
 might want to buy it. He said of course I would not want 
 to wear a common government saber, as it would look too 
 rude. He said he could get that saber for forty dollars, 
 dirt cheap, and I could pay for it when I got my first pay 
 as an officer. I could see through the chaplain in a min 
 ute. He had thought I would jump at the chance to put 
 on style, and that he could make ten or fifteen dollars sell 
 ing me a gilt-edged saber. I thanked him warmly, and a 
 little sarcastically, for his great interest in the welfare of 
 my soul, in sickness and in health, but told him that I was 
 going to try and pull through with a conynon private s 
 
FU* %0\YK THE REBELLION". 
 
 saber. I told him that the few people I should kill with a 
 saber, would enjoy it just as well to be run through with a 
 cemmon saber. My only object was to help put down the 
 rebellion, and I could do it with ordinary plain cutlery, as 
 well as silver-mounted trappings. I said that to smear a 
 silver-mounted saber all over with gore, would spoil the 
 looks of it. The chaplain went out, when a drummer for a 
 tailor shop came in with some samples, and wanted to make 
 up a new uniform for me, regardless of expense. I stood 
 him off, and went to bed, tired, and thought I had rather 
 be a private than a general. The next morning it was my 
 turn to cook our breakfast, and I turned out and built a fire, 
 cut off some salt pork, and was frying it, when the orderly 
 sergeant came along and detailed Jim and me, with ten or 
 a dozen others to go to work on the fortifications. The 
 rebels were preparing to attack our position, and the com* 
 manding officer had deemed it advisable to throw up some 
 earthworks. I told the orderly that he couldn t detail me 
 to work with a shovel, digging trenches, when I was an 
 officer, but he said he could, until I received my commis 
 sion and was mustered in. I left my cooking and went to 
 the colonel s tent. He was just rolling out of his bunk, 
 and I said : 
 
 " How is it, Colonel ? Can an officer be detailed to go 
 and shovel dirt ? I have been detailed by the orderly, with 
 a lot of privates, to report to the engineer, to throw up 
 fortifications. That does not strike me as proper work for 
 a commissioned officer." 
 
 " You will have to go," said the colonel, as he stood on 
 one leg whf le he tried to lasso his other foot with a pants 
 lag. "It nay be three months before your comraission 
 
218 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PEJK 
 
 will arrive, and then you will have to go to New Orleans 
 to be mustered out as a private and mustered in as an of 
 ficer. Until that time you will have to do duty as a pri 
 vate." 
 
 " Then what the devil did you say anything about my 
 being commissioned for, until the commission got here," 
 said I, and I went back and finished cooking breakfast for 
 myself and Jim. 
 
 Our detail went down to the river, at the left of the line, 
 and reported to the engineer, and were set to work cutting 
 down trees, throwing up dirt, and doing about the dirtiest 
 and hardest work that I had ever done. As a private I could 
 have done anything that was asked of me, but the thought 
 of doing such work, while all the boys were calling me 
 "Lieutenant," was too much. I never was so crushed in 
 my life. How glad I was that I did not buy that gilt-edged 
 saber of the chaplain. We had to wear our side arms 
 while at work, fearing an attack at any minute, and I 
 thought how ridiculous I would have looked with that 
 silver-mounted saber hanging to me, while I was handling 
 a shovel like a railroad laborer. If that detail was made 
 to humiliate me, and reduce my proud flesh, that had ap 
 peared on me by my sudden promotion, it had the desired 
 effect, for before night I was as humble an amateur officer 
 as ever lived. I had chopped down trees until my hands 
 were blistered, and had shoveled dirt until my back was 
 broke, aud at night returned to my tent too tired to eat 
 supper, and went to bed too weary and disgusted to sleep. 
 And that was my first day as a commissioned officer. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBL LLIOHo 
 
 CHAPTER XVIII. 
 
 MY SICKNESS AND HOSPITAL EXPERIENCES HAVE SPOILED ME FOB 
 A SOLDIER I AM FULL OP CHARITY, AND HOPE THE WAR 
 WILL CEASE WE HAVE A GRAND ATTACK THE BATTLE 
 LASTED TEN MINUTES THE REBEL ANGEL S BROTHER is CAP 
 TURED. 
 
 I became satisfied, more each day, that my sickness, 
 and experience in the hospital, had spoiled me for a sol 
 dier. Being attended to so kindly by a rebel girl and getting 
 acquainted with her people, and hearing her mother pray 
 earnestly that the bloodshed might cease, sort of knocked 
 what little fight there was in me, out, and I didn t hanker 
 any more for blood. It seemed to me as though I could 
 meet any rebel on top of earth, and shake hands with him, 
 and ask him to share my tent, and help eat my rations. 
 The fact of being promoted to a commissioned office, didn t 
 make me feel half as good as I thought it was going to, 
 and I found myself wishing I could be a he sister of charity, 
 or something that did not have to shoot a gun, or go into 
 any fight. I got so I didn t care whether my commission 
 ever arrived or not. The idea of respectable men going 
 out to hunt each other, like game, became ridiculous to 
 me, and I wondered why the statesmen of the North and 
 South did not get together and agree on some sort of a 
 compromise, and have the fighting stop. I would have 
 agreed to anything, only, of course, whatever arrangement 
 was made, it must be understood that the South had no 
 right to secede. Then I would think, " Why, that is all 
 
220 HOW PKIVATE GEOKGE W. PECK 
 
 the South is fighting for, and if they concede that they are 
 wrong it is the same as though they were whipped, and of 
 course they could not agree to that." I tried to think out 
 lots of ways to wind the business up without fighting any 
 more, but a\l the plans I made, maintained that our side 
 was right, and I concluded to give up worrying about it. 
 But I made up my mind that I would not fight any more. 
 I was still weak from sickness, and there was no fight in 
 me. I thought this over a good deal, and concluded that 
 if I was called upon to go into another fight, where there 
 was any chance of anybody being killed, I would just have 
 a relapse, and go to the hospital again till it was over. I 
 had heard of fellows being taken suddenly ill when a fight 
 was in prospect, and I knew they were always laughed at, 
 but I made up my mind that I had rather be laughed at 
 than to hurt anybody. There was no thought of sneaking 
 out of a fight because of the danger of being killed myself, 
 but I just didn t want to shoot any friends of that girl who 
 had nursed me when I was sick. These thoughts kept 
 coming to me for a week or more, and one evening it was 
 rumored around that we were liable to be attacked the next 
 day. Some of our regiments had been out all day, and 
 they reported the enemy marching on our position, in 
 force. The rebels that lived in town could not conceal 
 their joy at the idea that we were to be cleaned out. They 
 would hint that there were erough Confederates concen 
 trating at that -point to drive every Yankee into the river, 
 and they were actually preparing bandages and lint, to take 
 care of the Confederates who might be wounded. If we 
 had taken their word for it there wouldn t be a Yankee 
 lert in town, when the Confederate boys begun to get in 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLIOtf. 221 
 
 their work. I went to bed that night resolved that I 
 should not be so well in the morning,, and would go to sur 
 geon s call, and be sent to the hospital. But I didn t like 
 the way those rebels talked about the coming fight. Egad, 
 if they were so sure our fellows were going to be whipped, 
 may be I would stay and see about it. If they thought an} 
 of our fellows were going to slink out, when they made 
 their brags about whipping us, they would find their mis 
 take. However, if I didn t feel very well in the morning, 
 I would go to surgeon s call, but I wouldn t go to the hos 
 pital. In the meantime, I would just see if I had cart 
 ridges enough for much of a row, and rub up the old car 
 bine a little, for luck. Not that I wanted to shoot any 
 body dead, but I could shoot their horses, and make the 
 blasted rebels walk, anyway. And so all that evening I 
 was part of the time trying to see my way clear to get out 
 of a regular fight, where anybody would be liable to get 
 hurt, and again I was wondering if my sickness had injured 
 my eyesight so I couldn t take good aim at the buttons on 
 a rebel s coat. I was about half and half. If the rebels 
 would let us alone, and not bring on a disturbance, I was 
 for peace at any price, but gol-blast them, if they come 
 fooling around trying to scare anybody, I wouldn t go to a 
 hospital, not much. I talked with Jim about it, and he 
 felt about as I did. He didn t want any more fighting, 
 and while he couldn t go to the hospital, he was going to 
 try and get detailed to drive a six mule team for the 
 quartermaster, but he cleaned up his gun all the same, 
 and looked over his cartridges to see if they were all right. 
 We got up next morning, got our breakfast, and Jim 
 asked me if I was going to the hospital and I told him I 
 
222 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 would wait till afternoon. I asked him if he was going to 
 drive mules, and he said not a condemned mule, not until 
 the fight was over. There was a good deal of riding around, 
 orderlies, staff officers, etc. Artillery was moving around, 
 and about eight o clock some of our boys who had been on 
 picket all night, came in looking tired and nervous, saying 
 they had been shot at all night, and that the rebels had got 
 artillery and infantry till you couldn t rest, and they would 
 make it mighty warm for us before night. Orders come to 
 each company, that no soldier was to leave camp under any 
 circumstances, to go to town or anywhere. I told Jim if 
 he was going to drive mules, he better be seeing the quar 
 termaster sergeant, but he said he never was much gone on 
 mule driving, anyhow. But he said if he looked as sick as 
 I did he would go to the hospital too quick. I told him 
 there wasn t anything the matter with me. Pretty soon, 
 over to the right, near the river, there was a cannon dis 
 charged. It was not long before another went off around 
 to the left, and then a dozen, twenty, a hundred, all along 
 the line. They were rebel cannon, and pretty soon they 
 were answered by our batteries. Then there was a rattling 
 of infantry, and the noise was deafening. I expected at 
 the first fire that our bugler would come out in front of 
 headquarters and blow for heaven s sake, for us to saddle 
 up, but for three hours we loafed around camp and no 
 move was made. It was tiresome. We started to play 
 cards several times, but nobody could remember what was 
 trumps, and we gave that up. Some of our boys would 
 sneak up on to a hill for a few minutes, against orders, and 
 come back and say that they could see the fight, and it was 
 which and tpther. Then a few more would sneak off, and 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 
 
 after awhile the whole regiment was up on the hill, looking 
 >ff to the hills and valleys, watching rebel shells strike our 
 earth works and throw up the dust, and watching our 
 shells go over to the woods where the rebels were. Then I 
 found myself hoping our shells were just paralyzing the 
 Johnnies. Presently the ambulances began to come by us, 
 loaded with wounded, and that settled it. When there was 
 no fighting, and I was half sick, and felt under obligations 
 to a Confederate girl for taking care of me, I didn t want 
 any of her friends hurt, but when her friends forgot them 
 selves, and come to a peaceable place, and began to kill off 
 our boys, friendship ceased, and I wondered why we didn t 
 get orders to saddle up and go in. We were all on the hill 
 watching things, when the colonel, who had been riding 
 off somewhere, came along. We thought he would order 
 us all under arrest for disobeying orders, but he rode up to 
 us, and pointing to a place off to the right a mile or so, 
 where there was a sharp infantry fight, he said, " Boys, we 
 shall probably go in right there about 3 P.M., unless the 
 rebels are reinforced," and he rode down to his tent. Well, 
 after about twenty ambulances had gone by us with 
 wounded soldiers, we didn t care how soon we went in 
 there. We watched the infantry and artillery for another 
 nour, as pretty a sight as one often sees. It was so far 
 away we could not see men fall, and it was more like a cel 
 ebration, until one got near enough to see the dead. Pres 
 ently the regimental bugle sounded <e Boots and saddles," 
 and in a minute every man on the hill had rushed down to 
 his tent, even before the notes had died away from the 
 bugle. Nothing was out of place. Every soldier had 
 known that *he bugle would sound sooner or later, and we 
 
224 HOW PKIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 iiad everything ready. It did not seem five minutes before 
 every company was mounted, in its street, waiting for 
 orders. Jim leaned over towards me and said, " Hospital? " 
 and I answered, " Not if I know myself/ and I patted my 
 carbine on the stock. I said to him, " Six mule team ? " 
 and he whispered back, " Nary six mule team for the old 
 man." Then the bugle sounded the "Assembly," and 
 each company rode up on to the hill and formed in regi 
 mental front facing the battle. Every eye was on the place 
 where the colonel had said we would probably "go in." 
 There never was a more beautiful sight, and every man in 
 the cavalry regiment looked at it till his eyes ached. Then 
 came an order to dismount and every man was ordered to 
 tighten up his saddle girth as tight as the horse would bear 
 it, and be sure his stirrup straps were too short rather than 
 too long. To a cavalry man these orders mean business. 
 
 Then we mounted again, and a few noticed a flag off 
 co the right signaling. The colonel noticed it and coolly 
 gave the order, "fours right, march." We went off to 
 wards the fighting, then right down by our own cannon 
 and formed in line behind the infantry, that was at work 
 with the enemy, the artillery firing over our heads at the 
 confederates in the woods. The noise was so loud that one 
 could not hear his neighbor speak; but above it all came 
 a buggle note, and glancing to the left, another cavalry 
 regiment, and another, formed on our left. Another bugle 
 note, and to the right another cavalry regiment formed, 
 and for half a mile there was a line of horsemen, deafened 
 by the noise, waiting the command of some man, through 
 $ bugle. If the rebels had time to notice those four regi 
 ments of cavalry, fresh and ready for a gallop, they must 
 
PUT DOWN THE BEBELLKXN". 225 
 
 have known that it was a good time to get away. Finally, 
 our artillery ceased firing and it seemed still as death, 
 except for the rattling of infantry in front of us. The 
 rebel artillery had ceased firing also, and a great dust be 
 yond the woods showed that they were getting away. 
 The bugle sounded "forward" and that line of cavalry 
 started on a walk. The infantry in front ceased firing, 
 and went to the right of us at a double-quick, and the 
 field was clear of our men. While our cavalry was walk 
 ing, they kept a pretty good line, each man glancing to 
 the right for a guide. As we neared the place where our 
 infantry had been stationed, it was necessary to break up 
 a little to pass dead and wounded without riding over 
 them, and when falling back to keep from hurting a 
 wounded comrade, a look at the line up and down showed 
 that it was almost a mob, with no shape, but after get- 
 ing forty rods, we passed the field where men had fallen, 
 and the order to "close up, guide right," was given, and 
 in an instant the line was perfect. Then came the order 
 to trot, and we went a short distance, until the rebels 
 could be plainly seen behind trees, logs, and in line, firing. 
 We halted and fired a few rounds from carbines, and then 
 dropped the carbines, on orders. For a moment nothing 
 was done, when officers ordered every man to draw his re 
 volver, and when the six charges had been fired, after near- 
 ing the enemy, to drop the revolver in the holster, and 
 draw sabers, and every man for himself, but to rally on 
 the colors, at the sound of the bugle, and not to go too far. 
 Talk about being sick, and going to the hospital, or driving 
 mules! Coward as I was, and I knew it, there was some 
 thing about the air that made me feel that I wouldn t be 
 
226 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W, PECK 
 
 in the hospital that day for all the money in the world. 
 All idea of being sorry for the enemy, all charity, all hope 
 that the war might close before any more men were killed, 
 was gone. After looking in the upturned faces of our 
 dead and wounded on the field, the more of the enemy 
 that were killed the better. It is thus that war makes men 
 brutal, while in active service. They think of things and 
 do things that they regret immediately after the firing 
 ceases. The next ten minutes was the nearest thing to hell 
 that I ever experienced, and it seemed as though my face 
 must look like that of a fiend. I felt like one. The bugle 
 sounded "forward," and then there was an order to trot, 
 and the revolver firing began, with the enemy so near that 
 you could see their countenances, their eyes. Some of 
 them were mounted, others were on foot, some on artil 
 lery caissons, and all full of fight. It did not take long to 
 exhaust the revolvers, and then the sabers began to come 
 out, and the horrible word "charge," came from a thou 
 sand throats, and every soldier yelled like a Comanche 
 !Vidian, the line spread out like a fan, and every soldier on 
 L ^ O\VM hook. Sabers whacked, horses run, everybody 
 ye. Ned. Men said "I surrender," "What you jabbing at 
 me lor when I ain t fighting no moah," "Drop that gun, 
 you Johnnie, and go to the rear." Cries of pain and 
 anguish, and awful sounds that a man ought never to hear 
 but once. The business was all done in ten minutes. 
 
 Many of our men were killed and wounded, and many 
 of theirs were treated the same way. Those who could get 
 away, got, and those we passed without happening to hit 
 them, were prisoners, because the infantry followed and 
 took them back to the rear. Jim and me stayed as near 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 227 
 
 together as possible, and we noticed one young Confederate 
 on a mule. His left arm was hanging limp by his side, 
 and as Jim passed on one side of him and I on the other^ 
 he said, as he held up his right hand, " I dun got enough, 
 and I surrender/ The thing was about over, the bugle 
 having sounded the recall/ and we turned and went 
 back with this Confederate. He was as handsome a boy 
 as ever fired a gun, and while he was pale from his shat 
 tered left "arm, and weak, he said, "You gentlemen are 
 all fine riders, sir. You fought as well as Southern men, 
 sir/ That was a compliment that Jim and me acknow 
 ledged on behalf of the northern army. He couldn t have 
 paid our regiment a higher compliment if he had studied 
 a week. Then he said: " I was a fool to be in this fight. 
 I was a prisoner and was only exchanged last week. I 
 I might have remained at home on a furlough, but when 
 our army came along yesterday, and the boys said there 
 was going to be a fight, I took my sisters mule, the only 
 animal on the place, and came along, and now I am a 
 cripple." I looked at the mule, and I said to Jim, in a 
 whisper, I hope to die if it isn t the angel s mule. That 
 must be her brother." Jim was going to ask him what his 
 name was, when we neared the place, where our regiment 
 was forming and the surgeon of our regiment came along, 
 and I said, " Doc, I wish you would take this young fellow 
 and fix up his arm nice. He is a friend of mine. Take 
 him to our regimental hospital/ Then we went back to 
 the regiment, the prisoners were taken away, and after 
 marching around through the woods for an hour we rode 
 back to our camp, and the battle was over. Two or three 
 hours later I went over to the regimental hospital and 
 
228 HOW PRIVATE GEOflGE W. PECK 
 
 found the black-eyed confederate with his arm dressed, and 
 he was talking with our boys as though he belonged there. 
 Some one asked how he happened to be there., and the old 
 doctor eroid he believed he was a relative of one of our offi 
 cers. Anyway he was going to stay there. I gave him a 
 bunch of sutler cigars, and left him, and an hour later 
 the "angel" showed up, pale as death, and wanted some 
 one to go with her to the battle field to help find the body 
 of her dead brother. She said he had arrived home from 
 the North the morning before, and had gone into the fight, 
 and when the Confederates came back, defeated, past their 
 plantation, her brother was not among them, and she knew 
 he was dead. I have done a great many things in my life 
 that have given me pleasure, but no one that I remember 
 of that made me quite so happy as I was to escort the girl 
 who had been so kind to me, to the hospital where her 
 brother was. His wound was not serious, and he sat on a 
 box, smoking a cigar, telling the boys the news from Wis 
 consin. He had just come from there, where he was a 
 prisoner, and he couldn t talk enough about the kindness 
 of the "people of the nowth." His sister almost fainted 
 when she found him alive, then hugged him until I was 
 afraid she would disturb his arm, and then she sat by him 
 and heard him tell of his visit to Wisconsin. Before night 
 he was allowed to go home with his sister on parole, and 
 Jim and I were detailed to go and help bury the dead of 
 the regiment. 
 
DOW/N: THE REBELLIOH. 29 
 
 CHAPTER XIX. 
 
 I AM DETAILED TO DRIVE A SIX-MULE TEAM I AM COVERED 
 
 RED MUD I AM SENT ON AN EXPEDITION OF COLD-BLOODED 
 MURDER I MAKE A DOZEN EX-CONFEDERATE SOLDIERS HAPPY 
 BY SETTING THEM UP IN BUSINESS. 
 
 After the battle alluded to in my last chapter, it took 
 us a week or more to get brushed up, the dead buried, 
 and everything ready to go to living again. A battle 
 to a regiment in the field is a good deal like a funeral in 
 a family at home. When a member of a family is sick 
 unto death, all looks dark, and when the sick person dies 
 it seems as though the world could never look bright again. 
 Every time the relatives and friends look at any article be 
 longing to a deceased friend, the agony comes back, and it 
 is quite a while before there is any brightness anywhere, 
 but in time the tear-stained faces become smiling, the lost 
 friend is thought of only occasionally, and the world moves 
 along just the same So in the army. For a few days the 
 thought of comrades being gone forever, was painful, and 
 no man wanted to ride the horse whose owner had been 
 killed, but within a week the feeling was all ; gone, and if a 
 horse was a good one he didn t stay in the corral very long 
 on account of some good fellow having been shot off his 
 back. The boys who couldn t remember what was trumps 
 on the day of the battle (and a soldier has got to be 
 greatly interested in something else to forget what is 
 trumps) returned to their card-playing, and no one would 
 know, to look at them, that they had passed through a 
 
230 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 pretty serious scare, and seen their comrades fall all around. 
 We told stories of our experience in the army and at home, 
 and entertained each other. I couldn t tell much, except 
 what a good shot I was with a shotgun and rifle, and I told 
 some marvelous stories about hitting the bull s eye. It got 
 to be tiresome waiting around for my commission to arrive, 
 and I did not quite enjoy being a commissioned high pri 
 vate. Everybody knew I had been recommended for a 
 commission, aad they all called me " Lieutenant/ but all 
 the same I was doing duty as a private. For two or three 
 days I was detailed to drive mules for the quartermaster, 
 and that was the worst service I ever did perform. It 
 seemed as though the colonel wanted to prepare me for 
 any service that in the nature of things I was liable to be 
 called upon to perform. I kicked some at being detailed 
 to drive a six-mule team, but the colonel said I might see 
 the time when I could save the government a million dol 
 lars by being able to jump on to a wheel mule and drive a 
 wagon loaded with ammunition, or paymaster s cash, out 
 of danger of being captured by the enemy. So I went to 
 work and learned to "gee-haw" a six-mule team of the 
 stubbornest mules in the world, hauling bacon, but there 
 was no romance in taking care of six mules that would 
 kick so you had to put the harness on them with a pitch 
 fork, for fear of having your head kicked off. If I ever 
 get a pension it will be for my loss of character and temper 
 in driving those mules. I have been in some dangerous 
 places, but I was never in so dangerous a place, in battle, 
 as I was one day while driving those mules. One of the 
 lead mules got his forward foot over the bridle some way, 
 and I went to fix it, and the team started and "straddled* 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 231 
 
 me. As soon as I saw that I was between the two lead 
 mules, and that the team had started, I knew my only 
 safety was in laying down and taking the chances of the 
 three pairs of mules and wagon going straight over me. 
 To attempt to get out would mix them all up, so I fell 
 right down in the mud, which was about a foot deep, and 
 just like soft mortar. As the mules passed on each side of 
 me, every last one of them kicked at me, and I was under 
 the impression that each wheel of the wagon kicked at me, 
 but I escaped everything except the mud, and when I got 
 up on my feet behind the wagon, the quartermaster, who 
 was ahead on horseback, had stopped the team. He called 
 a colored man to drive, and told me I could go back to 
 the regiment. I tried to sneak in the back way, and not 
 see anybody, but when I passed the chaplain s tent a lot of 
 officers, who had been sampling his sanitary stores, come 
 out, and one of them recognized me, and they insisted on 
 my stopping and taking something with them. Honestly, 
 there was not an inch of my clothing but was covered 
 with red mud, that every soldier remembers who has been 
 through Alabama. They had fun with me for half an hour 
 and then let me go. I have never been able to look at a 
 nule since, without a desire to kill it. 
 
 I had said so much about my marksmanship with a 
 rifle, that one day I was sent for by the colonel. He said 
 he had heard I was a crack shot with the rifle, and I ad 
 mitted that I \\ as a pretty good shot. He asked me if I 
 could hit a man s eye every time at ten paces. I told him 
 I was almost sure. I could. He said he had a duty that 
 must be performed by some man that was an excellent shot, 
 and I might report at once with forty rounds of ammu- 
 
Hi 
 
 nitioi* ^r-n any more tUrtled 
 
 than I wa At the <:<.; manner. 
 
 i 
 
 rat ly 
 aimed At ;i : there WM anybody to tx- 
 
 *eem*d M 
 
 though I 
 
 WA* i 
 
 . 1 1 tr-rtttl bn 
 Uw tnemy. I report^ ! . frty 
 
 ." away, and 
 
 . 
 
 -it there were *t 
 
 bOped thty WOUlcl auffrr if If I COUld 
 
 hn? hn<l my WA iv gone trji. I r-- 
 
 he colonel s : 
 why I WM | tad e?< 
 
 
 
 ilwyi A aid thing." 
 
 . 
 
 >ok a chew of na?y j.h. 
 banco, "whrn dmth U neeeaary ( we ahould make 
 
 i hare been at . 
 
PUT [><> 235 
 
 *good deal, and trying to figure out how to make the death 
 he least painful to these poor vtct;; :t has occurred 
 
 to me that if we place them on the edge of the precipice, 
 and you shoot them through the hrain, while at the same 
 time I push them, they will fall down a hundred feet into 
 er, and if they arc not killed instantly by having the 
 brain blown out, they will certainly drown. How does 
 that strike yo- 
 
 I thought the chaplain was about the most heartless 
 
 ever heard talk about killing people, but I said that 
 
 o be the test way, but a cold chill went over 
 
 body through the head and 
 
 the chaplain p- the cliff into the water. I 
 
 was just going to ask him what th . when 
 
 he laid : 
 
 "Ah, there they co: 
 
 I In la lot of colored n: fading about 
 
 forty old back-number horses an ! afflicted with 
 
 glanders and other diseas* 
 
 ;e niggers to be kille-- 1 
 I iw," said the chaplain. " The h 
 I was n :i my life as I was w 
 
 found that my excellent marksmanship was 
 on animal of human b- : .-it I did feel hurt. 
 
 The idea of a brev jualilied to do dr 
 
 daring, h- lay to d; 
 
 . Hut I d iciihwl to do whatever I had 
 to do, well, at -paraticr: for the 
 
 vero brought on 1 ". 
 
 then tfcio ones with sore b;j. uiy of t; 
 
 rate korses, their only fault being sores made from the iad- 
 
234 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 dies, and as it would take months to cure them up, and as 
 the army was going to move soon, it had been decided to 
 kill them rather than leave them to fall into the enemy s 
 hands, or take them along to be cured on the march. I 
 shot about a dozen glandered horses, that being the largest 
 game I had ever killed, and the bodies fell down into the 
 river. Then there was a mule that was ugly, and it oc 
 curred to me I would have some fun with the chaplain. 
 
 We were outsile the lines, and quite a number of men 
 had gathered from the plantations, on hearing the firing, 
 to see what was up. I suggested to the chaplain that it 
 was a fibame to kill so many good horses, when they might 
 be of use to some of the planters, but he said they were all 
 rebels, and it was not the policy of the government to set 
 them up in business, by giving them horses to use tilling 
 crops. I argued that the men had come home from the 
 confederate army this was in 1864 either discharged 
 for wounds or disability, or paroled prisoners, and they 
 were anxious to go to work, but that they hadn t a dollar, 
 and our army had skinned every horse and mule off their 
 places, and the niggers had gone, so that a horse would be a 
 God-send to them. But the chaplain wouldn t hear to it. 
 The men, who had collected, were mostly too proud to ask 
 for a horse from a Yankee, but I could see that they did 
 not like to see the animals killed. I thought if I could 
 get the chaplain, who had been sent out to the execution 
 as a sort of humane society, to see that the animals were 
 killed easy, to go back to camp and leave me alone with 
 the horses, I could kill them or not, as I chose. They 
 brought out the ugly mule next, and my idea was to shoot 
 the mule through the tip of the ear, while the chaplain 
 
PUT DOWN THE BEBELLIOtf. 235 
 
 stood near with a rail to push it over the bank, and maybe 
 the mule would flax around and kick the chaplain up a 
 tree, or scare him so he would leave. I took deliberate 
 aim at the mule s ear, told the chaplain to push hard with 
 the rail so the corpse would be sure to go over the cliff, and 
 fired. Well, I have never seen such a scene in all my life. 
 The mule seemed to squat down, when the bullet hit the 
 top of his ear, then he brayed so loud that it would raise 
 your hat right off your head, then he jumped into the air 
 and whirled around and kicked in every direction with all 
 four feet at once, fell down and rolled over towards the 
 chaplain, and got up, and seeming to think the chaplain 
 was the author of the misery, started for him, and that 
 good man dodged behind trees until he got a chance to 
 climb up one, which he did, and sat on a limb and shook 
 his fist at the mule and me. He used quite strong lan 
 guage at me for not killing the animal dead. Finally the 
 niggers caught the mule, and the chaplain dismounted 
 from the limb, and came to me. I told him my carbine 
 was out of order, and I should have to take it apart and fix 
 it, and that there was no knowing whether it would shoot 
 where I aimed it or not, after it was fixed, and I might 
 have trouble with the rest of the horses. It would take an 
 hour at least to fix the gun. He said he guessed he would 
 go back to camp, and leave me to finish up the slaughter, 
 and that was what I wanted. The colored men were anx 
 ious to go back too, so I let them tie the horses Jo trees, 
 and all go back except one, whom I knew. After they had 
 all gone I went up to the dozen southern men who had 
 been watching the proceedings, and asked one who was 
 called " colonel " by the rest, if he didn t think it was 
 
236 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 wrong to kill the horses when by a little care they could be 
 of much use in tilling crops. " Well, sah," said he with 
 dignity. " If it is not disloyalty, sah, for a southern gen 
 tleman to criticize anything that a yankee does, I should 
 say, sah, that it was a d d shame, sah, to steal our horses, 
 and after using them up, sah, kill them in cold blood, sah. 
 Each one of those animals sah, would be a gold mine, sah, 
 at this time, to us who have come from the wah, sah, des 
 titute, with nothing but our bare hands to make a crop, to 
 keep our families from want, sah." 
 
 The other gentlemen nodded at what the colonel had 
 said, as though that was about their sentiments. I told 
 him that I felt about that way myself, but there was an 
 objection. If I gave the horses away, for use on the plan 
 tations, and the animals should be used hereafter in the 
 confederate army, it would not only be wrong, but I would 
 be liable to be dismissed from the army. 
 
 The colonel said he should want to be dismissed from 
 the Yankee army if he was in it, but I might feel different 
 about it. But he said he would pledge me his word as a 
 Southern gentleman, that if the animals could be lent to 
 them, they should never be used for war purposes. He 
 said he was poor, and his friends there were poor, but they 
 would not take a horse as a gift . from a stranger, but if I 
 would lend them the horses for a year, they would use 
 them, and return them to the proper officsr a year hence, 
 if the army was yet in existence, or they would take them 
 in exchange for horses that had previously been stolen 
 from them by our army. He said there was not a gentle 
 man present but had lost from two to a dozen horses since 
 the army had been in their vicinity. I admired the dig- 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 23? 
 
 nity and honesty of the old gentleman, and I knew mighty 
 well that we had picked up every horse we could find, and 
 I said: 
 
 "Colonel, here are about thirty horses I have been 
 ordered to kill. If I do not kill them I take a certain 
 responsibility. I feel under obligations to many Southern 
 people for courtesies, and I feel that the nursing I received 
 during a recent sickness, *rom one of your Southern ladies, 
 about the same as saved nvy life. I believe the war is very 
 near over, and that neither you nor our men will have oc 
 casion for much more active service. You have come 
 home to your desolate plantations, and found everything 
 gone. This is the fate of war, but it is unpleasant all the 
 same. If you can use these animals for your work, in 
 rising crops, you may take them in welcome, and if there 
 is any cussing, I will stand it. My advice would be to 
 take them to some isolated place on your plantation, and 
 keep them out of sight for a time. Our army will move 
 within a week, and perhaps never come back here. The 
 animals are branded "TJ. S." which will always remain. 
 If the horses are found in your possession, later, you may 
 have to say that they were given to you by an agent of the 
 quartermaster. If they are taken from you, grin and bear 
 it. If you are permitted to keep them, and they do you 
 any good, I shall be very glad. If I get hauled over ^be 
 coals for giving aid and comfort to the enemy, I will lie 
 out of it some way, or stand my punishment like a little 
 man. The horses are yours, as far as I am concerned/ 
 
 " Well, sah, you are a perfect gentleman, sah," said the 
 colonel, as he took my hand and shook it cordially. " And 
 I should be proud to entertain you at my place, sah, W 
 
238 HOW PRIVATE GEOKGE W. PECK 
 
 have got little left, sah, but you are welcome to our home 
 at any time. I am an old man, with a bullet in my leg. 
 Two of my boys are dead, in Virginia, sah. and I have one 
 boy who is a prisoner at the north. If he comes home 
 alive, we will be able to make a living and have a home 
 again. The war has been a terrible blow to us all, sah. I 
 reckon both sides, sah, have got about enough, and both 
 sides have made cussed fools of themselves. When this 
 affair is settled, sah, the north and south will be better 
 friends than ever, sah. I wish you a long life, sah." 
 
 The other gentlemen expressed thanks, and they 
 picked out two or three horses apiece and led them away, 
 it seemed to me as happy a lot of gentlemen as I ever saw. 
 I called the colored man, and we started for camp. For a 
 five dollar bill, and a promise to always take a deep inter 
 est in the colored man s welfare, I got his promise that he 
 tvould never tell anybody about my giving the horses away, 
 and for nearly a year he kept his promise. I went back to 
 headquarters and reported that the animals had been dis 
 posed of, and that evening I was invited to set into a poker 
 game with some of the officers, and when we got up I 
 had won over a hundred dollars. I looked upon the streak 
 of luck as a premium for my kindness to the gentlemen 
 who took the horses, but some of the officers seemed to 
 have a suspicion that I concealed cards up my sleeve. It 
 is thus that the best of us are misunderstood. 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 239 
 
 CHAPTER XX. 
 
 I DEMONSTKATE THAT GAMBLING DOES NOT PAY I CAUSE A GEN 
 ERAL STAMPEDE CHRISTMAS IN THE PINE WOODS OF ALA 
 BAMA MILLIONS OF DOLLARS, BUT NO CHRISTMAS DINNER. 
 
 When I went away from the party of officers, where we 
 had been playing draw-poker, with a hundred dollars in 
 my pocket, which I had won from men who thought 
 they were pretty good poker players, I felt as though I 
 owned the earth. I had my hand in my pocket, hold of 
 the roll of greenbacks, and in that way constantly realized 
 that I was no common pauper. I had never thought that I 
 was an expert at cards, but this triumph convinced me 
 that there was more money to be made playing poker than 
 in any other way. I figured up in my mind that if I 
 could win a hundred dollars a night, and only played five 
 nights a week, I could lay up two thousand dollars a 
 month. To keep it up a year would make me rich, and if 
 the war lasted a couple of years I could go home with 
 money enough to buy out the best newspaper in Wisconsin. 
 It is wonderful what a train of thought a young man s first 
 success in gambling, or speculation, brings to him. I went 
 to bed with my hundred dollars buttoned inside my flannel 
 shirt, and dreamed all night about holding four aces, full 
 hands, and three of a kind. All that night, in my sleep, 
 I never failed to "fill" when I drew to a hand. I made 
 up my mind to break every officer in the regiment, at 
 poker, and then turn my attention to other regiments, and 
 win all the money the paymaster should bring to the bri- 
 
240 HOW PRIVATE GEOKGE W. PECK 
 
 gade. I got up in the morning with a headache, and 
 thought how long it would be before night, when we could 
 play poker again, and I wondered why we couldn t play 
 during the day, as there was nothing else going on. It got 
 rumored around the regiment that I had cleaned the offi 
 cers out at poker the night before, and the boys seemed 
 glad that a private had made them pay attention. I had 
 not yet got my commission, and so any victory I might 
 achieve was considered a victory for a private soldier. Sev 
 eral of the boys congratulated me. The nearest I ever 
 come to quarreling with my old partner, Jim, was over 
 this poker business. I showed him my roll, and told him 
 how I had cleaned the officers out, and instead of feeling 
 good over it, Jim said I was a confounded fool. I tried to 
 argue the matter with Jim, but he couldn t be convinced, 
 and insisted that they had made a fool of me, and had let 
 me win on purpose, and that they would win it all back, 
 and all I had besides. He said I had better let the chap 
 lain take the hundred dollars to keep for me, and stay 
 away from that poker game, and I would be a hundred 
 ahead, but I didn t want any second-class chaplain to be a 
 guardian over me, and I told Jim I was of age, and could 
 take care of myself. Jim said he thought I had some 
 sense before I was commissioned, but it had spoiled me. 
 He said in less than a week I would be borrowing money 
 of him. I knew better, and went around camp with my 
 thumbs stuck in my armholes, and felt big. It was an 
 awful long day, but I put in the time thinking how I 
 would draw cards, and bet judiciously, and finally night 
 came, and I went over to the major s tent, where the offi 
 cers usually congregated. I was early, and had to wait 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 241 
 
 half an hour before the crowd showed up. As they came 
 in each had something to say to me. " Here s the man 
 who walked off with our wealth last night/ said one. 
 "Here s our victim/ said another. "We will send him 
 to his tent tonight without a dollar." They chaffed me a 
 good deal, but I made up my mind that I could play as 
 well as they could, and some of them were old fellows that 
 had played poker before I was born. Well, we went to 
 work, and the first hand I got I lost ten dollars. It was 
 the history of all smart Alecks s, and there is no use of 
 going into details. In less than an hour they had won the 
 hundred dollars, and fifty that I had sewed inside my shirt 
 to keep for a rainy day, and they had joked me every time 
 I bet until I was exasperated to such an extent that I could 
 have killed them. Winning or losing money with them 
 was a mere pastime, and they seemed to enjoy losing about 
 as much as winning. I was too proud, or too big a fool to 
 leave the game when I had lost all I had, and I borrowed 
 a little of each of them, and lost it, and then I said I was 
 tired and I guessed I would go to bed, and I went out, 
 dizzy and sick at heart, and the officers laughed so I oould 
 hear them clear to my tent. On the way to my tent, and 
 as I walked around for half an hour before going there, I 
 thought over what a fool I was, how I had forgotten all the 
 good advice ever given me by my friends. Knowing that 
 I was not intended by nature for a gambler, I had gone in 
 with my eyes open, made a temporary success, got the big 
 head, as all boys do, and gone back and laid down my bun 
 dle, and become the laughing stock of the whole crowd. 
 I figured up that I was just an even hundred dollars out of 
 pocket, and decided that I would never try to get i\ back. 
 
242 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 I would simply swear off gambling right there, forget that 
 I knew one card from another, pay up my gambling debts 
 when I got my first pay, and never touch a card again. 
 That was the wisest conclusion that I ever come to. After 
 I had walked around until my head cleared off a little, I 
 went in the tent sly and still, to go to bed without letting 
 Jim hear me. I was ashamed, and didn t want to talk. I 
 heard Jim roll over on his bunk, and he said: 
 
 " Bet ten dollars, pard, that you lost all you had." 
 
 Jim, I won t bet with you. I have sworn off betting 
 intirely." 
 
 " Help yourself/ said Jim, as he reached over his greasy 
 old pocketbook to me. " Take all you want, now that you 
 have come to your senses. But you must admit that what 
 I said about your being a fool, was true." 
 
 " Yes, and an idiot, and an ass/ I said, as I handed 
 back Jim s money. " But that settles it. I will never 
 gamble another cent s worth as long as I live, and if I see 
 a friend of mine gambling, I will try and break him of the 
 habit. There is nothing in it," and I went to sleep, and 
 didn t dream any more about winning all the money in 
 camp. 
 
 Two days before Christmas our cavalry, consisting of a 
 full brigade, started on a raid, or a march through the ene 
 my s country, and as I could not act as an officer very well, 
 before my commission arrived, and as the colonel seemed 
 to hate to see me in the ranks when I was looked upon as 
 an officer, he sent me to brigade headquarters on a detail 
 to carry the brigade colors. The brigade colors consisted 
 of a blue guidon, on a pole. The butt <<nd of the pole, or 
 staff, was inserted in a socket of leather fastened to my 
 
PUT DOWN THE EEBELLION. 243 
 
 stirrup,, and T. held on to the staff with my right hand when 
 on the march,, guiding my horse with my left hand. When 
 the command halted the colors were planted in the ground 
 in front of the place which the brigade commander had 
 selected. On the march I rode right behind the brigade 
 commander and his staff, with the body guard to protect 
 the precious colors. I was glad of this position, because it 
 took me among high officials, and if there was anything I 
 doted on it was high officers. The colonel had told me 
 that I munt be on my good behavior, and salute the officers 
 of the staff, whenever they came near me. He said the 
 brigade commander was a strict disciplinarian, and wouldn t 
 put up with any monkey business. The first hour of my 
 service as color bearer came near breaking up the brigade. 
 I was perhaps forty feet behind the brigade commander 
 and his staff, riding as stiff as though I was a part of the 
 horse, and feeling as proud as though I owned the army. 
 Suddenly the colonel and staff turned out of the road, and 
 faced to the rear, and started to ride back to one of the 
 regiments in the rear. I saw them coming, and felt that 
 I must salute them. How to do it was a puzzle to me. Ii 
 I saluted with my left hand, it would be wrong, besides I 
 would have to drop the reins, and my horse might start to 
 run, as he was prancing and putting on as much style as I 
 was. If I saluted with my right hand, I should have to 
 let go the flag staff The salute must be sudden, so I could 
 grac^ the staff very quick, before it toppled over. It took 
 a great head to decide what to do, and I had to decide 
 quick. Just as the brigade commander got opposite me I 
 let go the flag staff, brought my right hand quickly to the 
 right eye, as nice a salute as a man ever saw, and returned 
 
244 
 
 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 it to grab the flag staff. But it was too late. As soon as 
 toy right hand let go of the staff, it fell over and the gilt 
 darj; on the end of the staff struck the general s horse in 
 the flank, he jumped sideways against the adjutant-gener- 
 a?s horse, and his horse fell over the brigade surgeon s 
 horse, the general s horse run under a tree, and brushed 
 the general off, and the whole staff was wild trying to hold 
 their horses, and jumping to catch the general s horse, and 
 pick the general off the ground. In the meantime my 
 horse had got frightened at the staff and flag that was 
 dragging on the ground, with one end in the socket in the 
 stirrup, the pole tickling him in the ribs, and he began to 
 dance around, and whirl, and knock members of the color- 
 guard off their horses, and they stampeded to the woods 
 leaving me in the road, on a frightened horse, whirling 
 around, unmanageable, the staff striking trees and horses, 
 until the staff was broken. 
 
 The regiment in the rear of us saw the commotion, saw 
 the general dismounted, and the colors on the ground, and 
 *, general stampede in front, and, thinking the general and 
 staff had been ambushed by the rebels, and many killed, 
 the colonel ordered his men forward on a charge, and, in 
 less time than it takes to write it, the woods were full of 
 charging soldiers, looking for an imaginary enemy, a sur 
 geon had opened up a lot of remedies, and all was confu 
 sion, and I was the innocent cause of it all. I had seen 
 my mistake as soon as the flag staff knocked the general 
 off his horse, and when I dismounted and picked up the 
 flag, and the pieces of the staff, and found myself sur 
 rounded by excited troops, I wondered if the general 
 would pull his revolver and shoot me himself, or order 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 245 
 
 .come of the soldiers to kill me. For choice I had rather 
 have been killed by a volley from a platoon of soldiers, but 
 I recognized the fact that the general had a perfect right 
 to kill me. Ir fact I wanted him to shoot me. I waa 
 trimming the limbs off a sapling for a makeshift flag staff, 
 when I saw the crowd open, and the general walked 
 towards me. His face was a:trifle pale, except where the 
 red clay from the road covered it, and I felt that the next 
 moment or two would decide in what manner I was to 
 meet my doom. I remembered what the colonel had told 
 me, about the general being a strict disciplinarian, and 
 wondered if it wouldn t help matters if I should fall on 
 my knees and say a little prayer,, or ask him to spare my 
 life. I wondered if I would be justified in drawing my 
 revolver and trying to get the drop on the general. But I 
 had no time to think it over, for he came right up to me, 
 and saids 
 
 "I beg your pardon, my young friend, for the trouble 
 and annoyance I have caused you. I should have known 
 better than to ride so near you, and frighten your horse, 
 when you had only one hand to guide the animal. Are 
 you hurt? No; well, I am very glad. Ah, the flag staff 
 is broken! Let me help you tack the flag on the sapling. 
 Orderly^ bring me some nails. Let me whittle the bark 
 off the sapling, so it will not hurt your hands. When we 
 get into camp tonight, and the wagons come up, I will see 
 that you have another staff. There, don t feel bad about 
 it. There is no damage." 
 
 Bless his soul! I could have hugged him for his kind, 
 ness. When he came towards me, I was mad and desper 
 ate, and when he spoke kind words to me, my chin trem* 
 
S46 
 
 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 bled, and I felt like a baby. He stopped the brigade for 
 half an hour, to help fix up my flag, and all the time 
 talked so kindly to me, that when the thing was fixed, I 
 felt remorse of conscience, and said: "General, I am en 
 tirely to blame myself. I tried to perform the impossible 
 feat of saluting you and holding the colors at the same 
 time, which I am satisfied now cannot be done success 
 fully. Lay it all to me." 
 
 "I knew it," said the good old general, "and I was 
 going to tell you that you are not expected to salute any 
 body when you have the colors. You are a part of the 
 flag, then. You will learn it all by and by," and he 
 mounted his horse and rode away about his business, as 
 cool as though nothing had happened, and left me feeling 
 that he was the best man on earth. Further acquaintance 
 with the old man taught me that he was one of nature s 
 noblemen. He was an Illinois farmer, who had enlisted as 
 ./private, and had in time become colonel of his regiment, 
 and had been placed in command of this brigade. Every 
 evening he would take an axe and cut up fire-wood enough 
 for headquarters, and he was not above cleaning off his 
 horse if his servant was sick, or did not do it to suit, and 
 frequently I have seen him greasing his own boots. 
 
 Two days out, and we were in the pine woods of Ala 
 bama, with no habitation within ten miles. After a day s 
 march we went into camp in the woods, and it was the 
 afternoon before Christmas. The young pines, growing 
 among the larger ones, were just such little trees as were 
 used at home for Christmas trees, and within an hour after 
 getting the camp made, every man thought of Christmab 
 at home. The boys went off into the woods and got holly, 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 247 
 
 and mistletoe, and every pup tent of the whole brigade was 
 decorated, and they hung nose bags, grain sacks, army 
 socks and pants on the trees. Around the fires stakes had 
 been driven to hang clothes on to dry, and as night came 
 and the pitch pine fires blazed up to the tops of the great 
 pines, it actually looked like Christmas, though there was 
 not a Christmas present anywhere. After supper the bri 
 gade band began to play patriotic airs, with occasionally 
 an old fashioned tune, like "Old Hundred," the woods 
 rung with music from the boys who could sing, and every 
 body was as happy as I ever saw a crowd of people, and 
 when it came time to retire the band played " Home, Sweet 
 Home," and three thousand rough soldiers went to bed 
 with tears in their eyes, and every man dreamed of the 
 dear ones at home, and many prayed that the home ones 
 might be happy, and in the morning they all got up, 
 stripped the empty Christmas stockings off the evergreen 
 trees, put them on, and went on down the red road, and 
 at noon the army entered Montgomery, Alabama, the first 
 capital of the confederate states, took possession of the 
 capital building in which were millions of dollars of con 
 federate money and bonds. Every soldier filled his pockets 
 and saddle bags with bonds and bills of large denomina 
 tions. It was a poor soldier that could not count up his 
 half a million dollars, but with all the money no man could 
 buy a Christmas dinner. A dollar in greenbacks would 
 buy more than all of the wagon loads of confederate cur 
 rency captured that day. And yet the people of Mont 
 gomery looked upon the arrival of the Yankees much as 
 they would the arrival of a pestilence. However, it was 
 not many days before a better understanding was arrived 
 
248 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 at, and Yankee blue and Confederate gray got mixed up, 
 and acquaintances were made that ripened into mutual 
 respect and in some cases love. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 240 
 
 CHAPTER XXI. 
 
 I Go ON A SCOUTING EXPEDITION MY HORSE DIES OP POISON 
 I TURN HORSE-THIEF I CAPTURE A CHURCH, CONGREGATION, 
 AND MINISTERS, BUT I SPARE THE COMMUNION WINE. 
 
 Let s see, the last chapter left me with a million dollars, 
 more or less, of confederate money in my possession, and 
 yet I had not enough to buy a square meal. I think there 
 was no one thing that caused the people of the confederate 
 states, outside of their army, to realize the hoplessness of 
 their cause, along in 64, as much as the relative value of 
 confederate money and greenbacks. Of course the confed 
 erate soldiers, poor fellows, realized the difference some, 
 when they could get hold of greenbacks, but the people of 
 the south who did not have rations furnished them, and who 
 had to skirmish around and buy something to live upon, 
 early learned that a greenback was worth "two in the 
 bush," as it were. No community in the south was more 
 loyal to the confederacy than the people of Montgomery, 
 Alabama. They tried to use confederate currency as long 
 as there was any hope, and they tried hard to despise the 
 greenbacks; but when it got so that a market basket full 
 of their own currency was looked upon with suspicion by 
 their own dealers in eatables, and a greenback was sought 
 after by the dealer, and its possessor was greeted with a smile 
 while the overloaded possessor of confederate currency was 
 frowned upon, more in sorrow than in anger, however, a 
 wild desire took possession of the people to get hold of the 
 toted greenbacks; and a soldier or army fo^wer who had 
 
250 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 a good supply of greenbacks was met more than half way 
 in reconciliation; and little jobs were put up to get the 
 money that made many ashamed, but they had to have 
 greenbacks. Many would have given their lives if confed 
 erate money could have been as good as the money of the 
 invaders, but it was not and never could be, and it was not 
 an hour after the enemy was in Montgomery before people 
 who had been loyal to the south up to that hour and 
 believed in its currency, went back on it completely, and 
 they cherished the greenback and hugged it to their bosoms 
 like an old friend. They had rather had gold, but good 
 green paper would buy so much more than any currency 
 they had known for years, that they snatched it greedily. 
 And many of them enjoyed the first real respect for the 
 Union that they had had for four years, when they met 
 the well-fed and well-clothed Union soldiers, who did not 
 seem as bad as they had been painted, the poorest one of 
 which had more money in his pockets than the richest cit 
 izen of supposed wealth. The people seemed surprised to 
 meet well-dressed private soldiers who could converse on 
 <my subject, and who seemed capable of doing any kind 
 of business. Fires broke out in many places in the city, 
 and Union soldiers went to work with the primitive fire 
 apparatus at hand and put out the fires. Locomotives had 
 been thrown from the track of the railroad in an attempt 
 to destroy them, and private soldiers were detailed to put 
 the locomotives together and run them, which they did, to 
 the surprise of the people. An officer would take charge 
 of a quantity of captured property, and he would detail 
 the first half-dozen soldiers he met to go and make out an 
 invoice of the property, and the boys would do it as well 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 
 
 jts the oldest southern merchant. A planter that could 
 not speak anything but French would come to the captain, 
 of a company to complain of something, and the captain 
 after vainly trying to understand the man, would turn to 
 some soldier in his company and say, "Here Frenchy, talk 
 to this man, and see what he wants/ and the soldier 
 would address the planter in French, politely, and in a 
 moment the difficulty would be settled, and the planter 
 would go away bowing and smiling. Any language could 
 be spoken by the soldiers, and any business that ever was 
 transacted could be done by them. A soldier printer vis 
 ited the office of a city paper, and in a conversation with 
 the editor informed him that there were editors enough in 
 his regiment to edit the New York Herald. At first the 
 better class of citizens, the old fathers in Israel, of the 
 confederacy, stood aloof from the new soldiers in blue, 
 expecting them to be insolent, as conquerors are sometimes 
 supposed to be; but soon they saw that the boys were as 
 mild a mannered and friendly and jolly a lot as they ever 
 saw, not the least inclined to gloat over their fallen enemy, 
 and at times acting as though they were sorry to make 
 any trouble; and it was not long before boys in blue and 
 citizens in gray were playing billiards together, with old 
 gentlemen keeping count for them, old fellows, who a week 
 before would have been insulted if any one had told them 
 they would ever speak to a Yankee soldier. The second 
 day the southern ladies, who had kept indoors, came out 
 and promenaded the beautiful streets, and seemed to 
 enjoy the sight of the bright uniforms, and before night 
 acquaintances had been made, and it did not cause any 
 remark to see Union officers and soldiers walking with 
 
252 HOW PEIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 ladies, talking with animation, and laughing pleasantly. 
 It almost seemed as though the war was over. 
 
 It was about this time that I stole my first horse. I 
 had ridden horses that had been "captured" from the 
 enemy, in fair fights, and that had been accumulated in 
 divers ways by the quartermaster, and issued to the men, 
 but I never deliberately stole a horse. Two or three com 
 panies of my regiment had gone off on a scout, to be gone 
 a couple of days, leaving the command at Montgomery, 
 and one day we were encamped on an old abandoned field, 
 taking dinner. The horses and mules were grazing near 
 us, and there was no indication that any epidemic was 
 about to break out. We were about sixty miles from 
 Montgomery, and were cooking our last meal, expecting to 
 make a forced march and be back before morning. I had 
 got the midday meal for Jim and myself cooked, the 
 bacon, sweet potatoes, coffee and so forth, and spread upon 
 a horse blanket on the ground, and we were just about to sit 
 down to eat, when a mule that had been browsing near us, 
 and snooping into our affairs, attracted our attention. All 
 of a sudden the animal became rigid, and stood up as stiff 
 as possible, then its muscles relaxed, and it became limber, 
 and whirled around and brayed, backed up towards us, and 
 as we rushed away to keep from being kicked, the mule fell 
 over in a fit directly on our beautifully cooked dinner, rolled 
 over on the bacon and potatoes and coffee, and trembled 
 and brayed, and died right there. I looked at Jim and 
 Jim looked at me. " Well, condam a mule, anyway," said 
 Jim. " That animal has been ready to die for two hours, 
 and just to show its cussedness, it waited until we had our 
 dinner cooked, the last morsel we had, and then it fell in a 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 
 
 fit, and expired on our dining table. " I made some re 
 mark not complimentary to the mule as a member of so 
 ciety and we went to the corpse and pulled it around to see 
 if we couldn t save a mouthful or two that could be eaten. 
 "We could not, as everything was crushed into the ground. 
 I suggested that we cut a steak out of the mule, and broil 
 it, but Jim said he was not going to be a cannibal, if he 
 knew his own heart. While we were looking at the re 
 mains of our meal, my horse, the rebel horse that I had 
 rode so many months, and loved so, which was hitched 
 near, lay down, began to groan and kick, and in two 
 minutes he was dead. Then Jim s horse went through the 
 same performance and died, and by that time there was p 
 commotion all around camp, horses and mules dying sud* 
 denly, until within half an hour there were only a dozen 
 animals alive, and forty cavalrymen, at least, were horse, 
 less. The camp looked like a battle field. Nobody knew 
 what was the matter of the animals, until an old negro, 
 who lived near, came out and said, " You uns ought to 
 know better than to let you horses eat dat sneeze weed. 
 Dat is poison. Kills animals just like rat poison. " And 
 then he showed us a weed, with a square stem, that grew 
 there, and which was called sneeze weed. He said native 
 animals would not touch it, but strange animals eat it be 
 cause it was nice and green. Well, we were in a fix. The 
 men were called together, and the major told them there 
 was nothing to do but to take their saddles and bridles on 
 their backs and walk to Montgomery, unless they could 
 steal a horse. He advised us to scatter into parties of two 
 or three, enough to protect ourselves from possible attack, 
 go on cross roads, and to plantations, forage for something 
 
254 HOW PRIVATE GEOKGE W. PECK 
 
 to eat, and take the first horse or mule we could find, and 
 report to Montgomery as soon as possible. Jim and I, of 
 course, decided to stand by each other, and after the men 
 who had not lost their horses, had rode away, the forty 
 dismounted men shouldered their saddles, and started in 
 iifferent directions, seeking some other men s horses. I 
 never had realized that a cavalry saddle was so heavy, be 
 fore. Mine seemed to weigh a ton. We struck a cross 
 road, and followed it for two or three miles, when I called 
 a council of war, with Jim. I told him that it was all 
 foolishness to lug those heavy saddles all over the Southern 
 Confederacy. If we succeeded in stealing horses, we could 
 probably steal saddles, also, or if not we could get a sheep 
 skin. I told Jim I would receipt to him for his saddle, 
 and then I would leave them in a fence corner, and if we 
 ever got back to the regiment I would report the saddle 
 lost in action. 
 
 Jim said I had a great head, and he consented, and we 
 left our saddles and moved on. Jim said that now we had 
 only a bridle and a pair of spurs, we were more like regu 
 larly ordained horse-thieves. He said the most successful 
 horse-thief he ever knew in Wisconsin never had anything 
 but a halter as his stock in trade. He would go out with 
 a halter, with a rope on the end, pick up a horse, put the 
 rope in the horse s mouth, and ride away, and nobody 
 could catch him. I asked Jim if he didn t feel humiliated, 
 a loyal soldier, to class himself with horse-thieves. He said 
 when he enlisted he made up his mind to do nothing but 
 shoot rebels through the heart or the left lungl It was 
 his idea to be a sharpshooter, and aim at the button on the 
 !eft breast of the enemy, but when he found that lots of 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 255 
 
 the rebels didn t have any buttons on their coats and that 
 he might shoot all day at a single rebel and not hit him, 
 and that shooting into them in flocks didn t seem to 
 diminish the enemy the least bit, he had made up his 
 mind to turn his hand to anything; and if the rebellion 
 conld be put down easier by his stealing hprses at thirteen 
 dollars a month, he would do it if ordered. He said we 
 were only putting in time, promenading around, and we 
 should get our salary all the same. And so we wandered 
 on, talking the thing over. When we came to a plantation 
 we would walk all around it, and examine the woods and 
 swamps adjacent, because the people of the South had 
 learned that a horse or a mule was not safe anywhere out 
 of the most impenetrable swamp. It was dark when Jim 
 and I decided to camp for the night, and we went into a 
 deserted cotton gin and prepared for a sleep. It was al 
 most dark, and Jim said he had just seen a chicken, near a 
 cabin, fly up in a peach tree to roost, and he was going to 
 have the chicken as soon as it was dark. I laid down on 
 some refuse cotton, and Jim went out after the chicken. I 
 had fallen asleep when Jim returned, and he had the 
 chicken, and a skillet, and a couple of canteens of water. 
 I crawled out of my nest and built a fire, while Jim dressed 
 the chicken, and got the water to boiling, and the chicken 
 was put in. For three hours we boiled the chicken, but 
 each hour made it tougher. I told Jim he might be a suc 
 cess as a horse-thief, but when it come to stealing tender 
 poultry he was a lamentable failure, but he said it was the 
 only hen on the place, and if I didn t want to ea*t it I 
 could retire to my couch and he would set up with the 
 hen. I was so hungry, and the smell of the boiling hen 
 
256 HOW PKIVATE GEOEGE W. PECK 
 
 was so savory, that I remained awake, and at about midnight 
 Jim announced that he had succeeded in prying off a 
 piece of the breast, so we speared the hen out of the 
 water, laid it on the frame of a grindstone in the gin- 
 house, and sat down to the festive board. "Will you 
 have the light or the dark meat," asked Jim, with a 
 politeness that would have done credit to a dancing- 
 master. I told him I preferred .the dark meat, so he took 
 / .old of one leg and I the other, and we pulled the hen 
 apart. The hen seemed to be copper-riveted, for when I 
 got a chunk of it down, and it chinked up a vacant place 
 in the stomach, it did seem as though there was nothing 
 like hen to save life. We eat sparingly that night, be 
 cause we were weak, and the hen was strong, and we laid 
 down and slept peacefully, and awoke in the morning 
 hungry. When the hen became cold, in the morning it 
 was tough. " Will you have some of the cold chicken," 
 said Jim, and I told him I would try a little. It was 
 better than India rubber, and we made a breakfast and 
 started on. It was Sunday. As we came out to the main 
 road, we saw people dressed up, that is, with clean shirts. 
 As ten o clock approached we could see colored people and 
 white, wending their way to a little church in the pine 
 woods. We kept out of sight, and waited, several parties 
 passed us on horseback, some in carriages, and many on 
 foot. Presently three soldiers of our scattered party came 
 along carrying saddles, and we called them into the woods, 
 where we were. I unfolded to them my scheme, which 
 was to surround that church, hold the worshippers as pris 
 oners inside, while we stole the horses that would be hitched 
 to the fence. Jim kicked on it. He said he had rath 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLIOK. 257 
 
 walk than to interfere with people who were enjoying their 
 religion. He said he was never very pious himself, but his 
 parents were, and he should always hate himself if he 
 helped to raid that church. The other fellows were for 
 going for the horses. Pretty soon four more of our boys 
 came along, and we called them in. They had got on to 
 the church services, and had their eyes on the horses. 
 That made nine of us, and as we were armed, we believed 
 we could capture those old men and women and negroes, 
 and get the horses. 
 
 Being a brevet officer I was placed in command of the 
 party, and a plan was agreed upon. We were to scatter 
 and surround the church, and ask the people outside to 
 step inside, and then lock the door, and place a guard on 
 three sides of the little old church where there were win 
 dows, but not to fire a gun unless attacked, and not to 
 speak disrespectfully to any person. If there was any 
 argument with anybody, I was to do the talking. We de 
 cided to take about fifteen hoises, if there were that num 
 ber there, because we would be sure to find some of our 
 scattered boys dismounted before we got far toward Mont 
 gomery, and it was a good idea to take horses when we had 
 a chance. Well, it was a job I did not like, but what was 
 a fellow to do. We were sixty miles from headquarters, on 
 foot and out of meat. I had never been in a church row 
 before. It seemed as though religious worshippers ought 
 to be exempt from war, with its wide desolation. But 
 business was business. We surrounded the church, walk 
 ing up 9uietly from different directions, and as we closed 
 tip on the sacred edifice half a dozen men, white and color 
 ed, were standing in front, and two men were talking ovei 
 
258 HOW PEIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 a horse trade. The minister was expounding the gospel, 
 talking loud, and all else was still. We invited the out 
 siders to go in, which they did with some reluctance, the 
 door was fastened on the outside, guards were placed, and 
 the preaching stopped. The minister had been informed 
 that the yankees had captured the place. There were only 
 two sides of the church with windows, so two guards were 
 sufficient, and the rest of us went to work skinning the 
 harnesses off the horses. A window was raised and an old 
 man stuck his head out and said, as one of the boys was 
 mounting an old mare belonging to him, "I forbid you 
 touching that mare." A carbine was pointed at the win 
 dow, and the old man drew in his head, and the window 
 was slammed down. We had got sixteen pretty good 
 horses, when a window on the other side opened, and the 
 minister s head was put out, and he said, "In the name of 
 the church I command you to desist." He looked so fierce 
 that Jim, who was on guard on that side, and who had 
 objected to the scheme on account of its being a church, 
 cocked his carbine and pointed it at the minister and said, 
 "gol darn you, dry up!" He dried up, the window closed 
 and except for the heads at the windows, and faces looking 
 very mad, all was quiet, When we had got the horses 
 strung out, and the men were mounted, I looked in a car 
 riage, accidentally, and saw a basket, covered over with a 
 paper. The paper was a religious one, published at Savan 
 nah, and being a newspaper man, I looked at the leading 
 editorial, which was headed, "The Lord will provide." I 
 never took much stock in regular stereotyped editorials, 
 but when I turned my eye from the editorial to the basket, 
 I realized that an editorial in a religious newspaper, was 
 
PUT DOWN" THE REBELLION. 259 
 
 liable to contain much truth, for the basket was filled with 
 as fine a lunch as a man ever saw. It seemed that the 
 people t ame quite a long distance to church, and brought 
 their dinner, remaining to the afternoon services. 0, but 
 I was hungry. I looked in several other carriages, and 
 found baskets in each. Every man in my party was as 
 hungry as a she wolf, and I knew they would not leave a 
 mouthful if they once got to going on the lunches, and as 
 it wasn t the policy of my government to take the bread 
 from the mouths of Sunday-school children, I decided to 
 divide the lunches. So I appointed Jim and an Irishman 
 to help me, and we opened all the baskets and took half. 
 Jim came to one basket with two loaves of bread and two 
 bottles of wine, and he stopped. 
 
 "He said, "Pard, that lay-out in the big basket, with 
 the silver pitcher, is for the communion. I m a bold buc 
 caneer of the Spanish main, but Fll be cussed if I touch 
 that." 
 
 The Irishman said no power on earth could get him to 
 touch it, and he crossed himself reverently, and we left the 
 communion lay-out, and passed the half we had taken 
 from the baskets around among the boys, and they eat as 
 though a special providence had provided them with appe 
 tites and means of satisfying them. After enjoying the 
 meal the boys said we ought to return thanks for the good 
 things the pious people had provided for us, so I went to 
 the door of the church, opened it, and faced the congrega 
 tion. There were old and young, and some of them looked 
 mad, and I didn t blame them. In a few well chosen re 
 marks I addressed the minister, telling him I regretted the 
 circumstances, but it was necessary to do what we had 
 
 19 
 
#60 HCTW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 done. We had tried to do it as pleasantly as possible^ but 
 no doubt it seemed hard to them. I said we had got to go 
 to Montgomery, and that if any of them who had lost their 
 horses, would come there within a few days, I had no doubt 
 the proper authorities would return them their horses, but 
 that they must stand the loss of a half of their lunch, as we 
 had divided it up as square as we knew how. One young 
 Confederate soldier, with an empty sleeve, who had come 
 to church with his mother, and who could, no doubt, real 
 ize the situation better than the rest, said, " That is all 
 right, Mr. Yankee. I would do the same thing, under the 
 circumstances, if I was in your country, horseless and hun 
 gry/ There were some murmurs of dissatisfaction, some 
 smiled at the situation, and we mounted and rode away. 
 Before we were out of sight the whole congregation was 
 out of the church, under the pine trees, taking an account 
 of stock, or lost stock, and no doubt saying hard tilings of 
 the Yankees. We traveled all day and nearly all night, 
 picked up some of our dismounted men, and arrived in 
 Montgomery the next day before noon. In a few days my 
 one-armed confederate soldier, who was home from the 
 army in Virginia, having been discharged for disability, 
 came to Montgomery with the people who had lost their 
 horses at the church, and I had the satisfaction of seeing 
 many of them either receive their animals back, or 
 vouchers from the quartermaster, by which they got pay 
 from the government for the animals. And I entertained 
 the one-armed confederate for two days, and we became 
 great friends. Two years ago I met him in Georgia, grown 
 gray, and found him connected with a Georgia railroad, and 
 we had a great laugh over my capture of the congregation. 
 
PUT DOWK THE KEBELLlOtf. 
 
 CHAPTER XXII. 
 
 THE SPOTTED HORSE His SHAMEFUL BEHAVIOUR AT A FUNERAL 
 I WAS TEMPTED TO HAVE MY HORSE SHOT BUT I TRADED 
 HIM TO THE CHAPLAIN. 
 
 It seemed to me that my luck was the worst of any 
 man s in the army, and I was constantly getting into situ 
 ations that caused my conduct to be talked about. When 
 we raided the church, mentioned last week, for horses, I 
 saw a nice white horse with red spots on him, with a sad 
 dle, and being the commander of the squad of horse-thieves, 
 it was no more than right for me to take my choice first, 
 so I chose the spotted horse, and thought I had the show 
 iest horse in the army. The animal was a sort of Arabian, 
 and before I had rode him a mile I was in love with him. 
 When I got to Montgomery a man told me that horse used 
 to belong to a circus that closed up there the first year of 
 the war, and was sold to a planter. He said the horse was 
 considered one of the finest ever seen in the South. I felt 
 much elated over my capture, and refused several offers to 
 trade. I thought no horse was too good for me, and for 
 two or three days I did nothing but feed and groom my 
 spotted horse, until his coat shone like satin, and he felt so 
 kitteny that I was almost afraid to get on his back. One 
 morning an order was issued for the regiment to turn out 
 in a body to attend the funeral of a major of one of the 
 regiments, who had died, and I was sent for to carry the 
 brigade colors, a position I had been relieved from after 
 we arrived at Montgomery. The boys all dressed up in 
 
262 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 their best, and I looked about as slick as any of them, and 
 with my spotted horse, I felt as though I would attract 
 about as much attention as any of the officers in the pro 
 cession. At the proper time I mounted my horse and rode 
 over to brigade headquarters, not without some difficulty, 
 for my horse saw the crowd on the streets, and evidently 
 thought it was circus day, for he pranced and snorted, and 
 walked with one fore-foot at a time, pawing as you have 
 seen a horse in a circus, trained to walk that way. As I 
 rode up to brigade headquarters and stopped, I must have 
 touched my horse with my foot somewhere, for he got 
 down on his knees, and as I got off, the horse laid down 
 right in front of the colonel s tent, just as he would in a 
 circus. Even then I did not realize that the confounded 
 brute was a circus trick-horse. He had been taught to lay 
 down, evidently, at a certain signal. And he laid there, 
 looking up at me with his cunning eyes, waiting for me to 
 give the signal for him to get up, but I "did not know the 
 combination," and he wouldn t get up for kicking, so I 
 stood there like a fool waiting to see what he would do 
 next. The colonel commanding the brigade, the nice old 
 man who had helped me out of my difficulty with my other 
 horse, on the march when he got on a tantrum, come out 
 of his tent and said he guessed my horse was sick, and he 
 t-c-d an orderly to go to the cook house and get a little red 
 pepper and let the horse take a snuff of it. In the mean 
 time my horse got up on his fore feet and sat on his 
 haunches, like a dog, just as circus horses always do, 
 reached up his neck and took a nice white silk handker 
 chief out of the breast of the colonel s coat, and held it in 
 his mouth. It was a circus trick, and I knew it, but the 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 263 
 
 colonel said, " Poor horse, he is sick/ and as the orderly 
 come with the red pepper the colonel held it to the 
 horse s nose. The horse got up, and I mounted, and it 
 must have been about that time that the red pepper began 
 its work, for my horse stood on his fore feet and kicked 
 up, then got on his hind feet and reared up, and snorted, 
 and come down on the colonel s tent, and crushed it to the 
 ground, and broke the colonel s camp cot, got tangled in 
 tha guy ropes, and tore everything loose and jumped out 
 in the street, and began to paw and snort. I suppose there 
 was a thousand people around by that time, soldiers and 
 citizens, and I sat there on that horse and wished I was 
 dead, and I guess the colonel did so too. 
 
 Finally it was time to move, and the colonel sent 
 out the brigade colors to me, and the staff started up street 
 towards the funeral. My horse started with them, and 
 seemed proud of the flag, and I guess he would have gone 
 along all right, only a band down the street began to play 
 a waltz. Do you know, that spotted horse began to waltz 
 around just as though he was in a circus > and I couldn t 
 keep him straight to save me. The colonel seemed morti 
 fied, as we were approaching the place where the services 
 were to be held, and it was necessary to appear solemn. 
 Finally we began to get out of hearing of the band, and 
 my horse stopped waltzing, but he kept up a-dancing, and 
 snorting from the red pepper, until I could have killed 
 him. When the colonel and his staff, including myself 
 and the circus-horse, arrived at the place where the funeral 
 was, another band was playing a very solemn sort of a 
 funeral tune, and for a wonder my horse did not act up at 
 all. He seemed to stand and think, as though trying to 
 
264 HOW PKIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 make out what kind of music it was. He had evidently 
 never heard such music in the circus and did not know 
 what to do. When the body was brought out of the house, 
 and the procession started down the street for the grave, a 
 drum major, with a staff in his hand, came along by me, 
 and I have always thought my horse took the drum major 
 for the ring master of a circus, for he reared up and walked 
 on his hind feet, and pawed the air, and made a spectacle 
 of me that made me so ashamed that I wanted to be killed. 
 I had the brigade colors in one hand, and had only one 
 hand and two feet to cling on the horse by, and I must have 
 looked like a cat climbing the roof of a whitewashed barn. 
 The drum major got scared at my horse walking towards 
 him in that way, and he lost his bear-skin cap off and 
 fell over it, and rolled in the sand, and the horse, thinking 
 that was a part of the circus turned and kicked at the 
 drum major with both his hind feet, until the poor assist 
 ant musician got up and climbed over a fence. The horse 
 got quiet then, only he began to nibble his fore leg, as 
 though trying to untie a handkerchief that the clown had 
 tied on, as they do in the circus. The colonel rode up to 
 me, and with a good deal of indignation, asked me what I 
 meant by causing ourselves to become a spectacle for gods 
 and men on so solemn an occasion. He said he was tempted 
 to have my horse shot, and me placed in the guard-house. 
 I told him I hoped to die if I could help it. I said the 
 horse seemed to be possessed to do some circus business 
 wherever he went. I confided to the colonel that the horse 
 had been a circus-horse before the war, and the music and 
 tinsel, and crowd that he saw, had turned his head and 
 made him think that he was again with his beloved circus, 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 265 
 
 where he had spent the best years of his life. The colonel 
 said I ought to have known better than to bring a circus 
 horse to a funeral. Well, when the drum major got out of 
 sight the horse acted better, and we went along all right, 
 the solemn music of the march to the grave seeming to 
 take the circus out of him. He didn t do anything out of 
 the way on the march, except to put out his fore-feet stiff, 
 and keep time to the music, like a trained circus horse, 
 which attracted a good deal of attention among the citizens 
 on the street, who seemed to know the horse. Just as we 
 got out at the edge of town he did make one raw break. 
 There was a colored drayman, with his dray backed up to 
 wards the procession, and when my circus horse saw the 
 dray, before I could prevent him, he whirled around and 
 put his fore feet upon the hind end of the dray, put one 
 foot on the top of a stake on the dray, and stood there for 
 a minute, like a horse statute, until I jerked him down off 
 of there. 0, 1 was so mortified that my teeth fairly ached, 
 and the perspiration stood out on me in great beads. A 
 staff officer of the general commanding, came along to the 
 colonel, presented the compliments of the general, and 
 asked if he could not do something to prevent that red 
 headed clown on the spotted horse from doing any more 
 circus acts until after the last sad rites had been performed. 
 The colonel said it should be stopped, and told the staff 
 officer to present his compliments to the general and say 
 that he was humiliated beyond endurance by the perform 
 ance of the horse, but that the young man riding the horse 
 was not to blame, as he had done all in his power to keep 
 the circus tendencies of the horse down, but he added that 
 he would have the horse shot if there was any. more of it. 
 
266 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 The horse kept quiet until we had got to the cemetery, 
 and returned to town. As we got into a wide street there 
 tyas an old circus ring, partly grown up with weeds, near 
 Vhere the division quartermaster had a large tent inside a 
 picket fence, filled with quartermaster stores. If I had 
 known anything, I would have kept the horse s head 
 turned away from the circus ring, and the tent, but I 
 thought there would be no more trouble. Just as we got 
 opposite the ring, the band, which had heretofore played 
 dead marches, struck up a regular ripety-rap-rap-boom- 
 boom circus tune, and I felt the horse tremble all over. 
 Before I could think twice, the confounded horse had tried 
 to jump through the bass drum, had knocked the drum 
 mer down, and jumped into the circus ring. I sawed on 
 the bit and tried to stop him, and dug into his ribs with 
 the spurs, but he galloped around the circus ring three or 
 four times, and stopped still, as though expecting a clowr> 
 would come up and say, ( What will the little lady have 
 now?" 0, if I could have had one more hand to use, I 
 would have drawn my revolver and put a bullet through 
 the brain of the wretched horse, who was making me the 
 laughing stock of the whole army, and the citizens. 
 
 The procession moved on towards camp, the colonel 
 seeming relieved to have me out of sight, with my spotted 
 horse, and a crowd of citizens, boys and niggers collected 
 around the ring, yelling and laughing. I made one des 
 perate effort and reined the horse out of the ring, and just 
 then he caught sight of the quartermaster s tent across 
 the road, and evidently thinking it was the dressing-room 
 of the circus, he started for it on a run, jumped the picket 
 fence as though it was a circus hurdle, and rushed in the 
 
PUT DOWN" THE REBELLION". 267 
 
 loor of the tent where a dozen clerks were weighing out 
 commissary stores, stopped suddenly, and I went over his 
 head into a barrel of ground coffee. The clerks picked 
 me out of the coffee, and laid me on a pile of corn sacks, 
 and then the horse began to lay back his ears and chase the 
 clerks out of the tent, and it was awful the way the ani 
 mal acted. After I had recovered from the effects of my 
 fall into the coffee barrel, I got up and took the horse by 
 the bridle, and led him out of the gate, and up the street 
 to headquarters, with the brigade flag in my hand. I 
 finally got to headquarters and left the flag, and the colonel 
 told me he never wanted me around brigade headquarters 
 again. He said I was a regular Jonah, that brought bad 
 luck. I apologized the best I could, told him I would 
 never bother him again, and led my horse back to my regi 
 ment. The chaplain of my regiment, who had not been 
 to the funeral with us, and knew nothing about the circus, 
 met me, and, as usual, bantered me to trade horses. I felt 
 as though if I could saw that horse off on to the chaplain, 
 and fix him so he could engage in the circus business, life 
 would yet have some charms for me, so after some banter 
 ing we got down to business. The chaplain asked me if I 
 thought it would cause any remark if he should ride a 
 spotted horse, and I told him I did not know why it should, 
 if the chaplain behaved himself. He said he didn t know 
 but the boys might think that a, spotted horse was too gay 
 for a chaplain. I told him I didn t know why a spotted 
 horse couldn t be just as solemn as any horse. He asked 
 me if the horse had any tricks, and if he was sound. I 
 told him I had not had him long, but it seemed to me if 
 the horse had any tricks I should "nave found it out by this 
 
268 HOW PRIVATE GEOKGE W. PECK 
 
 time, and I knew he was sound, because I jumped a fence 
 with him not an hour ago, and he took the fence just as 
 though he had jumped fences all his life. I asked ten dollars 
 to boot, and the chaplain said if I would warrant the horse 
 not to have any tricks he would take him. I told him I 
 couldn t warrant the horse not to have any tricks, but that 
 the colonel commanding the brigade wanted my horse, and 
 he certainly would not want a horse that had tricks. What 
 the colonel wanted was a horse noted for its strict attention 
 to business. Then the chaplain said he would trade, and 
 we changed saddles, and the chaplain led the spotted horse 
 away, and I was revenged for many things the chaplain had 
 done me. When the chaplain led the spotted horse to his 
 tent, and all the boys in the regiment saw that I had traded 
 the brute off, and they thought what a pic-nic they would 
 have the first time the chaplain rode the horse down town, 
 there was a laugh all through the regiment, but nobody 
 squealed, or told the chaplain what a prize package he had 
 secured. I cannot account for it, how I could have coolly 
 traded that dastardly horse off on to the chaplain, but I was 
 young then. Now, after arriving at a ripe old age, I would 
 not play such a trick on a chaplain. The next day there was 
 to be a review, and when the regiment was notified, I got 
 sick and could not go. I felt as though I did not want to 
 be a witness of the chaplain s attempt to exhibit a solemn 
 demeanor, on that circus horse. I thought I should prob 
 ably die right in my tracks if the horse acted with him as 
 he did with me, so I remained in my tent with a wet towel 
 on my head, and saw the regiment ride out to review, the 
 chaplain on the spotted horse beside the colonel, not dream 
 ing that it was going to be the most eventful day of his life. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 269 
 
 CHAPTER XXIII. 
 
 TELLS How THE CHAPLAIN WAS PARALYZED BY THE SPOTTED 
 CIRCUS-HORSE I AM COURT MARTIALED I PLEAD MY OWN 
 CASE, AND AM ACQUITTED. 
 
 In the last chapter I told of trading my circus-horse to 
 the chaplain, and how the chaplain had rode away with 
 the regiment for review, and I remained in camp, pretend 
 ing to be sick. The result of that scheme on my part was 
 not all my fancy painted it. I stood in front of my tent 
 with a wet towel around my head, and saw the regiment 
 return from review, the chaplain s spotted circus horse 
 with no rider, being led by a colored man, the horse look 
 ing as innocent as any horse I eve* saw. Where was the 
 chaplain? Had he been killed? I noticed half the men 
 were laughing and it seemed to me they wouldn t laugh if 
 the good chaplain was dead. I also noticed that the col 
 onel and his staff wore faces clouded with anger, and that 
 they seemed as though they would like to kill somebody. 
 Before the regiment had got fairly dismounted, a sergeant 
 and three men marched to my tent, and I was arrested, and 
 was informed that I would be tried at once, by court-mar 
 tial, for conduct prejudicial to good order and military dis 
 cipline. I knew the sergeant, and tried to joke with him, 
 telling him to " go on with his old ark, as there wasn t go 
 ing to be much of a shower," but he wouldn t have any 
 funny business, and kindly informed me that I had proba 
 bly got to the end of my rope, and that I would no doubt 
 spend the remainder of my term of enlistment in the mill* 
 
270 HOW PRITATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 tary prison. I asked him what the row was about, and he 
 said I would find out soon enough. One soldier got on 
 each side of me, and one behind with sabers drawn, to 
 stick me with if I attempted to get away, and we started 
 for the coloneFs tent. On the way there, the chaplain 
 came towards us, covered with red clay, and begged the 
 sergeant to allow him to kill me right there. He was the 
 maddest truly good man I ever saw. He fairly foamed at 
 the mouth, and said, " 0, sergeant, turn him loose, and 
 let me chew him up." I said to the sergeant: 
 
 " Now, look-a-here, don t you let that savage get at 
 me, or he will get hurt. I don t want to have any trouble 
 with the church, but if any regularly ordained ministerial 
 cannibal of a sky pilot attempts to chew me, he will find a 
 good deal more gristle than tender loin, and I will italicise 
 his nose so he will look so crossed-eyed that he can t draw 
 his pay." 
 
 My thus showing that I was not afraid of a non-com 
 batant, seemed to have the desired effect, for he spit on 
 his hands, jumped up and cracked his heels together, said 
 he would wipe the Southern Confederacy with my remains, 
 and he went to his tent to change his clothes, and get 
 ready for the court-martial. The guard took me to the 
 colonel s tent, and I walked right in where the colonel and 
 major and several others were, and I said " Hello," and 
 smiled, and extended my hand to the colonel. None of 
 them helloed, and none of them returned my smile, and 
 the colonel did not shake hands with me. He said, how 
 ever, that I had brought disgrace on the regiment, and 
 broken the heart of a noble man, the chaplain. I told 
 him I didn t think the chaplain s heart was very badly 
 
PUT DOW 15 THE REBELLION. 271 
 
 broke, as he had just offered to whip me in several lan 
 guages, and threatened to eat me. The colonel had me sit 
 down on a trunk and keep still, while the court-martial 
 convened. It was not many minutes before the officers 
 had arrived, and organized, the adjutant read the charges 
 and specifications against me. Not to go into the military 
 form of charges and specifications, the substance of them 
 was that I had with malice aforethought, procured a trick- 
 horse from a circus, with the intention of inducing the 
 chaplain to trade for it, with the purpose of causing 
 the aforesaid chaplain to become a spectacle for laughter. 
 When the charges were read I was asked what I had to 
 say, and I told the Judge Advocate it was a condemned 
 lie. That made him mad, and he was going to commence 
 whipping me where the chaplain left off, when the colonel 
 smoothed matters over by asking me if I didn t mean to 
 plead fe not guilty/ I said, " Certainly, not guilty. It is 
 false. I did not secure the horse for the purpose of saw 
 ing it off on the chaplain. I jayhawked it, and when I 
 found it was not the kind of a horse for a modest fellow 
 like me, who didn t want to make any display, I thought 
 I would trade it to some officer with gall, and the chaplain 
 was the first man who struck me for a trade, and he got it, 
 and from his remarks to me, and from these court-martial 
 proceedings, I was satisfied the chaplain did not like the 
 horse." The officers laughed then, and I suppose they were 
 thinking of something that happened to the chaplain on 
 review. The colonel asked me if I wanted anybody to de 
 fend me, and I told him I had a printing office once next 
 door to a lawyer s office, and I knew a little about law, and 
 would defend myself. The chaplain came soon, and began 
 
272 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 to tell his story, but I insisted that he be sworn, and then 
 he proceeded to tell his tale. He said that he was a God 
 fearing man, and meant to do right, and was willing to 
 take his chances in the lottery of war, but when a man got 
 him to ride a circus trick-horse, and bring upon his sacred 
 calling the ribald laughter of the wicked, he felt that civ 
 ilization was a failure. He said he traded for the spotted 
 horse in good faith, and that he was particular to ask me 
 if the horse had any tricks, and I said he had none, and 
 he traded on that understanding, that he rode the afore 
 said horse to the review, and as soon as the aforesaid horse 
 heard the band play, he waltzed out into the middle of the 
 street, whirled around more than fifty times, waltzed into 
 an infantry regiment, breaking the ranks of the soldiers 
 just as the reviewing officer came along, causing the re 
 viewing officer to say, "get out of the ranks, you d d 
 fool, and take that horse back to the circus," thus causing 
 him, the chaplain, to be scandalized. He said he would 
 have stood that, but the horse carried him to a battery of 
 artillery which was in position, and began to jump over the 
 guns, and that a gunner took a swab with which he had 
 been cleaning a gun, and punched him, the chaplain, in 
 the face, covering his face with burnt powder which 
 smelled badly. 
 
 Then the horse carried him out on the field in front 
 of the reviewing officers, got up on its hind feet and 
 walked for half a block, making the chaplain appear as 
 though climbing up the horse s neck, and when some of 
 the general s staff came out to arrest him, the horse whirled 
 around and kicked, in every direction at once, and broke 
 the saber of one of the staff-officers. That the horse seemed 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION". 273 
 
 to be possessed of the devil. That he finally got the horn 
 to go back to the regiment where he belonged, but on the 
 way he had to pass brigade headquarters, when the horse 
 stopped in front of the commanding officer and sat down 
 like a dog, on his hind parts, and tried to shake hands 
 with the colonel commanding, who was offended, and told 
 the chaplain he was an ass, and to go away with his 
 museum, or he would have the chaplain put in the guard 
 house. That a colored man near the review ground had a 
 ginger bread stand, with a sheet tacked up to keep the sun 
 off, and the spotted horse attempted to jump through the 
 sheet, evidently thinking it was a paper hoop in a cir 
 cus. And in conclusion, after making the chaplain so 
 mortified and ashamed that he wished he might die, the 
 horse laid down in the road and rolled over the aforesaid 
 chaplain, leaving him in the road covered with dirt, while 
 the horse ran across the street and walked up a pair of 
 stairs, outside a store, went into the rooms occupied by some 
 milliners and scared the women so they put their heads 
 out of the windows and yelled fire, and said a regiment of 
 Yankee cavalry had raided their homes. That the review 
 was made a farce, the chaplain a laughing stock, and that 
 it took ten men to get the horse down stairs, and half the 
 regiment to console the milliners, and convince them that no 
 harm was intended. He said he demanded that I be sen 
 tenced to be shot. 
 
 The colonel asked me if I had anything to say, and 1 
 asked permission to cross-examine the witness. Permis 
 sion being granted, I asked the chaplain what his business 
 was. He said he was a minister. I asked him if he didn t 
 consider trading horses one of the noblest professions ex- 
 
274 : .:c~7 PRIVATE GEORGE W. PEOK 
 
 tant. He said he didn t know about that. Then I asked 
 him ii he didn t take advantage of me when I came to tha 
 regime at, as a raw recruit, and trade me a kicking mule., 
 that made my life a burden. He said he remembered that 
 he traded me a mule. I asked him if he didn t know the 
 mule was balky, vicious, and spavined, that it would kick 
 its bes* friend, bite anybody, that it was so ugly that he 
 had to put the saddle on with a long pole, that he warranted 
 tha mule sound when he knew it had all the diseases that 
 were going. 
 
 He said he objected to being asked such questions., but 
 the judge-advocate said I had a right to bring out any 
 previous transactions in the horse-trade line, as it would. 
 have some effect in this case. Then I asked him if he didn t 
 know the horse he beat me out of was sound, a splendid 
 rider, and that the mule was the worst one in the army.; 
 He admitted that he knew the animal was not a desirable 
 animal, but he thought a recruit could get along with a* 
 kicking mule better than a chaplain, I had saved my 
 best shot for the last, and I said, " Knowing the mule was 
 unsound, a vicious animal, and that my horse was sound 
 and desirable, and worth more than a dozen such mules> 
 did you consider that you was pursuing your calling as 3 
 minister when you gained my confidence, and not only 
 sawed the mule off on to me, bereaved me of a fine 
 horse, but took twenty dollars of my hard-earned bounty 
 money as boot in the trade? In doing that to an inno 
 cenii and fresh recruit who had confidence in you, did 
 you not pavo the way for me to get even with you on & 
 horse urade, and haven t I got even, and do you blame mo 
 for doing it?" The chaplain was perspiring while 1 was 
 
PUT DOWX THE REBELLION. 275 
 
 asking the questions, and all the officers were looking at 
 him as though he had caught a tartar, but he blushed, 
 choked, and finally answered that perhaps he did wrong in 
 trading me that mule, and he asked to be forgiven. 
 
 Then I turned to the officers and said, " Gentlemen, I 
 admit that I traded the spotted circus-horse to the chap 
 lain. I did it on purpose to show him that there is a God 
 in Israel. When I came to the regiment, right fresh from 
 the people, I needed salting. The boys all salted me when 
 ever they got a chance, and I took it like a little man. In 
 turning to the chaplain for comfort, I did not expect that 
 he would salt me worse than all of the boys combined, but 
 when I found that he had gone through me, and taken ad 
 vantage of my guileless innocence, and laughed at my woe 
 when I found the confounded mule was not all his fancy 
 had painted it, and that it laid awake nights to devise ways 
 to kick my head off, I took a bloodred oath that before the 
 cruel war was over I would salt that chaplain on a horse 
 trade, until he would own up the corn. I leave it to you, 
 gentlemen, if I have done it or not. When that spotted 
 horse fell to me, by the fortunes of war, I was not long in 
 learning that it was the relic of a circus. I rode the horse 
 one day last week at a funeral, and it acted in such a man 
 ner as to almost wake up the late lamented. I was made 
 the laughing stock of the brigade, and of the town. _ It 
 was government property, and I could not kill the horse, 
 and I thought the time had arrived for me to get even with 
 my old friend. He was mashed on my spotted horge, and 
 bantered me for a trade. Finally we traded, and I got ten 
 dollars to boot. The result has been all that I could de 
 sire. I have had the satisfaction of demonstrating to this 
 
276 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 truly good man that all is not gold that glitters. I have 
 shown him that however spotted a man may be, if he rides 
 a spotted circus horse, he will get there. I will leave it to 
 the chaplain, now, if I was not justified in trading him 
 that horse, after what he had done to me, and will ask him 
 if he was not served perfectly right, and if in trading me 
 that mule he did not do to others as he would have others 
 do to him, and if so, if he does not think the others did it 
 to him in great shape. I am done. I leave my life in 
 your hands." 
 
 When I quit they were all laughing except the chap 
 lain, and there was a quiet smile around his mouth, as he 
 thought of his experience on the spotted horse. The 
 colonel asked the chaplain, if he had anything to say, and 
 he said he had just been thinking that he could go over to 
 a New Jersey regiment and trade that spotted horse to the 
 chaplain of that regiment, and if he could, he would be 
 willing to drop the case. He said that chaplain played a 
 mean trick on him once, and he wanted to get even. The 
 court martial acquitted me, and while we were all taking 
 a drink with the colonel, the chaplain went out, and pretty 
 soon we saw his servant leading the spotted horse over to 
 wards the camp of the New Jersey regiment, and later the 
 chaplain sauntered off in that direction on foot, as though 
 there was some weighty subject on his mind. The weighty 
 subject was the spotted circus-horse. 
 
 I do not suppose any incident ever caused so much talk 
 as did the chaplain s circus. The boys were talking and 
 laughing about it in every company all that afternoon, and 
 when it was found that I had not been punished, for trad 
 ing the horse to him, the boys were wild. They wanted to 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 277 
 
 show their appreciation of the fun I had given them, so a 
 lot of them got together to give me a sort of reception. 
 They sent for me to come over to Co. D., and when I got 
 over there they grabbed me and carried me off on their 
 shoulders. I felt proud to see them so joyous and friendly, 
 until they put me in a blanket and tossed me up into the 
 trees, and caught me in the blanket as I came down. 
 Of all the sensations I ever experienced, that of being tos 
 sed up in a blanket was the worst. I tried to laugh, at 
 first, but it became serious, as I went into the air twenty 
 feet, let loose of the air and came down, expecting to be 
 crushed maimed, killed. My breath forsook me, I was 
 dizzy, but I struck the blanket easy, and after being 
 sent up a dozen times they let me go, and my reception 
 was over. 
 
278 .HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 CHAPTER XXIV. 
 
 MINGLED REMINISCENCES I RELATE A MISSISSIPPI RIVER STEAM 
 BOAT EXPERIENCE. 
 
 Long before this I should have related a little experi 
 ence I had on my first journey south, when I was a fresh 
 recruit. After leaving Wisconsin, in the winter, a lot of 
 us recruits were corralled at Benton Barracks, St. Louis, 
 and for six weeks we had a picnic. There were about fifty 
 of us, that belonged to the cavalry, our regiments being 
 down the Mississippi river, and the commanding officer of 
 the barracks seemed to be waiting for a chance to send us 
 to our regiments. I have often wondered what he waited 
 six weeks for, when we were not doing any duty in camp, 
 and were making him trouble enough every day and every 
 night to turn his hair gray. He was a Colonel Bonneville, 
 if I remember right, a regular army officer of French ex 
 traction. Anyway, he always swore at us in French. The 
 camp was run in a slack sort of a way, and it was easy for 
 us to get out and go down town, or wander off into the 
 country, and, as we had plenty of money, and were dressed 
 better than soldiers in active service, we were welcome to 
 all the saloons, and painted old St. Louis all the colors of 
 the rainbow, returned to the barracks at unseasonable 
 hours, crawled through the fence and went to our quarters 
 howling, waking up the old general, who invariably or 
 dered the provost-guard to arrest us, which the provost- 
 guard invariably didn t do, for some reason or other. The 
 old colonel was fast aging, in trying to lead a quiet life in 
 
FtTT -DOWN THE REBELLION. 279 
 
 the vicinity of " dose d d cavalry regruits," and he said 
 
 he would order them all shot if they didn t behave. Ben- 
 ton Barracks was the greatest place for the breeding of 
 rats that I ever saw. In every house there were millions 
 of them,, and at night they were out in full force. One 
 night our crowd of recruits, about forty in number, had 
 been down to St. Louis on a painting expedition, and it 
 was midnight when camp was reached . Every recruit had 
 a revolver, and it was decided that if the rats insulted us, 
 as they had often done before, we would shoot them. It 
 was a beautiful moonlight night, as still as death, and we 
 could almost hear the snoring of the excitable colonel in 
 his house across the parade ground. As we came near our 
 barrack, a few thousand rats crossed our path, and I drew 
 my revolver and fired at a large one that seemed unusually 
 impudent, and the rest of the crowd opened fire, and there 
 was a battle in no time. A bugler got out and blowed 
 some call that I did not know, a drum sounded a continu 
 ous roll, men rushed out and formed in line, and before we 
 had fired the six charges from our revolvers, the Invalid 
 Corps came hobbling across the parade ground, the colonel 
 behind them with his shirt on, his pants in his hand, and 
 swearing in French, and ordering the troops to arrest the 
 whole crowd of recruits. We went right in the barrack, 
 and retired, as soon as the troops showed up, and were 
 snoring, with smoking revolvers under our pillows, when 
 the guard entered. 
 
 The colonel came in with the guard, and then put on 
 his pants, after which he woke up some of us, and asked 
 what was the cause of the firing. Every recruit swore 
 that he had not fired a shot, but that he had heard some 
 
280 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 firing over the fence, on the outside, at a road-house and 
 saloon, where bad men from St. Louis congregated and 
 drank to excess. It seemed very hard to thus lie to so 
 estimable a gentleman as the colonel, but as he was only 
 half-dressed, and sleepy, and excited, it didn t seem as 
 though the lies ought to count. But they did. The col 
 onel apologized for waking us up, when we were enjoying 
 our much-needed rest, and he went away with the guard. 
 Then we all got up and danced a can-can, in our army 
 underclothes, passed a series of resolutions endorsing the 
 colonel as one of the ablest officers in the army, recom 
 mended that he be promoted to brigadier-general at the 
 first opportunity, gave three cheers and a tiger for the 
 Union, and went to bed. That is one thing that we 
 recruits always come out strong in, i. e., three cheers for 
 the Union. We had enlisted to save the Union, and as 
 there was no fighting that we could do, during our stay at 
 St. Louis, whenever we got a chance we gave three cheers 
 for the Union. Sometimes it was not appreciated, how 
 ever. I remember one evening our crowd went into a 
 saloon and ordered beer all around, and after we had 
 drank it, I proposed three cheers for the Union, which we 
 gave in a hearty manner, and went out without paying 
 for the beer. You would hardly credit it, but the saloon 
 keeper, an Irishman named Oppenheimer, became offended, 
 and wanted us to pay cash for the beer. The boys wanted 
 me to reason with him, and I began by asking him if he 
 was a loyal man, and he said he was. Then I asked him 
 if he didn t believe in supporting the Union. He said he 
 did, but he couldn t pay the brewer for his beer by giving 
 three cheers for the TJniou. He had to put up cash. J 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 281 
 
 confess that his remarks made quite an impression on me, 
 as I had not thought of it in that light before. I pro 
 posed that we give three cheers for Oppenheimer, which 
 was done, and I thought that would settle it, but he in 
 sisted on having cash. I told the boys, and they said he 
 was a rebel. I told Oppenheimer, and he got out a wooden 
 bung-starter, and said he could clean out the whole party. 
 Finally we compromised, in this way. "We had given two 
 rounds of cheer, one for the Union and one for Oppen 
 heimer, which were a total loss, so it was agreed that if 
 Oppenheimer would give three cheers for the Union and 
 three for us we would pay him for the beer, if he 
 would agree to set em up for us, at his own expense. 
 He agreed, and then we tried to get him to offset the 
 beer he was going to give us, for the beer we had drank, 
 and not pay him for that we had consumed. That, to 
 any business man, we thought, would seem fair, but he 
 wouldn t have it. So, after he had returned our cheers 
 to us, we paid him, and then he treated. I mention thia 
 to tshow the hardships of a soldier s life, and the difficulties 
 of inculcating business methods into the minds of the 
 saloon-keepers. Oppenheimer meant well, but he did not 
 appreciate cheers for the Union. He got so, after that 
 when we came in his saloon, in a gang, he would say, 
 "Poys, of you dondt gif any jeers fun dot Union, I set em 
 oop," and we would swallow our cheers for the Union, and 
 his beer. 
 
 The next day after the battle of the rats, an order was 
 issued for the recruits to board the steamer " City of Mem 
 phis," and go down the river to join our several regiments, 
 in the vicinity of I^ew Orleans, In a few hpurs we 
 
282 HOW PKIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 drawn rations to last a week, and were on board the 
 steamer, and had started down stream. I think every sol 
 dier that is now alive will remember that when he took his 
 first trip on a transport, as a recruit, during the war, he 
 labored under the impression that he owned the boat, or 
 at least a controlling interest in it. That was a very natu 
 ral feeling. The opinions of the steamboat officials, it will 
 be remembered, were different. I had never been on a large 
 steamboat before, and after tying my knapsack and other 
 baggage to a wood-pile on the lower deck, after I had vain 
 ly attempted to induce the proper official to give me checks 
 for my baggage, I began to climb up stairs, and soon found 
 myself on top of the Texas, beside the smoke stack, view 
 ing the ever changing scenery of the grand old Mississippi. 
 I was drinking in the scenery, and the fresh air, and won 
 dering if it could be possible that there could be war, and 
 killing, anywhere in this broad land, when all was so peace 
 ful and beautiful on the river, when I felt something strike 
 me on the pantaloons most powerfully, and I looked around 
 and a gentleman was just removing a large sized boot from 
 my person . I was about to reprove him for kicking me, a 
 total stranger, who had not even presented letters of intro 
 duction to me, when he said, in a voice that was deep down 
 in his chest, " get down below." I did not feel like argu 
 ing with a man of so violent a nature, and I went down 
 the narrow stairs, after he had said he would throw me 
 overboard if I did not hurry. I learned afterwards that 
 he was the mate of the steamboat. I could see that he had 
 mistaken me for a common soldier, which I would not ad 
 mit was the case, but I went down stairs, probably looking 
 hurt. I was hurt. I went into the cabin and sat down or 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLION. 283 
 
 one of the sofas, to think, when a colored person told me 
 to get off the sofa. As he seemed to know what he was 
 talking about I got off. I saw a bar, where officers of the 
 army and passengers were drinking, and I went up and 
 asked for a whisky sour, thinking that would relieve the 
 pain and cause my injured feelings to improve . The bar 
 tender told me to go out on deck and I could get plain 
 whisky through a window where the negro deck hands got 
 their drinks, but I could not drink with gentlemen. That 
 was the first day that I realized that in becoming a soldier 
 I had descended to a level with negro deck hands and 
 roustabouts, and could not be allowed to associate with 
 gentlemen. Soon the gong rung for supper, and I went 
 into the cabin and sat down to the table for a square meal, 
 the other seats being filled with army officers and passes 
 gers. I was going to give my order to a waiter, when he 
 called an officer of the boat, who told me to get up from 
 the table and go below, as the cabin was intended for gen 
 tlemen and not soldiers. My idea was to kick against being 
 turned out, but I thought of the mate s boot> and I went 
 out, went down on the lower deck with the recruits, and 
 eat some bread and meat. I was rapidly becoming crushed. 
 I talked my experience over with the boys, and they all 
 agreed with me that the way we were treated was an out 
 rage on American soldiers, which we would not stand. We 
 began to wonder where we were going to sleep, when I re 
 membered seeing state-rooms on the deck above, with 
 berths, and it seemed to me they must be intended for us, 
 so we agreed to go up and go into the state-rooms from the 
 doors that opened out on deck, believing that those who 
 got in fi/st would be allowed to occupy them. About fifty 
 
284 HOW PEIVATE GEOEGE W. PECK 
 
 of us got into state-rooms, while the officers and passengers 
 were playing poker in the cabin. I was asleep, when I 
 heard a noise out on deck, and raising up in my berth I 
 looked over the transom and saw about twenty of the re 
 cruits being driven along by officers of the boat, kicks and 
 cuffs, and loud talking being the order. " Pll teach you 
 brutes to steal the beds of passengers on this boat. You 
 dirty whelps, to presume to sleep in beds. Get down stairs 
 and sleep on the wood-pile with the niggers," shouted the 
 captain. 
 
 If there was going to be any fuss about it, I didn t want 
 to stay in the state-room. I didn t want to be broke of my 
 rest, of course, but if it was not customary for common 
 soldiers to indulge in such luxuries, I would go out. Just 
 then there was a knock at the door leading into the cabin, 
 and I heard a female voice say, "Powtaw, I am afraid one 
 of those dirty soljaws has got into my state-room," and then 
 I heard the mate s voice say, " Wait till I get at him." Of 
 course, under those circumstances I could not remain. No 
 gentleman would occupy a lady s birth, and cause her to sit 
 up all night. To be sure there were two berths, and I 
 could remain in the upper one, and she could turn in be 
 low, and I would turn my face to the wall and not look, 
 but I doubted if a lady, who was a perfect stranger, and 
 whose opinion of soldiers was so pronounced, could com 
 promise on such a basis, so when the mate knocked at the 
 door I took my pants and shoes and went out the door 
 leading on deck, and went below, without being discovered. 
 I found my companions, who had been routed out of their 
 beds, dressing themselves as best they could by the light 
 from the t urnace, when the stokers would put in wood, and 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 285 
 
 they were about as mad as I was. The treatment we had 
 received was not what we had a right to expect when we 
 enlisted. We decided to set up all night, and growl and 
 discuss the situation. Several of the recruits made re 
 marks that were very scathing, and the officials of the boat 
 were held up to scorn, and charged with inhumanity. We 
 sat there till daylight, and then organized an indignation 
 meeting, and appointed a committee to draft resolutions 
 indicative of the sense of the meeting. I had been light 
 ning on resolutions before I enlisted, having attended sev 
 eral county conventions, and I was appointed to draft the 
 resolutions. As near as I can remember the following 
 were the words: 
 
 " Whereas, The undersigned, members of the army of 
 the union, in the course of our duty as soldiers, have been 
 ordered to proceed to our several regiments down the Mis 
 sissippi river, on board of the City of Memphis/ and, 
 
 " Whereas, We have been treated by the officers of the 
 aforesaid boat more like animals than human beings, in be 
 ing deprived of luxuries to which we have been accustomed, 
 have been driven from the public dining-table, driven from 
 our beds at the dead hour of night, that shoulder-strapped 
 officers might be made comfortable, and kicked down 
 stairs, therefore, be it 
 
 "Resolved, That we demand of the captain of the steamer 
 City of Memphis/ that we be allowed the same privileges 
 on this boat that others enjoy. e We hold these truths to 
 be self-evident/ that one man is just as good as another, 
 no matter what his rank. We demand ^that we be allowed 
 to eat at the table in the cabin, to sleep in the state-rooms, 
 to drink at the bar if we so elect, and to go to any place on 
 
286 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 the boat that other passengers are allowed, and that we be 
 treated like white men, which we have not up to the adop 
 tion of these resolutions. 
 
 "Resolved, That a copy of these resolutions be presented 
 to the captain of the boat, that a copy be sent to the secre 
 tary of war, and that the resolutions be published in the 
 newspapers. " 
 
 When I read the resolutions to the boys they were 
 passed unanimously, after a few amendments had been 
 voted down. One of the boys wanted a resolution passed 
 demanding that the mate be discharged, and one moved 
 the captain be requested to apologize. I argued that if the 
 captain received the resolutions in the proper spirit, and 
 acceded to our demand, that would be an apology in itself, 
 and in that case the mate would probably resign. I was 
 appointed one of a committee of three to wait on the cap 
 tain, and read the resolutions to him, after the boys had 
 all signed them. I had rather some one else had been ap 
 pointed, as I had been kicked once already, but the boys 
 said it needed somebody that was equal to making a little 
 speech, as it would be necessary to say something before 
 reading the resolutions. They also said it needed a man 
 with plenty of gall, one that was not afraid to stand up be 
 fore the world and ask for our rights. I felt flattered at 
 being selected, but I took the precaution to place a gunny- 
 sack, nicely folded up, in the seat of my pants, because 1 
 didn t know what might happen. After breakfast, I took 
 the committee and the resolutions, and went up into the 
 cabin, and told a colored man that he might tell the cap 
 tain that a committee wished an audience with him. He 
 was playing poker in the Indies cabiPj and I have always 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 287 
 
 thought he had an idea there was a committee of passen 
 gers who wanted to present him with a gold headed cane, 
 a thing that was often done on the boats. Any way he 
 came along smiling, and when the nigger pointed me out, 
 and the captain noticed that I had a large paper in my 
 hand, he said, "What is it, gentlemen?" This was the 
 first time I had been alluded to in that manner since I en 
 listed. I asked him to be seated, and he sat down on a 
 lounge, and I proceeded. I forgot to make any speech, but 
 went right at the w her eases at once. I say the captain 
 smiled when he came up. Of course, reading the resolu 
 tions, as I was, I could not see his face change, but after 
 wards one of the committee told me about it. I could not 
 tell that a storm was coming. I noticed that quite a num 
 ber of people had collected around the captain, from curi 
 osity, I supposed. I had just got to the last resolution, 
 where it spoke of sending a copy to the secretary of war, 
 when there was a howl. The captain got up and grabbed 
 me by the throat, while somebody else took me by the hind 
 legs. As we went towards the door, I noticed other men 
 were carrying the rest of the committee. My idea was that 
 they would throw us overboard, and as I could not swim, 
 I closed my eyes and said, "Now I lay me." The stairs 
 leading to the lower deck were covered with brass. I remem 
 ber that distinctly, because I rode down the stairs on the 
 small of my back, and we had a committee meeting at the 
 foot cf the stairs. I brought up on top of the rest of the 
 committee. We sat there a moment, and decided, unani 
 mously, that we had been unceremoniously chucked down 
 stairs, resolutions and all, and we picked ourselves up and 
 limped back to where our companions were, and so re- 
 
288 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 ported. The expedition was a total failure, for in a short 
 time a notice was tacked on the foot of the stairs, stating 
 that all enlisted men were forbidden from occupying any 
 portion of the boat except the lower deck, and if one was 
 found above that deck, he would be turned over to the 
 first army post, a prisoner. So we remained on the lower 
 deck, and took it out abusing the officers, and hoping the 
 boat would blow up. But the scenery was just as nice 
 from the lower deck. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 289 
 
 CHAPTER XXV. 
 
 OUK PARTY OF RECRUITS OWN THE EARTH WE LIVE HIGH, GIVE 
 A BALL, AND GO TO THE GUARD-HOUSE AND ARE ARRESTED 
 
 BY COLORED TROOPS. 
 
 
 
 Let s see, I forget whether I have ever told about getting 
 strung up on a bayonet, near New Orleans, when I first 
 went south as a recruit. It was before I had joined my 
 regiment, and I was with a gang of recruits, all looking for 
 the regiments we had enlisted in. We had come down 
 from St. Louis on a steamboat, our regiments being scat 
 tered all over the Department of the Gulf. We were not 
 in any particular hurry to find our regiments, as the longer 
 we kept away from them the less duty we would have to 
 do. I do not think, out of the whole forty recruits, there 
 was one who was in the least hurry to find his regiment, 
 and none of them would have known their regiments if 
 they had seen them, unless somebody told them. They 
 had enlisted just as it happened, all of them hoping the 
 war would be over before they found where they belonged. 
 They didn t know anybody in their respective regiments, 
 hence there were no ties binding them. But they had 
 been together for several months, as recruits, until all had 
 got well acquainted, and if they could have been formed 
 into a company, for service together, they might have done 
 pretty good fighting. The crowd was becoming smaller, 
 as every day or two some recruit would come and bid us all 
 good bye. He had actually stumbled on to his regiment, 
 and when the officers of an old regiment, in examining 
 
290 BOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 recruits, found one assigned to his regiment, he never took 
 his eyes off the recruit until he was landed. I have seen 
 some very affecting partings, when one of our gang would 
 find where he belonged and had to leave us, perhaps never 
 to meet again. The gang was rapidly dropping apart, and 
 when we got to New Orleans there were only twenty or so 
 left. We reported to the commanding officer, and he quar 
 tered us at Carrollton, near the city, in what had once 
 been a beer-garden and dance-house. We slept on the 
 floor of the dance-house, cooked our meals out in the gar- 
 Ren, spread our food on the old beer tables, and imagined 
 fre were proprietors of the place, or guests of the govern 
 ment. We always ordered beer or expensive wines with 
 ur meals. Not that we ever got any beer or wine, because 
 the beer garden was deserted, but we put on a great deal 
 of style. 
 
 We found a lot of champagne bottles out in the back 
 yard, and I do not think I ever took a meal there without 
 having a champagne bottle sitting beside me on the table, 
 and when any citizens were passing along the street we 
 would take up the bottles, look at the label in a scrutiniz 
 ing way, as though not exactly certain in our minds whether 
 we were getting as good wine as we were paying for. The 
 old empty bottles gave us a standing in Carrollton society 
 that nothing else could have given us. Some of the boys 
 got so they could imitate the popping of a champagne cork 
 to perfection, by placing one finger in the mouth, prying the 
 cheek around on one side, and letting it fly open suddenly. 
 We would have several of the boys with aprons on, and 
 when anybody was passing on the street, one of us would 
 call, "Waiter open a bottle of that extra dry." The 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 291 
 
 waiter would say, <e Certainly, sah," take a bottle between 
 his knees, run his finger in his mouth and make it pop, and 
 then pretend to pour out the champagne in glasses, imita 
 ting the "fizzing" perfectly. It was the extra dryest 
 champagne that I ever had. But all that foolishness had 
 the desired effect. It convinced the citizens of Carrollton 
 that we were no ordinary soldiers. We were all nicely 
 dressed, had no guards, and apparently no officers, had 
 plenty of money, which we spent freely at the stores, and 
 the impression soon got out that we were on some special 
 service, and there was, of course, much curiosity to know 
 our business. I learned that we were looked upon as se 
 cret service men, and I told the boys about it, and advised 
 them not to tell that we were recruits, but to put on an air 
 of mystery, and we would have fun while we remained. 
 One day an oldish gentleman who lived near, and who had 
 a fine orange plantation, or grove, toward which we had 
 cast longing eyes, called at the dance-house where we were 
 quartered. We had just finished our frugal meal, and the 
 empty bottles were being taken away. He addressed me, 
 and said, " Good day, Colonel." I responded as best I 
 could, and invited him to be seated. I apologized for not 
 offering him a glass of champagne, but told him we had 
 cracked the last bottle, and would not have any more until 
 the next day, as I had only that morning requested my 
 friend, the general commanding at New Orleans, to send 
 me a fresh supply, which he would do at once, I had no 
 doubt. Well, you ought to have seen the boys try to keep 
 from laughing, stuffing handkerchiefs in their mouths, 
 etc. But not a man laughed. The old citizen said it was 
 lio matter, as he would drop in the next day, and drink 
 
292 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 with us. We talked about the war, and it is my impression 
 he was anxious for us to believe he was a loyal man. But 
 after a while he asked me what particular duty I was on, 
 there at Carrollton. I hesitated a moment, and finally told 
 him that I hoped he would excuse me for not telling him, 
 bat the fact was it would be as much as my " commission" 
 would be worth to unfold any of my plans. I told him 
 that time alone would reveal the object of our being there, 
 and until such time as my government thought it best to 
 make it public, it was my duty as an "officer," to keep 
 silent. He said certainly, that was all right, and he ad 
 mired me for keeping my own counsel. (I was probably the 
 highest private and rawest recruit in the army.) He said 
 there was a natural curiosity on the part of the people of 
 Carrollton to know who we were, as we lived so high, and 
 seemed such thorough gentlemen. I admitted that we 
 were thorough gentlemen, and thanked him for the high 
 opinion that the cultured people of Carrollton had of us. 
 He wound up by pointing to his orange grove, and said he 
 would consider it a special favor if we would consider our 
 selves perfectly free to go there and help ourselves at any 
 time, and particularly that evening, as a number of young 
 people would be at his house for a quiet dance. I told him 
 that a few of us would certainly be present, and thanked 
 him kindly. When he was gone I told the boys, and they 
 wanted to give three cheers, but I got them to keep still, 
 and we talked all the afternoon of the soft snap we had 
 struck, and cleaned up for the party. My intention was 
 to pick out half a dozen of the best dressed recruits, those 
 that could make a pretty fair showing in society to go with 
 me, but they all wanted to go, and there was no way to 
 
PUT DOWST THE REBELLION. 293 
 
 prevent it, so all but one Irishman, that we hired to stay 
 and watch our camp, went. Well, we ate oranges fresh 
 from the trees, joined in the dance, ate refreshments, and 
 drank the old gentleman s wine, and had a good time, 
 made a good impression on the ladies, and went back to 
 camp at midnight. On the way over to the party I told 
 the boys the gentleman was coming to see us the next day, 
 and we should have to get a bottle of champagne some 
 where, to treat him, as I had told him we expected some 
 more up from the city. When we came back from the 
 party a German recruit pulled a bottle of champagne out 
 of his pocket, which he had stolen from the man s house in 
 order to treat him with the next day. The gentleman 
 came over to our quarters the next day, and we opened our 
 bottle, and he drank to our very good health, though I 
 thought he looked at the label on the bottle pretty close. 
 For a week we frequented the gentleman s orange grove 
 every day, and ate oranges to our heart s content. 
 
 Several times during the week we were invited to differ 
 ent houses, where we boys became quite interested in the 
 fair girls of Louisiana. It was ten days from the time we 
 settled in the beer garden, and we had kept our secret 
 well. Nobody in Carrollton knew that we were raw re 
 cruits that had never seen a day of service, but the im 
 pression was still stronger than ever that we were pets of 
 the government. We had an old map of the United States 
 that we had borrowed at a saloon, and during the day we 
 would hang the map up and surround it, while I pointed" 
 out imaginary places to attack. This we would do while 
 people were passing. Everything was working splendidly, 
 ind we decided to give a party. We hired a band to play 
 
294 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 in the dance house, ordered refreshments, and invited 
 about forty ladies and gentlemen to attend. The day we 
 were to give the party we sent a recruit down town to draw 
 rations, and he told everybody what a high old time we 
 recruits were having at Carrollton. The commanding 
 officer heard of it, and, probably having forgotten that we 
 were up there waiting to be sent to our regiments he sent 
 a peremptory order for us to report at New Orleans before 
 noon of that day. How could we report at noon, when we 
 weie going to give a party at night ? It was simply im 
 possible, and I, as a sort of brevet corporal in charge, sent 
 a man down town to tell the commanding officer that we 
 had an engagement that night, and couldn t come before 
 the next day. I did not know that it was improper to send 
 regrets to a commanding officer when ordered to do any 
 thing. The man I sent down to New Orleans came back 
 and I asked him what the general said. The man said he 
 read the note and said, "The hell they can t come till to 
 morrow. The impudence of the recruits. They will come 
 tonight ! " I did not believe we would. In my freshness 
 I did not believe that any commander of troops would de 
 liberately break up a ball, and humiliate brave soldiers. I 
 thought my explanation to the commander that we had an 
 engagement, would be sufficient, that he would see that it 
 was impossible to hurry matters. We had been to a good 
 deal of expense, and it was our duty, after accepting the 
 hospitalities of those people, to pay our indebtedness in the 
 only way we knew how, and so, as the boys had gathered 
 around me to see what was to be done, I said, " On with 
 the dance. Let joy be unconfined." 
 
 Our guests arrived on time, and shortly after it became 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 295 
 
 dark, the Dutch band we had hired from a beer hall down 
 town, struck up some sort of foreign music, and "there 
 was a sound of revelry by night." We danced half & 
 dozen times, smiled sweetly on our guests, walked around 
 the paths of the old garden, flirted a little perhaps, and 
 talked big with the male guests, and convinced them anew 
 that we were regular old battle-scarred vets, on detached 
 duty of great importance. Near midnight we all sat down 
 to lunch, around the beer tables, and everything was going 
 along smooth. The old gentleman who had been first i> > 
 make our acquaintance, and who had been the means oc 
 getting us into society, proposed as a toast, " Our brav i 
 and generous hosts," and the boys called upon me to n 
 pond. I got up on a bench and was making a speec i 
 that, if I had been allowed to continue, would have bee i 
 handed down in history as one of the ablest of our timt . 
 It was conciliatory in tone, calculated to cement a friend 
 ship between the army and the citizens of the south, antf 
 show that while we were engaged in war, there was noth 
 ing mean about us, and that we loved our neighbors a* 
 ourselves. I was just getting warmed up, and our guests 
 had spatted their hands at some of my remarks, when I 
 heard a tramp, tramp, tramp on the sidewalk outside, and 
 before I could breathe a squad of infantry soldiers had 
 filed into the garden, surrounded the dance-house, a dozen 
 had formed in line before the door, and a sergeant had 
 walked in and ordered the citizens to disperse, and said the 
 recruits were under arrest. Well, I have been in some 
 tight places in my life, but that was the closest place I ever 
 struck. The old gentleman, the leader of our guests, 
 turned to me and asked wha*i this all meant, and I told 
 
296 HOW PRIVATE GKEOBGE W. PECK 
 
 him to be calm, and I would fix everything. I got down 
 off the bench and approached the sergeant, to argue the 
 thing. I found that he was a colored man, and that his 
 soldiers were also colored troops. This was the unkindest 
 cut of all. I could stand it to be arrested by white sol 
 diers, but the sending of a lot of "niggers * after us white 
 fellows was more than human nature could bear We had 
 most of us been Democrats before enlisting, and had never 
 looked upon the colored man with that respect that we 
 learned to do, later. I went up to the sergeant, as brave 
 as I could, and said, " Look-a-here, boss, you have made a 
 dreadful mistake. We are gentlemen, enjoying ourselves, 
 and this interruption on your part will cost you dear. 
 Now go away with your men, quietly, and I promise you, 
 on the honor of a gentleman, that I will not report you, 
 and have you punished," and I looked at him in a tone of 
 voice that I thought would convince him that I was a 
 friend if he should go away, but if he remained it would 
 be at his peril. 
 
 He said he didn t want any foolishness, or some of us 
 would get hurt, and just then one of the Irish recruits, 
 who had tried to skin out the back way, got jabbed in the 
 pants by a bayonet, and he began to howl and cuss the 
 "niggers." The sergeant called up half a dozen of his 
 sable guard, and they surrounded me and some of the boys. 
 Our guests were becoming frightened, ladies had put on 
 their wraps, and there was a good deal of confusion, when 
 I shouted, "Boys, are we going to submit to this insult on 
 the part of a lot of nigger field hands? Never! To the 
 rescue!" Well, they didn t "to the rescue" worth a cent. 
 A colored man with a bayonet had every recruit s breast at 
 
PUT DOWN THE KEBELLIOtf. 297 
 
 the point of his weapon, three soldiers surrounded me, and 
 one run his bayonet through the breast of my coat and out 
 under my arm, and held me on my tip-toes, and I was 
 powerless, except with my mouth. The old gentleman, 
 our most distinguished guest, came up to me, and I said 
 to him, in confidence, so our guests could hear, however, 
 with a smile, " This may seem to you a singular proceed 
 ing. I cannot explain it to you now, as I am pledged to 
 secrecy by my government, but I will say that the duty we 
 are on here is part of a well-laid plan of our commander, 
 and this seeming arrest is a part of the plan. This colored 
 sergeant is innocent. He is simply obeying orders, and is 
 a humble instrument in carrying out our plan. I expected 
 to be arrested before morning, but hoped it would be 
 after our party. However, we soldiers have to go whero 
 ordered. We shall be thrown into prison for a time, but 
 when this detective or secret service work on which we an* 
 engaged is done, we will take pleasure in calling upon you 
 again, wearing such laurels as we may win. We bid you 
 good-night, and wish you much happiness." They all 
 shook hands with us, evidently believing what I had said, 
 and even the sergeant seemed to take it in, for, after the 
 crowd had gone, the sergeant said, " You will excuse me, 
 kernel, for what I have done. I didn t know about any 
 plan/ All I knew was dat the provost-marshal told me 
 to go up to Carrollton and pull dem recruits dat was camp 
 ing at de beer garden, and fotch cm to de guard-house." 
 I told him he did perfectly right, and then we recruits 
 packed up our things and marched with the colored sol 
 diers to New Orleans, about six miles, and we slept in the 
 guard-house. The next morning the provost-marshal 
 
29S HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 called upon us, damned us a little for not insisting on 
 being sent to our regiments, found out that my regiment 
 was up the river two hundred miles, and seemed mad be- 
 cause I passed it when I came from St. Louis. I told him 
 I was not expected to go hunting around for my regiment, 
 like a lost calf. What I wanted was for my regiment to 
 hunt me up. That afternoon he put me on an up-river 
 boat with a tag on my baggage telling where I belonged, 
 and I bid good-bye to the recruits, after having had three 
 months of fun at the expense of Uncle Sam. 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 299 
 
 CHAPTER XXVI. 
 
 I STRIKE ANOTHER SOFT-SNAP, WHICH is HARDER THAN ANY SNAP 
 HERETOFORE I BEGIN TAKING Music LESSONS, AND FILL UP A 
 CONFEDERATE PRISONER WITH YANKEE FOOD. 
 
 The last two chapters of this stuff has related to early 
 experiences, but now that it is probable the chaplain has 
 got over being mad at my trading him the circus-horse, I 
 will resume the march with the regiment. For a month or 
 more I had been waiting for my commission to arrive, so 
 that I could serve as an officer, but it did not arrive while 
 we were at Montgomery, and we started away from that 
 city towards Vicksburg, Miss., with a fair prospect of hav 
 ing hot work with strolling bands of the enemy, I was 
 much depressed. It had got so they didn t seem to want 
 me anywhere. It seemed that I was a sort of a Jonah, and 
 wherever I was, something went wrong. The chaplain 
 wouldn t have me, because he had a suspicion that I was 
 giddy,, and full of the devil, and I have thought he had an 
 idea I would sacrifice the whole army to perpetrate a prac 
 tical joke, and he also maintained that I would lie, if a lie 
 would help me out of a scrape. I never knew how such 
 an impression could have been created. The colonel said 
 he would try and get along without me, the adjutant didn t 
 want any more of my mathematics in his reports and the 
 brigade commander said he would carry the brigade colors 
 himself rather than have me around, as I would bring head 
 quarters into disgrace some way. So I had to serve as a 
 Psrivate in my own company, which was very hard on a man 
 
300 HOW PRIVATE ^EORGE W. PECK 
 
 who had tasted the sweets of official position. 0, if my 
 commission did not come soon I was lost. After we had 
 marched a couple of days it began to look as though we 
 were liable to have a fight on our hands. Every little while 
 there would be firing in advance, or on the flanks, and 
 things looked blue for one who did not want to have 
 any trouble with anybody. One morning when we were 
 cooking our breakfast beside a pitch pine log, a little Irish 
 man, who was a friend of mine, as I always lent him my 
 tobacco, said: "There will be a fight today, and some wan 
 of the byes will sleep cold tonight." 
 
 A cold chill came over me, and I wondered which of 
 of the " byV would draw the ticket of death. The Irish 
 man noticed that I was not feeling perfectly easy, and he 
 said, " Sorrel top, wud yez take a bit of advice from the 
 loikes of me?" I did not like to be called sorrel top, but 
 if there was any danger I would take advice from anybody, 
 so I told him to fire away. He told me that when we fell 
 in, for tlm march of the day, to arrange to be No. 4, as in 
 ease we were dismounted, to fight on foot, number four 
 would remain on his horse, and hold three other horses, 
 and keep in the rear, behind the trees, while the dis 
 mounted men went into the fight. Great heavens, and 
 that had never occurred to me before. Of course number 
 four would hold the horses, in case of a dismounted fight, 
 and I had never thought what a soft thing it was. It can 
 be surmised by the reader of profane history, that when 
 our company formed that morning I was number four. 
 We marched along for a couple of hours, when there was 
 some firing on the flanks, and a couple of companies were 
 wheeled into line and marched off into the woods for 
 
PUT DOWN" THE REBELLION". 301 
 
 a mile, and the order was given to " prepare to fight on 
 foot." It was a momentous occasion for me, and when the 
 three men of our four dismounted and handed the bridle 
 reins to me, I was about the happiest man in the army. I 
 did not want the boys to think I was anxious to keep away 
 from the front, so I said, " Say, cap, don t I go too?" He 
 said I could if I wanted to, as one of the other boys woultf 
 hold the horses if I was spoiling to be a corpse, but I told 
 him I guessed, seeing that I was already on the horse, I 
 would stay, and the boys went off laughing, leaving about 
 twenty-five of us " number fours " holding horses. Now, 
 you may talk all you please about safe places in a fight, 
 but sitting on a horse in plain sight, holding three other 
 prancing, kicking, squalling horses, while the rest of the 
 boys are behind trees, or behind logs, popping at the 
 enemy, is no soft thing. The bullets seemed to pass right 
 over our fellows on foot, and came right among the horses, 
 who twisted around and got tangled up, and made things 
 unpleasant. I was trying to get a stallion I was holding 
 to quit biting my legs, when I saw my little Irishman, who 
 had steered me on to the soft snap, dodge down behind his 
 horse s head, to escape a bullet that killed one of the horses 
 he was holding, and I said, " This is a fine arrangement 
 you have got me into. This is worse than being in front." 
 He said he believed it was, as he backed his other horses 
 away from the dying horse, but he said as long as they 
 killed horses we had no cause to complain. There was a 
 sergeant in charge of us "number fours," and he was as 
 cool as any fellow I ever saw. The sergeant was a 
 nice man, but he was no musician. He was an Irishman, 
 also, and when any bugle-call sounded he had to ask 
 
802 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 some one what it was. There was a great deal of uncer 
 tainty about bugle-calls, I noticed, among officers as well 
 as men. 
 
 Of course it could not be expected that every man in a 
 cavalry regiment would be a music teacher, and the calls 
 sounded so much alike to the uncultivated ear, that it was 
 no wonder that everybody got the calls mixed. In camp 
 we got so we could tell "assembly," and "surgeon s call," 
 and "tattoo," and quite a number of others, but the calls 
 of battle were Greek to us. The bugle sounded down in 
 the woods, and the sergeant turned to me and asked, 
 "Fhat the divilis that I dunno?" I was satisfied it was 
 " To horse," but when I saw our fellows come rushing back 
 towards the horses it looked as though the order was to fall 
 back, and I suggested as much to the sergeant. He thought 
 it looked reasonable, too, and he ordered us to fall back 
 slowly toward the regiment. We didn t go so confounded 
 slow, and of course I was ahead with my three horses. 
 The sergeant heard the captain yell to him to hold on, and 
 he got the most of the "fours" to stop, and let the boys 
 get on, but the little Irishman and myself couldn t hold our 
 extra horses, and they dragged us along over logs and 
 through brush, the regiment drew sabers to "shoo "the 
 horses back, waived their hats, my horse run his fore feet 
 into a hole, fell down, and let me off over his head, the 
 other horses seemed to walk on me, I became insensible, and 
 the next thing I knew I was in an ambulance, behind the 
 regiment, which was on the march, as though nothing had 
 happened. I felt of myself to see if anything was broke, 
 and finding I was all right I told the driver of the ambu 
 lance I guessed I would get out and mount my horse, but 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 303 
 
 he said he guessed I wouldn t, because the colonel had told 
 him if I died to bury me beside the road, but if I lived to 
 bring me to headquarters for punishment. The driver 
 said the boys whose horses I had stampeded, wanted to kill 
 me, but the colonel had said death was too good for me. 
 Well, nobody was hurt in the skirmish, and about noon we 
 arrived at a camping place for the night, and the ambu 
 lance drove up, and I was placed under guard. 
 
 It seems the sergeant had laid the whole thing to me. 
 He had admitted to the colonel that he didn t know one 
 bugle call from another, and he supposed I did, and when 
 he asked me what it was, and I said it was to retreat, he 
 supposed I knew, and retreated. The colonel asked me 
 vhat I had to say, and I told him I didn t know any bugle 
 3all except "get your quinine, get your quinine." That 
 when I enlisted there was nothing said about my ability to 
 read notes in music, and I had never learned, and couldn t 
 learn, as I had no more ear for music than a mule. I told 
 him if he would furnish a music teacher, I would study 
 hard to try and master the difference between "forward " 
 and " back," but that it didn t seem to me as though 1 
 ought to be held responsible for an expression of opinion, 
 however erroneous, when asked for it by a superior officer. 
 I told him that when the bugle sounded, and I saw the 
 boys coming back on a hop, skip and jump, it seemed to 
 me the most natural thing in the world that the bugle had 
 sounded a " retreat." That seemed the only direction we 
 could go, and as my natural inclination was to save those 
 horses that had been placed in my charge, of course I in 
 terpreted the bugle call to mean for us to get out of there 
 honorably, and as the only w/y to get out honorably was to 
 
304 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 get out quick, we got up and dusted. The colonel always 
 gave me credit for being a good debater, and he smiled and 
 said that as no damage had been done, he would not insist 
 that I be shot on the spot, but he felt that an example 
 should be made of me. He said I would be under arrest 
 until bed time, down under a tree, half a mile or so from 
 headquarters, in plain sight, and he would send music 
 teachers there to teach me the bugle calls. I thanked him, 
 in a few well chosen remarks, and the guard marched me 
 to the tree, which was the guard-house. I found another 
 soldier there, under arrest, who had rode out of the ranks 
 to water his horse, while on the march, against orders, and 
 a Confederate prisoner that had been captured in the morn 
 ing skirmish, a captain of a Virginia regiment. The cap 
 tain seemed real hurt at having been captured, and was in 
 clined to be uppish and distant. I tried two or three times 
 to get him into conversation on some subject connected 
 with the war, but he wouldn t have it. He evidently 
 looked upon me as a horse-thief, a deserter, and a bad man, 
 or else a soldier who had been sent to pump information 
 out of him. I never was let alone quite as severely as I 
 was by our prisoner, at first. But I went to work and 
 built a fire, and soon had some coffee boiling, bacon frying, 
 and sweet potatoes roasting, and when I spread the lay out 
 on the ground, and said, " Colonel, this is on me. Won t 
 you join me ? " I think he was the most surprised man I 
 ever saw, He had watched every move I made, in cooking, 
 with a yearning such as is seldom seen, and he probablj had 
 no more idea that he was going to have a mouthful of TV, 
 than that he should fly. His eyes might have been weak, 
 but if he had been a man I knew well, I should have said 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 30ff 
 
 -here were a couple of tears gathering in his eyes, and I was 
 quite sure of it when the flood broke over the eye-lid dam, 
 and rolled down among the underbrush whiskers. He 
 stopped the flood at once, by an effort of will, though there 
 seemed a something in his throat when he said, f You 
 don t mean it, do you, kernel ?" I told him of course I 
 meant it, and to slide right up and help himself, and I 
 speare"d a great big sweet potato, and some bacon, and 
 placed them on a big leaf, and poured coffee out in the only 
 cup I had. He kicked on using the cup, but I said we 
 would both drink out of it. He said, e< you are very kind, 
 sir," and that was all he said during the meal. But how 
 lie did eat. He tried to act as though he didn t care much 
 for dinner, and as though he was eating out of courtesy to 
 me, but I could tell by the way the sweet potato went 
 down in the depths of my Confederate friend, and by the 
 joyous look when a swallow of coffee hit the right place, 
 that he was having a picnic. 
 
 When we were through with dinner and the guard and 
 the other prisoner were cooking theirs, he said, " My friend, 
 I do not mind telling you now that I was much in need of 
 food. I had not eaten since yesterday morning, as we have 
 been riding hard to intercept you gentlemen, sir. I trust 
 I shall live long enough to repay you sir." I told him not 
 to mention it, as all our boys made it a point to divide 
 when we captured a prisoner. He said he believed his 
 people felt the same way, but God knew they had little to 
 divide. He said he trembled when he thought that some 
 of our men who were prisoners in the south were faring 
 very poorly, but it could not be helped. " Suppose I had 
 captured you," he said, with * Nnile that was forced, "I 
 
806 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 could not have given you a mouthful of bread, until we 
 had found a southern family that had bread to spare/" 
 I told him it was pretty tough, but it would all be over 
 before long, and then we would all have plenty to eat. I 
 got out a pack of cards, and the confederate captain played 
 seven-up with me, while we smoked. Presently nine 
 buglers came down to where we were, formed in line, and 
 began to sound cavalry calls in concert. I knew that they 
 were the music teachers the colonel had sent to teach me 
 the calls. The confederate looked on in astonishment, 
 tynile they sounded a call, and when it was done I asked 
 che chief bugler what it was, and he told me, and I asked 
 him to sound something else, which he did. My idea was 
 to convince the prisoner that this was a part of daily rou 
 tine. He got nervous and couldn t remember which was 
 trumps; and finally said we might talk all we pleased about 
 the horrors of Andersonville, but to be blowed to death 
 with cavalry bugles was a fate that only the most hardened 
 criminals should suffer. The confederate evidently had no 
 ear for music more than I had, and he soon got enough. 
 However the buglers kept up their noise till about supper 
 time, when they were called off. I got another meal for 
 the confederate, and he seemed to be actually getting fat. 
 The colonel of my regiment came down to where we were, 
 and said, "Yon fellows seem to be doing pretty well," 
 and then he had a long talk with the rebel prisoner, invited 
 him up to his tent to pass the night, apologized for the 
 concert he had been giving us, explained what it was for, 
 told me I could go to my company if I thought I could 
 remember a bugle call in the future; the captain shook 
 bands with me and thanked me cordially, and we sepa- 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 307 
 
 rated. He was exchanged the next day, and I never saw 
 him for twenty-two years, when I found him at the head 
 of a manufacturing enterprise in his loved Virginia, and 
 he furnished me a more expensive meal than I did him 
 years before, but it didn t taste half as good as the bacon 
 dinner in Alabama under the guard-house tree. 
 
08 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 CHAPTER XXVII. 
 
 A SHORT STORY ABOUT A PAIR OF BOOTS, SHOWING THE MONU 
 MENTAL GALL OP THEIR OWNER. 
 
 When I enlisted in the cavalry I bought a pair of top 
 boots, of the Wellington pattern, stitched with silk up and 
 down the legs, which were of shiny morocco. They came 
 clear above my knees, and from the pictures I had seen of 
 cavalry soldiers, it struck me those boots would be a pass- 
 port]to any society in the army. The first few months of my 
 service, it seemed to me, the boots gave me more tone than 
 any one thing. I learned afterwards that all new recruits 
 came to the regiment with such boots, and that they were 
 the laughing stock of all the old veterans. I did not know 
 that I was being guyed by the boys, and I loved those boots 
 above all things I had. To be sure, when we struck an 
 unusually muddy country, some idiot of an officer seemed 
 to be inspired to order us to dismount. The boys who had 
 common army boots would dismount anywhere, in mud or 
 water, but it seemed to me cruel for officers to order a 
 dismount, when they knew I would have to step in the 
 mud half way up to my knees, with those morocco boots 
 on. Several times when ordered to dismount in the mud, 
 I have ridden out of the read, where it was not muddy, to 
 dismount, but the boys would laugh so loud, and the offi 
 cers would swear so wickedly, that I got so I would dis 
 mount wherever they told me, suppress my emotions, as I 
 felt my beautiful, shiny boots sink into the red clay, and 
 when we got into camp I would spend half the night clean- 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 309 
 
 ing my boots. The captain said if I would spend half the 
 time cleaning my carbine and saber that I did cleaning my 
 boots, I would have been a model soldier. 
 
 I think that for the first year of my service I had as 
 elegant a pair of boots as could be found in the army. 
 But it was the hardest work to keep track ^f them. The 
 first three months it was all I could do to keep the chap 
 lain from trading me a pair of old army shoes for my 
 boots. The arguments he used to convince me that mo 
 rocco boots were far above my station, and that they were 
 intended for a chaplain, were labored. If he had used the 
 same number of words in the right direction, he could 
 have converted the whole army. I had to sleep with my 
 boots under my head every night, to prevent them from 
 being stolen and twice they were stolen from iny tent, but in 
 each case recovered at the sutler s, where they had been 
 pawned for a bottle of brandy peaches, which I had to pay for 
 to redeem the boots. The boots had become almost a burden 
 to me, in keeping them, but I enjoyed them so much that 
 money could not have bought them. When we were in a 
 town for a few days, and I rode around, it did not make 
 any difference whether I had any other clothes on, of any 
 account, the morocco boots captured the town. The na 
 tives could not see how a man who wore such boots could 
 be anything but a high-up thoroughbred. The last time I 
 lost my boots will always be remembered by those who were 
 in the same command. We were on the march with a 
 Michigan and a New Jersey regiment, through the dustiest 
 country that ever was. The dust was eight inches deep in 
 the road, and just like fine ashes. Every time a horse put 
 his foot down the dust would raise above the trees, and as 
 
310 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 there were two thousand horses, with four feet apiece, and 
 each foot in constant motion, it can be imagined that the 
 troops were dusty. And it was so hot that the perspiration 
 oozed out of us, but the dust covered it. 
 
 The three regiments took turns in acting as rear guard, 
 to pick np stragglers, and on this hot and dusty day the 
 New Jersey regiment was in the rear. It was composed of 
 Germans entirely, with a German colonel, a man who had 
 seen service in Europe, and he looked upon a soldier as a 
 machine, with no soul, fit only to obey orders. That was 
 not the kind of a soldier I was. During the day s march 
 the boys stripped off everything they could. I know all I 
 had on was a shirt and pants, and a handkerchief around 
 my head. I took off my boots and coat and let the col 
 ored cook of the company strap them on to his saddle with 
 the camp kettles. He usually rode right behind the com 
 pany, and I thought I could get my things any time if I 
 wanted to dress up. It was the hardest day s march that 
 I ever experienced, lungs full of dust, and every man so 
 covered with dust that you could not recognize your near 
 est neighbor. Afternoon the command halted beside a 
 stream, and it was announced that we would go into camp 
 for the night. The colored cook came along soon after, 
 and he was perfectly pale, whether from dust or fright I 
 could not tell, but he announced to me, in a manner that 
 showed that he appreciated the calamity which had befallen 
 the command, that he had lost my boots. I was going to 
 kill him, but my carbine was full of dust, and I made it a 
 point never to kill a man with a dirty gun, so I let him 
 ftxplain. He said: 
 
 "I fell back to de rear, by dat plantation where de oot- 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 811 
 
 ton gin was burning, to see if I couldn t get a canteen of 
 buttermilk to wash de dust outen my froat, when dat 
 Dutch Noo Jersey gang come along, and de boss he said, 
 * nicker, you got back ahead fere you pelong, or I gick 
 you in de pack mit a saber, aind t it, and when I get on 
 my mule to come along he grab de boots and he say, nick 
 er, dot boots is better for me/ and when I was going to 
 take dem away from him he stick me in de pants wid a 
 saber. Den I come away. 
 
 I could have stood up under having an arm shot off, 
 but to lose my boots was more than I could bear. It never 
 did take me long to decide on any important matter, and 
 in a moment I decided to invade the camp of that New 
 Jersey regiment, recapture my boots or annihilate every 
 last foreigner on our soil, so I started off, barefooted, with 
 out a coat, and covered with dust, for the headquarters of 
 the New Jersey fellows. They had been in camp but ^ 
 few minutes, but every last one of them had taken a batt 
 in the river, brushed the dust off his clothes, and looked 
 ready for dress parade. That was one fault of those for 
 eigners, they were always clean, if they had half a chance. 
 I went right to the colonel s tent, and he was surrounded 
 with officers, and they were opening bottles of beer, and how 
 cool it looked. There was something peculiar about those 
 foreigners, no matter if they were doing duty in the most 
 inaccessible place in the south, and were short of trans 
 portation, you could always find beer at their headquarters, 
 I walked right in, and the colonel was just blowing the 
 foam off a glass of beer. He looked at me in astonishment, 
 pud I said in a voice husky from dust down my neck: 
 
 is in an important epoch in thf history of 
 
812 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 our beloved country. Events have transpired within thi 
 past hour, which leaves it an open question whether, as a 
 nation, we are afoot or on horseback." 
 
 "Great hefens," said the colonel, stopping with his 
 glass of beer half drank, "you vrighten me. Vot has hab- 
 bened. But vait, und dake a glass of beer, as you seem 
 exhausted, und proke up. Captain Ouskaspiel, hand the 
 shendleman some peer. Mine Gott, bud you look hard, 
 strancher." 
 
 I do not believe that I ever drank anything that seemed 
 to go right to the spot, the way that beer did. It seemed 
 to start a freshet of dust down my neck, clear my throat, 
 and brace me up. While I was drinking it I noticed that 
 the German colonel and his officers eyed me closely, my 
 bare feet, my flannel shirt full of dust, and my hair that 
 looked as though I had stood on my head in the road. 
 They waited for me to continue, and after draining the last 
 drop in the glass, I said: 
 
 "Colonel, it was no ordinary circumstance that induced 
 you brave foreigners, holding allegiance to European 
 sovereigns, to fly to arms to defend this new nation from 
 an internecine foe. While we natives, and to the manor 
 born, left our plows in the furrow, to spring to arms, you 
 left your shoemaker shops, the spigots of your beer saloons, 
 the marts of commerce in which you were engaged, and 
 stood shoulder to shoulder. Where the bullets of the 
 enemy whistled, there could be found the brave Dutchmen 
 of New Jersey. It brings tears to eyes unused to weeping, 
 to think of the German fathers and mothers of our land, 
 who are waiting and watching for the return of sons who 
 will never come back, and this is, indeed, harder for them 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION 1 . 313 
 
 to bear, when we reflect that these boys were not obliged 
 to fight for our country, holding allegiance, as I said be 
 fore, to " 
 
 "Waid a minute, of you blease," said the colonel. 
 " Dake von more drink, and dell me, of you please, vot de 
 hell you vos drying to get at. Capt. Heinrech, gif der 
 shendleman a glass of beer." 
 
 A second glass of beer was given me, and I drank it. 
 There was evidently a suspicion on the part of the New 
 Jersey officers that the importance of my visit had been 
 over-rated by them, and they seemed anxious to have me 
 come to the point. 
 
 " On the march today/ said I, wiping the foam off my 
 moustache on my shirt-sleeve, " one of your thieving sol 
 diers stole my boots from our nigger cook, who was con 
 veying them for me. A cavalry soldier without boots, is 
 no good. I came after my boots, and I will have them or 
 blood. Keturn my boots, or by the eternal, the Wisconsin 
 cavalry regiment will come over here and everlastingly gal 
 lop over your fellows. The constitution of the United 
 States and the Declaration of Independence, are on my 
 side. In civil life a man s house is his castle. In the 
 army a man s aoots is his castle. Give me my boots, 
 sir, or the blood of the slain will rest on your heads. " 
 
 The colonel was half mad and half pleased. He tapped 
 his forehead with his fore-finger, and looked at his officers 
 in a manner that showed he believed my head was wrong, 
 but he said kindly: 
 
 "My man, you go oud and sit under a tree, in the 
 shade, and I vill hafe your poots found if they are in my 
 rechiment/ and I want out. I heard the colonel say to 
 
314 HOW PRIVATE GEORGE W. PECK 
 
 one of his officers, "It vas too pad dot two good glasses of 
 beer should be spoiled, giving them to dot grazy solcher 
 Ve must be more careful mit de beer." 
 
 Pretty soon an officer came out and asked me how the 
 boots were taken, and I gave him all the information I 
 had, and he sent men all around the regiment, and in an, 
 hour or so the boots were brought to me, the man whe 
 stole them was arrested, the officers apologized to me, and 
 I went back to my regiment in triumph, with my boot* 
 under my arms. The incident got noised around among 
 the other regiments, and for months after that, when the 
 colonel of the New Jersey cavalry rode by another regi 
 ment, the boys would yell out, "Boots, boots/ or when a 
 company or squad of the New Jersey fellows would pass 
 along, it was "Look out for your boots! The shoemakers 
 are coming." For stealing that one pair of boots, by one 
 man, a whole regiment got a reputation for stealing that 
 hung to it a long time. Ten years afterward I was con 
 nected with a New York daily paper, and one evening I 
 was detailed to go to a New Jersey city to report the com 
 mencement exercises of a college. In the programme oi 
 exercises I noticed that a man of the same name as that of 
 the New Jersey colonel, was one of the college professors, 
 and I wondered if he was the same man. During th 
 evening he put in an appearance on the stage, and I could 
 see that he was the colonel who had given me the beer, and 
 caused my boots to be returned to me. After the exercises 
 of the evening, the New York newspaper men were invited 
 to partake of a collation in the apartments of the college 
 officials, and the professors were introduced to the 
 
PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 315 
 
 paper men. When my turn came to be introduced, and 
 the old colonel stood before me, I said: 
 
 "General, you were in the army, were you not?* 
 
 " Yezzer!" said the old man. "I am broud to say dot 
 I fought for my adopted country. But vy do you ask?" 
 
 " We have met before. I, too, was a soldier. I was at 
 your headquarters once, on a very important mission. I 
 was entertained, sir, in your tent, permitted to partake of 
 the good things you had, and sent away happy." 
 
 "Veil, you dond t say so," said the old man, as he 
 pressed my hand warmly. " Vere vas dis dat you were my 
 guest, and vot vas de important message?" and he smiled 
 all over his face at the prospect of hearing something 
 about old times. 
 
 "It was in Mississippi, between Montgomery, Ala., and 
 Vicksburg. Do you remember the hottest and dustiest 
 day that ever was, when we camped on a little stream?" 
 said I. 
 
 "0, yah!" said the colonel; "very well. It vas an 
 awful time/ 
 
 " I went to your headquarters with information of vital 
 importance. One of your soldiers had stolen my boots." 
 
 "Gott in himmel!" said the old colonel, now a college 
 professor, as he looked at me to see if there was any resem 
 blance between the New York reporter and the dusty, 
 bare-footed soldier of ten years before. " Vill I never hear 
 de last of dem dam boots? And you are de same veller, 
 eh. I have often thought, since dat day, vot an awful 
 gall you had. But it is all ofer now. You vatch your 
 poots vile you are in New Chersey, for plenty of dos cav 
 alry men are all arouad here, But do me a favor now 4 
 
HOW PECK PUT DOWN THE REBELLION. 
 
 and don t ever again say poots to me, dot s a good fellow," 
 and then we all sat down to lunch, and the old colonel 
 told the newspaper boys from New York ahout how I 
 called at his tent on the march, looking for a pair of 
 boots that had eloped with one of his New Chersey dutch- 
 
PECK S BOSS BOOK 
 
 BY 
 
 GEO. W. PECK 
 
 Author of "Peck s Bad Boy and His Pa." "Peck s Sunshine," 
 "Peck s Fun," Etc. 
 
 ILLUSTRATED BY H. E. PATTERSON 
 
 CHICAGO 
 
 THOMPSON & THOMAS 
 PUBLISHERS 
 
COPYRIGHT, 1884, BY 
 
 GEO. W. PECK 
 
 COPYRIGHT, 1900, BY 
 
 W. B. CONKEY COMPANY 
 
 ALL RIGHTS RESERVED 
 
 PECK S BOSS BOOK 
 
PREFACE. 
 
 To THE PUBLIC : 
 
 Writing books is a good deal like any other kind of 
 intoxication. A man thinks, the first forty years of his 
 life, as he looks upon the frightful examples around him 
 of men who have written books, and got the habit firmly 
 fixed upon them that he will never indulge in the terri 
 ble dissipation of writing a book; but in an unguarded 
 moment he writes his first book, and then there is no hope 
 for him. He becomes intoxicated, and likes it, and all 
 that friends can do to prevent him will not keep him from 
 repeating the dose. At times he thinks he will take a 
 manly stand, and never again indulge in the intoxicating 
 book. He realizes that he is better without it, and that 
 an indulgence in writing books only makes him feel good 
 for a time, and leaves him prostrated, and with a headache 
 the next morning. But the tempter comes to him, shows 
 him his name in gilt letters on a Russia leather binding, 
 and he falls, and writes another book. Friends forsake 
 him on account of his terrible habit ; but he has no shame, 
 and if not sent to a reformatory institution, he keeps it 
 up. The fate of the author, who looks upon the book 
 when it is read, should be a warning to all. 
 
 This book is intended simply to lighten up the gloom 
 of every-day life, and cause smiles where tears are often- 
 found, and, may be, in the book there will be an occasional 
 sketch that will cause tears where smiles are very often seen. 
 To those who are inclined to look upon the bright side of 
 life, but who have hearts that are easily touched by the sor 
 rows of those to whom everything looks dark, this book is 
 most respectfully dedicated by THE AUTHOB. 
 
PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 ACTKESSES PLAYING LOYE. 
 
 MADAME MODJESKA, who is no slouch of an 
 actress herself if she is a countess, was asked, by 
 a reporter, her opinion of Mary Anderson s acting, and 
 if she did not think Mary was cold and unimpassioned 
 in her love scenes. Modjeska replied : " There is no 
 such a thing as a cold and unimpassioned girl. Ander 
 son may seem so, because she has not met the right 
 person. She will meet him, however, and that will 
 remedy her apparent coldness. An actress must fall 
 in love before you see her at her best. There is no 
 exception to the rule." 
 
 Modjeska is right, and her idea is the same as that 
 frequently expressed by " The Sun*" in regard to Mary 
 Anderson. She plays love scenes just as well as she 
 can, on what she has been told about love by her 
 parents, who probably don t know anything about it. 
 Mary goes through a love scene same as the Greek slave 
 would go through a base ball match. If the ball should 
 get caught between the arm and the ribs of the Greek 
 slave, the slave would hold it, but she would never 
 reach out to take it on the fly, and send it back to the 
 pitcher with a hop, skip, and jump, and then turn a 
 double summersault. You could not expect it of a 
 
 9 
 
10 
 
 marble statue of the Greek slave. Mary Anderson is 
 just that way playing love. She says the words the 
 way the marble statue would hold the ball, and unless 
 some short-stop takes the ball from the statue and sends 
 it to the home plate, every person on the bases will get 
 a tally. Mary is liable to keep on playing at love, 
 until the rest of the actresses will make a home run 
 and get husbands, and she will be left. She says, 
 " Darling, I love you," just as though she was throw 
 ing a bucket of ice water on the lover. She never can 
 throw any soul into her love making until she has had a 
 dose of it herself. When she has forgot herself long 
 enough to be in love with a man, a case of regular old 
 typhoid, there will be actors that will want to play 
 Romeo to her Juliet for no salary and pay their own 
 board. When Mary has been in love, and knows how 
 it is herself, Romeo will not shiver through the balcony 
 scene, and then go behind the wings and drink a hot 
 whisky and put on an ulster overcoat as he does now. 
 He will go off the stage panting, and call for a fan and 
 a sherry cobbler. After she has been there herself, 
 and knows love when she sees it, and brings a little 
 nature into her acting, it will not be necessary for the 
 lover in the play to wear perforated buckskin under 
 garments to keep him from taking cold after she has 
 fainted away in his arms. Then she will be warmer in 
 a dead faint than she is now with all her faculties about 
 her. All Mary lacks to make her a paralyzer, is to get 
 in love once, so she can interpret the passion without 
 relying on what some one has told her. After she has 
 been in love, her cold hail stone eyes will look through 
 a play lover and clinch on the other side, and draw him 
 
ACTBE88E8 PLAYING LOVE. 11 
 
 up to her and break a rib. Her smile that now looks 
 as though she made it by tickling herself in the neck 
 with a feather, and which is made like a sneer, will 
 warm up and go all over her face, even to the roots of 
 her hair, and it will so photograph itself upon the 
 mind of the lover who is hired for the occasion, that 
 he will dream about it nights, and he will blush and 
 get scared for fear she means it After Mary has been 
 vaccinated with love, and it begins to work, she will 
 go on the stage and when she takes hold of the lover s 
 hand her icicle fingers will seem to melt in his hand 
 and he will look down to see if he has not got hold of 
 some hot fried cakes instead of fingers, and when she 
 lets go he will pull his fingers apart and blow on them 
 to cool them. When Mary has been in love about a 
 week, and falls into a lover s arms on the stage, he will 
 not wear a leather chest protector, to keep him from 
 taking cold on his lungs, and he will cease to feel that 
 he is playing Romeo to the Juliet of a zinc lined refrig 
 erator, that holds a hundred pounds of pounded iae, 
 and he will have to look at his burden a couple of times 
 to be sure that he has not had a coal stove fall on him. 
 It will make all the difference in the world about Mary. 
 Modjeska has been in love, and there is a warmth 
 about her acting that makes the stage lover wear a 
 linen ulster all the year round. Jeffreys Lewis has 
 been in love many times, and the lover that plays 
 with her on the stage, never bundles up. An armful 
 of an actress who has been in love, will save six 
 tons of coal in a family, during a winter, while the 
 presence of an actress who does not know what love 
 is, by her own experience, is an expense to every 
 
12 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 person who plays in the company for woolen gar 
 ments, and pneumonia is liable to attack anybody 
 in the cast. We are glad that so great an actress 
 as Modjeska is with us in this opinion of actresses. 
 Love is something an actress can never learn from 
 books, or by being told how it is. Modjeska says 
 Mary will find the right man yet. We don t know 
 about that. She seldom plays in Milwaukee, and her 
 step-father watches her so close when she is here 
 that it is as much as the right man s life is worth 
 to try to mash her ; and then she is always chewing 
 gum, and a woman has got to swear off on gum, 
 and eradicate the gum chewing habit from her system 
 entirely before she can ever be in love. 
 
 THE POPULAEITY OF BOXING. 
 
 THE recent prize fight at Madison Square Garden, 
 New York, between Sullivan and Mitchell, shows 
 that fighting and " knocking out " is the most popular 
 amusement of the day, and that more people can 
 be induced to pay a dollar or two for a seat to 
 witness such a display than for any other entertain 
 ment. The idea of twenty thousand people going 
 to see the boxing seems ridiculous on the face of it, 
 and yet half of the best men in any community, had 
 they been in New York at the time, would have been 
 found at the boxing match. There is something 
 about boxing that interests, even if the man inter 
 ested does not understand the science himself, A 
 
THE POPULARITY OF BOXING. 13 
 
 variety theatre that has boxing for one of its attrac 
 tions will always be full, and the audience will be as 
 pleased as possible. We do not expect to live to 
 see boxing popular with the better classes, that is, 
 to such an extent that the services in church will 
 open with a set-to with soft gloves between a couple 
 of deacons, but the time is coming when every play 
 that is given on the stage will have the plot center 
 upon a boxing match. If some latter day Shakes 
 peare should re-write the play of "Hamlet" so that 
 swords would be done away with, and the fighting 
 be done with boxing gloves, the interest in that play, 
 which is gradually wearing off, would be intensified. 
 The spectacle of Mr. Booth coming on the stage with 
 a pair of boxing gloves, and having a set-to with his 
 step-father, while the ghost acted as referee, would be 
 well worth the price of admission, and if he should 
 have a quarrel with the grave digger and put on 
 the gloves with him and knock him into the grave, 
 and Laertes should throw up the sponge, it would 
 bring the house down. The lines could be changed 
 so Hamlet would pick up the skull of Yorick and 
 say, "Alas, poor Yorick ! I knocked him out in three 
 rounds. There is where I fractured his skull and 
 knocked him silly." In the play of "Richard the 
 Third" a few sets of boxing gloves would lighten 
 up the gloom. Richard could pretend not to know 
 anything about boxing, and put on the gloves reluc 
 tantly, and go out on Bosworth field apparently 
 expecting to be knocked out, and the audience would 
 express pity for the poor cripple, and then Richard 
 could turn in and clean out the whole army, one at 
 
14 
 
 / 
 
 a time, and come upon the stage as a conquering 
 hero, out of breath, and be covered with bouquets 
 Even the society of plays will be enlivened by set-toe 
 between the dudes and the girls of the play. Noth 
 ing would bring an audience to its feet, and cause 
 it to cheer itself hoarse so well as to see the frail 
 girl, whom the villain is pursuing, and who seems 
 to be dying of blood poisoning from the paint on 
 her face, put on a pair of six-button boxing gloves, 
 and knock the dude villain through a window where 
 he will fall through a skylight down four stories, and 
 come back with his clothes torn and his eye blacked, 
 after his eye-glass. The heroes and heroines of the 
 future are going to be those who can strike out from 
 the shoulder and land a mauler on the opponent s 
 nose. In order that all may be proficient in the 
 art that brings a forkine to sluggers for one night s 
 entertainment a professorship of boxing should be 
 attached to the public schools, and boys and girl# 
 should be taught the art of defense. When the most 
 popular man in cultivated Boston is her ablest prize 
 fighter, who can make more money in a night than 
 the literary Emerson made in a lifetime, it is time 
 that all should enjoy the advantage of a pugilistic 
 education. The cultivated and educated lecturer who 
 lectures to empty benches, and who reads of a twenty 
 thousand dollar house greeting two prize fighters in 
 New York or Boston, will be apt to hunt for a 
 teacher of boxing instead of a lecture bureau. Box- 
 Ing is at the head of the procession now. 
 
TROUBLES OF A BB1DAL PAKTY. 15 
 
 TKOUBLES OF A BKIDAL PARTY. 
 
 SAY, what kind of a hotel do you keep?" said a 
 green looking man, as he stepped up to the counter 
 and registered his name, and added " and wife " after 
 it. " Can a new married couple settle down here for 
 two or three days, and have a quiet visit with each 
 other, and not be scared out of their boots ? " 
 
 The hotel man said they could go right to their 
 room and stay there three days or three weeks, and 
 never come to their meals if they didn t want any 
 thing to eat. "But what is the matter? Have you 
 been annoyed ? " asked the hotel man. 
 
 "Annoyed ! That don t express it. We were mar 
 ried day before yesterday, at St. Paul, and went to a 
 hotel. I live about sixty miles west of St. Paul, and 
 the traveling men put up a job to make me tired. 
 There Avere about a hundred of them snowed in at St. 
 Paul, and I ll be darned if they didn t keep us awake 
 all night. They knew we were a bridal couple, and 
 they bribed the bell boys and porters to let them act 
 lor them, and when we rung the bell for the bell boy, 
 a drummer for a Chicago cigar factory came in and 
 wanted to know what was wanted. I ordered a 
 pitcher of ice water, and a Milwaukee drummer for 
 a grocery house brought it in, and he looked at my 
 wife, who was bashful and made her feel real bad. I 
 didn t know they were drummers until the next day, 
 or I should have killed some of them. I rung the bell 
 for coal, and a traveling man who posts railroad cards 
 around, and works up excursions, he came in and fixed 
 
16 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 the fire, and he stayed and poked it for half an hour, 
 and he had more gall than I ever see. He asked so 
 many questions about how long we had been married, 
 that I wanted to thump him, but my wife said we 
 didn t want to have no row the first day we were 
 married. I rung for a chamber-maid to clean up the 
 room and bring some towels, and it was about half an 
 hour before she came, and I went down to the office 
 to see about my trunk, and the chamber-maid stayed 
 about half an hour, and was very interesting and my 
 wife said she was a real pleasant, affectionate sort of 
 a creature, far above her station, and I tell you I was 
 mad when I found out that it was a smooth faced, 
 handsome young Jewish drummer for a Milwaukee 
 clothing house, who was in with the gang, and he 
 gave the chamber-maid three dollars to loan him an 
 old dress so he could play chamber-maid. When my 
 wife told me that the he-chamber-maid patted her on 
 the cheek, and said she was the sweetest bride that was 
 ever in the hotel, and asked for a kiss, and my wife 
 said she thought it would be no harm to kiss a poor 
 chamber-maid, and encourage her, I wanted to kill 
 him, and I went down to the office the next morning, 
 but the smooth faced cuss had gone to Fargo. It was 
 all the landlord could do to hold me. Well, while we 
 were at supper somebody got into the room and put 
 cracker crumbs in our bed, and we found a cold oil 
 cloth floor mat over the top sheet, enough to freeze 
 anybody. But the worst was at night. We had just 
 got comfortably in bed when there was a knock at the 
 door, and I got up, and the watchman was there, and 
 he said he wanted to point out to me the fire escape, 
 
TBOTJBLES OF A BKIDAL PARTY; 17 
 
 so I could get out in case of fire, and I went out into 
 the hall and he took me way out to the end of the 
 building to show it to me, and while I was looking out 
 of the window my wife came running down the hall 
 and begging me to save her. I asked her what was 
 the matter and she said as soon as I went out a man 
 that looked like a porter, came in the room and told 
 her to fly, and save herself, and to follow her husband. 
 She felt awful when she found there was no trouble, 
 and we got back into our room half froze. I have got 
 them fellows down fine. 
 
 The fellow who called me out to look at the fire 
 escape, is a drummer for a Philadelphia millinery 
 house, and the one that scared my wife out of her wits 
 travels for a hearse factory at Bochester, 1ST. Y. My 
 wife says she would know him, because he has a big 
 gray moustache, and wears a diamond collar button in 
 his shirt. She said she thought he was pretty stylish 
 for a porter, at the time. They woke us up several 
 times in the night, to tell us what to do in case we were 
 sick, and in the morning, before we were up, a waiter 
 brought up our breakfast. He said the landlord sent 
 it up, and he just stood around until we had to sit up 
 ap in bed and eat breakfast. I thought at the time 
 that it was kind in the landlord to send up our break 
 fast, but when I found that the waiter who brought it 
 up was a traveling man for a reaper factory at Kftck- 
 ford, and remembered how darned impudent he looked 
 at my wife, I could have murdered him, but the clerk 
 said he had gone to Winnipeg. It was just about as 
 bad coming down here on the sleeping car, and I think 
 half the passengers on the car were those same drum- 
 2 
 
18 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 mers that were snowed in. It was colder than Alaska, 
 and I would order extra blankets, and they would steal 
 them. I had more than twenty blankets put on the 
 bed, and in the morning there was nothing but a sheet 
 over us. And every time there was a blanket spread 
 over us there was a different porter put it on, and J 
 think they were all traveling men. Every little while 
 somebody would pull open the curtains and sit down 
 on my berth and begin to pull off his boots, and I 
 would tell him the berth was occupied, and that he 
 must have made a mistake, and he would look round 
 at us as innocent as could be, and ask our pardon and 
 then go out and damn the porter. Once I felt some 
 body feeling about my berth and I asked what was the 
 matter, and the fellow said he was looking for my 
 wife s shoes to black. Then about every fifteen 
 minutes the conductor would open the curtains and 
 hold a red lantern in and ask for our tickets. I think 
 they punched my ticket sixty-five times. Any way 
 it looked like a porous plaster when I got up in the 
 morning. I think it was the traveling men who were 
 playing conductor, but I was sleepy, and I thought the 
 best way was to let them punch it. Well, about three 
 o clock in the morning somebody punched us and said 
 it was time to get up, as all the passengers were up, 
 and we would have breakfast in fifteen minutes. And 
 hen we hustled around and got dressed the best we 
 could, laying on our backs, and kicking our clothes up 
 m the air and catching them on ourselves when they 
 came down. I got my pants on wrong side before, 
 and lost everything out of my pockets, and my wife 
 lost her hair, and had to tie a handkerchief around her 
 
BREAKING UP A SCHOOL. 19 
 
 head, and then we had our berths made up and sat up 
 till daylight, and the porter found my wife s hair and 
 pinned it to the curtains of a berth occupied by a 
 preacher from Oshkosh, and he kicked, and got mad, 
 and talked about it, and wondered how it came there, 
 and he swore about it, and I think he travels for an 
 Oshkosh carriage factory. O, I never had such a 
 night, or two such nights, in all my life, and what I 
 want to know is, if I can be quiet here, and get a little 
 sleep, and not be annoyed." The hotel man told him 
 if anybody came around to bother him, to knock them 
 clear down stairs, and he would be responsible, and 
 the bridegroom took his satchel and his wife, and the 
 colored man showed them a room, and they have not 
 showed up since. It is confounded mean in traveling 
 men to get snowed in and form a syndicate to have 
 fun. They will cause themselves to be disliked if they 
 keep on. 
 
 BREAKING UP A SCHOOL. 
 
 WE see by the dispatches that two boys at Cum 
 berland, Ohio, attempted to whip a school 
 teacher, and the teacher stabbed both the boys, kill 
 ing one instantly and fatally wounding the other. 
 There is probably no position that has more annoy 
 ances than teaching a country school, where there 
 is a lot of big boys who seem bent on mischief, 
 and whose highest ambition is to whip the teacher, 
 and turn him out doors. Occasionally there is a school 
 that becomes so hard that no man will attempt to 
 
20 
 
 teach it, unless he is a prize fighter, and then he 
 does not know anything but to fight. Sometimes 
 the appointment of a beautiful and accomplished 
 young lady as teacher of a hard school will have 
 a good effect, as she may be able to win the Dig 
 boys by kindness. We were won that way once, and 
 it would have been all right, only another big boy, 
 who wanted to be won also, got jealous and hit us 
 in the ear with a pair of skates. We remember of 
 attending one school that was about as hard as could 
 be. There were five or six boys that made it a point 
 to see that no teacher remained in the school a full 
 term. They would do something mean and get him 
 to whip them, and then they would all jump on him, 
 and throw him outdoors, and he would leave. Most 
 people look on such boys as pretty hard characters, 
 but the rest of us, who wanted school to be closed 
 when skating was good, looked upon them as heroes, 
 and we all wanted to join the gang. One winter the 
 teacher was locked out doors and hit with a frozen 
 snow ball, and stood on his head and had water poured 
 down his trousers, and he resigned and went to driv 
 ing team at a sawmill. He said he had got all the 
 teaching school he wanted, anyway. It was early 
 in the winter term, and the trustees flew around for 
 two weeks before they found a man to take the job. 
 It was splendid skating, and all the scholars had a 
 good time, and there was great regret expressed, as 
 we remember it, when it was given out in church 
 Sunday that school would open on Monday morning. 
 After the evening services the boys got together and 
 talked it over, and decided to give the new teacher 
 
BREAKING UP A SCHOOL. 21 
 
 a week. It had been thawing for a day or two, and 
 the boys were tired of skating, so they thought they 
 could afford to spend a week educating themselves, 
 and so they gave him a week. On that evening we 
 were duly elected a member of the class of hard 
 citizens, and we were to open the ball, and do some 
 thing bad, get him to lick us, and then the boys were 
 to jump in and help. 
 
 Monday morning the school commenced, and the 
 teacher proved to be a sickly looking, slim sort of a 
 fellow, a timid, nervous man, with a hand and face 
 like a girl. Every time he looked at one of the boys 
 there seemed to be an expression on his face as though 
 he would say, " I hope you will be good." When he 
 had anything to say to the scholars he said " please," 
 and gave other evidences of being pretty soft, we all 
 thought. That morning the weather changed and it 
 froze hard, and at recess the boys got together and said 
 we would wind up the school before noon, and go out 
 on the ice. It was our turn to be bad, and it com 
 menced right off. The big boys had to carry in the 
 wood, and lay it down quietly by the stove. We took 
 in an armful and dropped it on the floor so that it 
 shook the building, and loosened the stove-pipe. The 
 pipe came out of the chimney, and filled the room with 
 smoke, but it was put back, and the slim, sickly teacher 
 only reprimanded us, and said that it must not occur 
 again. We just ached to go after some more wood, 
 but there was no opportunity. Pretty soon the teacher 
 said we might go and get a pail of water, and while at 
 the well we decided to stumble on entering the school 
 room, and spill the water all over the floor, and thus 
 
PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 give the sickly looking teacher a chance to show what 
 he was made of. The teacher was near the stove, and 
 we stumbled, the water went all over everything, wet 
 ting his boots, making him pretty mad. In sizing him 
 up we had not noticed before that his eyes were black 
 as coals, and that he seemed to be about eight feet 
 high, but as he looked at us we could see it plainly. 
 He seemed to read our thoughts, and knew it was done 
 on purpose, and we have always thought he heard the 
 boys talking it over at recess. Anyway, he jumped 
 clear across the room, grabbed us by the neck and sat 
 us down in the water, then he lifted us up and shook us 
 so the teeth rattled, then he seemed to grab us all over 
 and just maul us. We got a chance, once or twice, to 
 look around to the back seats, as he was revolving us 
 around on our own axis, to see if the other boys were 
 coming to help us put him out doors, but they were 
 the most studious lot of big boys we ever saw. They 
 had their heads down in their books, and their lips 
 were moving in silent prayer. After the teacher had 
 mopped the floor with us, he took us by the slack of the 
 pants, just as a dog would carry a duck, and went to 
 his desk and got a big hickory ruler, and proceeded to 
 dry our pants. Well, it was the meanest way ,o dry 
 pants that ever was, and while it dried them well 
 enough, it left great ridges inside of them, that made 
 a corrugated chair almost a necessity. The boys did 
 not fulfill their part of the programme, and when the 
 teacher got through drying our pants and said, " Please 
 return to your seat," we felt as though his politeness 
 was a perfect sham. We looked at the boys as we 
 went to our seat, but they never looked up. We have 
 
"HE TOOK lift BY THK SLACK OF THE PANTS, JUST AS A DO0 
 WOULD CARtY A DUCK." 
 
BREAKING UP A SCHOOL. 25 
 
 witnessed contested seats in the legislature, since, but 
 never saw one that was so exciting as that one in the 
 old white school house at the foot of the hill. The 
 teacher never spoke during the proceedings, and when 
 it was over, he looked even paler and more sickly than 
 when he had one hand in the hair that once grew where 
 we are now bald, while the other was at work in the 
 vineyard, But none of the boys seemed to care to 
 pitch on to a sick man, and he taught that school two 
 terms, and never had to whip another boy. There was 
 something so impressive about every movement of the 
 delicate looking teacher, that the boys got to feeling 
 sorry for him, and they treated him real well. If they 
 didn t, he would have everlastingly paralyzed the whole 
 gang all at once. After that, one day, the big black 
 smith of the town was on a drunk, and everybody was 
 afraid of him, but when the blacksmith insulted the 
 teacher, in front of a store, and the teacher reached 
 out one of those small hands and knocked the black 
 smith down, and thea held him up and knocked him 
 down again, and told the blacksmith, who was in a 
 habit of whipping his wife when drunk, that if he ever 
 did it again he would come to his house and thresh 
 him within an inch of his life, everybody swore by the 
 teacher, and he never had any trouble again. That 
 was the last school we ever broke up. The slim, sickly 
 teacher is an old man now, living quietly in this state, 
 with children as old as we are, and we occasionally see 
 him, and ask him if he remembers how we broke up 
 the school. He is feeble now, and walks with a cane, 
 but if we had to have a fight with him, even now, we 
 Vould hire a man to do it. 
 
26 PECK S BOSS BOOS* 
 
 JOUSTING A BAOT). 
 
 A MAOTJFACTOKY of brass band instruments 
 -JL W as burned a few days ago at Elkhart, Ind. 
 Whether this is a dispensation of divine providence, or 
 only an act of the populace is not known. If one 
 could figure up the annoyance caused to innocent peo 
 ple by every brass horn manufactured, while the opera 
 tor of the horn is learning to play, there would be no 
 wonder that the factory burned. A brass band, com 
 posed of good players is a thing all enjoy, but the 
 playing of a single horn, by a new beginner, is about 
 the most mournful and nerve-shattering experience 
 that the world can produce, if we except a base ball 
 nine composed of cats, practicing in the night. It 
 beats all how few persons who begin to play a horn, 
 hold out faithful to the end, and eventually become 
 members of a band. There is a time in the life of 
 every young man when he has an ambition to belong 
 to a brass band, and he never rests contented until he 
 has borrowed, or owns, a brass horn. A boy goes to 
 a county fair and sees a band, hired from a neighbor 
 ing town, and each member of the band is a hero in 
 the eyes of the boy. He sees the blue coats, with gold 
 lace, the epaulets, the cap with its musical front piece, 
 and the yellow stripe down the trousers, and he is 
 mashed on the band, and he resolves to learn to play a 
 horn. He sees the fellow that blows the trombone, 
 flirting with the girl he took to the fair, and she seem? 
 to enjoy the distinction, the iron enters his soul, and 
 
JOINING A BAND. 27 
 
 *ie resolves to become a blower too, and take revenge 
 on his girl by mashing other girls. He sees the crowd 
 collect around the band stand as the band plays a tune, 
 and notices the snare drummer cock his hat over on 
 one side of his head, and look at all the girls, and the 
 young man is almost inclined to learn to play the drum 
 instead of the horn, as he argues that playing the drum 
 gives one a better opportunity to look around, but 
 when he reflects that it only takes muscle to play the 
 drum, and that it requires brain, and wind, to play a 
 horn, he decides on a horn. And when the band is 
 marched off to the dining hall, at the fair, and given a 
 place at the head of the table, near the orator of the 
 day, who has his oration in his pocket, and is afraid he 
 will lose it, and sees the crowd collect around the 
 band, his mind is made up more firmly than ever to 
 learn to play a horn. He goes home and dreams of 
 the band, and the next day he goes to work and sells 
 a calf, or takes some of the money he earned harvest 
 ing, and buys a brass horn and a book of notes that he 
 does not know the name of. He has been to singing 
 school, and can read singing notes, but horn notes are 
 too rich for his blood. 
 
 He does not tell his family what he has done, but 
 smuggles his horn into the barn, and when he has got 
 the milking done, and fed the stock, he goes out to the 
 barn and gets into the hay mow, and feels of the keys. 
 He finally musters up courage to blow gently into the 
 horn, and he hears a noise that is a cross between the 
 squeal of a pig caught under a gate, and the bellow of 
 a cow that smells blood and paws the turf, and looks 
 sassy in the pasture. He blows gently until he has got 
 
28 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 so he can make a straight noise that does not split up 
 the back and go out of the instrument both ways, and 
 the folks in the house begin to hear it. Then he con 
 cludes that he will see how much the ii strument will 
 stand, and he draws in his breath and blows for all 
 that is out, and as the discordant "bla-a-t" goes out 
 upon the stilling air of the hay mow, and he feels a 
 sensation at the butt of the ears that makes him think 
 a mule has kicked him, he hears the horses down stairs 
 kicking in the stalls, and the cows are lowing as 
 though they had heard bad news, and the faithful 
 dog that he left out doors begins to howl as though 
 there was going to be a death in the family. Then 
 the beginner begins to realize that he is making a sen 
 sation, and he looks out of a crack in the barn toward 
 the house, and he sees his mother standing on the 
 porch with her apron over her head looking at the 
 barn as though it was on fire ; the hired man, who is 
 pumping water, stops with the pump handle in the air ; 
 and he sees his father, in his shirt sleeves, pick up ai) 
 ax handle and start for the barn, spitting on his hands, 
 and looking savage. He sees a neighbor, who was 
 driving by, stop his team in front of the house and ask 
 if there is anybody sick, and he realizes that it is 
 impossible to keep his secret longer, and he comes 
 down out of the hay now, with his brass horn under 
 his arm, as sheepish as though he had been caught 
 kissing the hired girl, and confesses to his outraged 
 family that he is learning to play a horn so he can 
 join the band. His father tells him that he is a blasted 
 fool, but his mother and sister take his part, and argue 
 that it will be a great honor to have him wear briga- 
 
THE GUITAR PERIOD. 29 
 
 dier-general clothes in the band, and the matter is 
 compromised by allowing him to practice on his horn 
 out in the south lot ; and for a week or two, at inter 
 vals, mournful sounds are heard from that direction, 
 and then they suddenly cease, and when his father 
 finally asks the boy how he is progressing as a hornist, 
 he tells his parent that he has traded off his horn for a 
 fiddle or an accordeon, and explains, by showing his 
 upper lip, which is swelled up to twice its natural size, 
 that he is not cut out for playing a wind instrument. 
 That horn will be traded all over the neighborhood, 
 and will finally be found in a garret, jammed out of 
 shape, and the brass band fever will have passed away. 
 Among the greatest failures of the world, there are 
 none that are sadder than the failure of a boy to learn 
 to play a brass horn. 
 
 THE GUITAE PEEIOD. 
 
 is a time in the life of every boy when he 
 is taken with the fever to learn to play the 
 guitar. The fever comes on about the time that he 
 first falls in love, and that is at the age of fourteen or 
 fifteeen. He may think he is in love at twelve years 
 of age, but that is only a symptom. At fourteen, he 
 is in love to such an extent that it actually makes him 
 tired to carry it around. He has been reading novels 
 in which there is always a Spaniard, or an Italian 
 lover, dressed in fantastic costume, who takes a guitar 
 3Jid goes to serenade the girl in the novel, and she 
 
30 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 comes to the window and throws a kiss at the lover, 
 and then comes down herself, and they lallygag on the 
 grass and talk foreign love and catch cold; and the 
 boy thinks that is about the finest scheme that he ever 
 read of, and he decides to obtain a guitar. It is some 
 days before he can muster up courage enough to speak 
 to his mother about buying a guitar, and he wouldn t 
 dare to speak to his father about it. His mother has 
 noticed that he has not seemed well lately, and as she 
 has watched him moping around and sighing, she has 
 felt that he is having his young li^e sapped away by 
 study, or that worms are feeding on his damask stom 
 ach. The old man, who has been there, knows that 
 the kid is in love, and his recipe would be weeding 
 onions, or carrying in coal; but the good mother s 
 tender heart is touched, and she consents to the guitar 
 scheme, and shortly afterward there is a weird, ghostly 
 rfound coming from the attic that is a cross between 
 the aeolian music of a breeze sighing through a wire 
 window screen, and a couple of cats tuning up for a 
 gooseberry bush symphony in E-flat, with boot-jack 
 bouquets. The boy thumbs the strings of the guitar 
 in silence, when his father is not around, and dreams 
 of the time when he can play an accompaniment to a 
 love song, and put on a velvet jacket, trimmed with 
 gold lace, a wide sombrero, and go to the house of his 
 girl and warble through the black moustache which he 
 is sure will soon put in an appearance on his lip. O, 
 how he suffers, as he thumbs the strings and fails to 
 detect the first principles of a tune ; but how patiently 
 he works. He keeps it up until he wears the skin off 
 his fingers, about which time he is surprised by his 
 
THE GUITAR PEEIOD. 31 
 
 father, who follows up the strange, weird sound, and 
 takes the boy by the neck, and in two minutes shakes 
 tne iove all out of him, and sets him at work mowing 
 away hay in the barn. There is no one thing that will 
 take the incipient fourteen-year-old love out of a boy 
 like mowing away hay in a barn. He does not have 
 time to dream of the Spaniard with the guitar, and the 
 beautiful girl at the casement, dressed in flowing robes, 
 and her hair gathered in a blue ribbon. He has tc 
 pitch hay or be covered up, and so he pitches hay. 
 
 The guitar period is one of the most critical periods 
 in the life of a boy. If he succeeds in learning to play 
 a tune, and his voice becomes trained to such an extent 
 that he can sing without being frightened at the noise, 
 then he is gone. From that out he becomes a dude, 
 whose sole ambition is to be called upon to sing ; and 
 he will try to look sweet, and will sing love songs at 
 private parties, with his hand in his bosom, and think 
 the ladies all yearn for him, when they feel as though 
 they would like to take him across their knees, and 
 caress him with a press-board. He will be no good on 
 earth, and will haunt music-stores, and have no ambi 
 tion but to go to some place where there is to be music, 
 and where he will be called upon to " favor the com 
 pany." He becomes the laughing-stock of his friends, 
 his parents are ashamed of him, and his voice become* 
 his sole care, and he never amounts to a row of pins, 
 When a boy arrives a the guitar period, and begins ta 
 go around as though he was too weak to walk and too- 
 lazy to eat, and crawls oif to read novels, and sighs 
 when his mother looks lovingly at him, then is the time 
 to wake him up, and the father is the Qnly one to do 
 
32 
 
 it. It has got to be done right away, or it will be ever 
 lastingly too late, for every day that the fever is 
 allowed to remain in his system makes it harder to 
 break it up. Some fathers can talk a boy out of the 
 guitar disease, and show him that he is liable to grad 
 uate as a dude, and some try the method of shaking. 
 One man was very successful with his boy, by follow 
 ing him to the attic and catching him in the act of 
 fumbling the guitar, and taking him by the collar with 
 one hand, and the guitar by the neck with the other, and 
 Vrearing up the guitar over the lower level of the boy s 
 spine, and sending the boy out in the pasture to wean 
 a calf and teach it to drink out of a pail ; but that 
 always seemed a little harsh, as we had to pay for the 
 guitar in installments afterward, and the mother of 
 the calf drove us over a fence real spry. However, a 
 boy wants to be attended to at the guitar *period, and 
 shown the folly of it, or he will hate himself forever 
 after. When parents find it coming on, they should 
 consult each other, and take prompt action, or the boy 
 that is their pride will go through life singing through 
 his nose, " Odly a Padsy Blossom," or " O Cub, O Cub, 
 with Be, the Bood is Beebing." 
 
 AKTHUB S BLISTEEED NOSE. 
 
 the most trying experience President 
 Arthur has had since he has filled the executive 
 chair, was in entertaining a delegation from a BostoD 
 temperance alliance, on his return from Florida. The 
 
ABTHUB B BUBTEBED Noes. 89 
 
 delegation consisted of hall a dozen dried-up men with 
 blue spectacles and umbrellas, and several ancient 
 females who looked as though they never could endure 
 a man who touched or tasted any intoxicating bever 
 age. They had an appointment to meet the President, 
 to talk with him about the cause of temperance, which 
 was dear to their hearts. He was just back from his 
 fishing excursion, and as he pnt some cold cream on a 
 place on his nose where the skin had come off, pre 
 paratory to going into the Blue Room to meet the 
 delegation, his servant said to him, " Mr. President, I 
 had rather you would meet any other delegation on 
 earth than this temperance crowd. They have come 
 to size you up, and see if the reports that you steam it 
 too much are true, and your nose and face is a dead 
 give away. None of the delegation probably ever 
 went fishing, and it will be hard to convince them that 
 the blisters and sunburn is not the result of looking 
 upon the wine. Now, the first thing you do, when you 
 meet them, you apologize for your appearance, and 
 talk about fishing in the hot sun, and all that." 
 
 The President felt a little nervous, but, after throw 
 ing his cigar-stub away, he went into the room where 
 the delegation wa~, looking like a boiled lobster. The 
 delegation was drawn up in line, and every eye was on 
 his nose. The leader made a few remarks on the object 
 of their visit, and while he was speaking the women 
 looked at each other, as much as to say, " I told you 
 so," "What a disgusting exhibition," etc., and the 
 President blushed until you could touch a match to his 
 face anywhere. When the leader tad concluded, the 
 President said: 
 8 
 
34 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 " Ladies and gentlemen, glad as I am to see so dis 
 tinguished a party, I must apologize for my appearance. 
 The fact of it is, a few of us have been indulging in a 
 little " 
 
 "Don t apologize, Mr. President," said a vinegar- 
 faced female. " We can readily take in the situation 
 by your face. It is a duty we owe to ourselves and the 
 country to reason witi. you. Strong drink is the bane 
 of our land. Oh, why, why will men put a serpent in 
 their mouths to steal away - " 
 
 " But, excuse me, madam," said the President, inter 
 rupting the female, "you are mistaken. The direct 
 cause of this sanguinary appearance of my face and 
 nose, is owing to a little recreation," and he rubbed 
 his nose with his finger to see if any more skin was 
 loose. " Chandler and a lot of us who had been bot 
 tled up here for many months, decided to imbibe a 
 little of th " 
 
 " I beg pardon," said one of the blue nosed gentle 
 men, " we do not care for any confession as to what 
 you and Chandler imbibed. We feel that a few 
 words from us can do no harm, and while it may seem 
 out of place for private citizens to advise a chief, mag 
 istrate, our position as temperance people makes us 
 bold to ask you to banish the wine cup from your 
 table, and set an example that can safely be followed 
 by the youth of the land." 
 
 During the talk c the blue nosed man the President 
 swallowed a bit of tobacco that had remained in his 
 mouth from his cigar, and began to hiccough. You 
 know how a little tobacco will sometimes cause a man 
 to act as though he was full The President would 
 
35 
 
 almost have given his right hand if the tobacco had 
 been in Hades instead of down his neck, for he could 
 see at the first " hie " that every eye in the delegation 
 was on him, and all believed he was drunk. His face 
 flushed, and he was more embarrassed than he had 
 ever been before in his life. He looked around fo* 
 some one to help him out, but he was alone, except the 
 temperance delegation. Putting his hand over his 
 mouth to hide the hiccough that the wicked tobacco 
 had caused, he said : 
 
 " Imbibing a desire to go fishing, Mr. Chandler and 
 myself visited Florida, and for several days we were 
 exposed to the elements, and became sunburnt, and 
 you (hie) misconstrue my appearance to be the result 
 of (hie) drink. It is not so. It is seldom that 1 
 (hie) drink. This hiccough is the result of swallow 
 ing a bit of tobacco, and is unfortunate in coming at 
 this time. I will weigh well what you have said, and 
 now I bid you (hie) good day," and the President 
 bowed and retired, while the delegation looked about 
 the room, and said to each other that they had wit 
 nessed a sight that would cause the stoutest heart 
 to quail, and they went out of the White House sick 
 at heart. "James," said the President to his servant, 
 when he got to his room, " go to Dr. Bliss and tell him 
 I almost wish I were dead, and I want him to come 
 and attend me. Tell him to bring something that will 
 cure sunburn and blisters on the nose at once, or I am 
 a ruined man"; and as James went out after the doctor 
 the President saturated a handkerchief in some cooling 
 liquid and laid it over his face, and lay upon a lounge 
 and dreamed of the Florida fish and how like blazes 
 
36 PECK S BOSS BOOK= 
 
 they bit, and how the mosquitoes got in their work* 
 and as he dosed off into the land of dreams he could 
 see the air full of female temperance reformers with 
 blue spectacles and umbrellas, and he thought how a 
 good man is sometimes misunderstood. 
 
 DID EVE RECEIVE CALLERS* 
 
 A LADY who received callers on New Year s 
 writes to ^The Sun" for its opinion as to 
 whether Eve furnished her New Year s callers wine or 
 coffee, when they called on her in the Garden of Eden, 
 and what we think about the Adam and Eve business, 
 anyway, as a family to take pattern after. "The Sun" 
 is like a hotel clerk, or a ticket agent always willing 
 to tell all it knows, and do it politely; but such ques 
 tions as the above require too much study in order to 
 give a clear answer. As we understand it, Eve did not 
 make a practice of receiving on New Year s. That is, 
 she didn t have her name and address in the papers, 
 though she remained at home, and didn t hang out 
 a basket for cards, and anybody that called was wel 
 come. The only caller she received on the first of Jan 
 uary of the year one, was a fellow with his hair parted 
 in the middle, and a society smile, and the report of 
 the affair in the society paper the next morning said 
 she set out the best she had in the house, and the affair 
 was the event of the season. She may not have served 
 wine to the devil, though he is alleged to have acted 
 as though he was half-shot when he went away. > It is 
 
DID EVE RECEIVE CALLERS? 87 
 
 certain that the hostess set up the apples anc they 
 may have turned to cider in his stomach; or he may 
 have been drinking Tom and Jerry at a saloon before 
 he started out calling. It is probable that the first 
 thing that Eve s caller said when he got in the parlor, 
 after leaving a pair of last year s arctic overshoes in 
 the hall, and looking at a pair of new ones there that 
 he thought would fit him, was: "Ah! By Jove, you 
 know, I wish you a happy New Year, awfully." And 
 then he laughed and chewed his cane, and Eve kicked 
 her fig-leaf train under the piano, and stepped forward 
 so her satin slippers would show under her dress, and 
 she said : " Thanks. The same to you. You must give 
 me a card." Then, we have no reasonable doubt, 
 th caller, while searching in his pocket for a card, 
 smiled on Eve, and said : " Is Adam making calls 
 to-day?" And when Eve told her caller that Adam 
 was out fishing through a hole in the ice, that settled 
 it. As we interpret the scriptures, the caller waited 
 for Adam to get back, to hear him lie about the fish 
 he had caught, and it being late, the caller remained 
 to supper, and they talked over the apple trade, and 
 the caller, no doubt, gave Adam many points on the 
 apple crop of the year two, and Adam sold short, and 
 when he came to deliver, he had to put up a margin or 
 get off the board of trade, and be sold out. That is the 
 way it looks at this late day. 
 
 Adam and Eve may have been all right in their day, 
 but to copy after them nowadays would not be pop 
 ular. In the first place, they did not have the advan 
 tage of growing up and working for a living, and 
 hewing out their own fortunes. They were created 
 
88 DECK S BOSS BOOR. 
 
 full size to begin on, and set up in business with no 
 effort on their part, and they didn t know anything 
 about bringing up children. As near as we can get at 
 it, Adam was a drinking man, who had rather go out 
 and have a high time, and come rolling home in the 
 morning, than to work the farm, and it is no wonder 
 Cain and Abel turned out to be regular Waukesha 
 roughs, and when we learned that Cain had killed 
 Abel it did not surprise us a bit. It was a standoff 
 which of them should be killed, and Cain got the drop 
 on Abel, and he passed in his chips. If Adam had 
 been any sort of a man, he would have walked in 
 amongst those boys, when they got to quarreling, and 
 took one of them by the collar, and the other by the 
 pants, and wiped the gravel walk, in the Garden with 
 them, and showed them that while they might be 
 pretty healthy boys, they must not think they owned 
 the earth, and all and singular the appurtenances 
 thereunto belonging, or words to that effect. But 
 Adam didn t have any gall. He set them a bad exam 
 ple. His going into that apple speculation, at the 
 instigation of the devil, shows what kind of a man 
 he would be to run a farm at this age of the world. 
 Why, he was a regular sucker, and any patent right 
 man, or lightning-rod peddler, could have sold him a 
 county right, or put up a lightning-rod on his barn, 
 and he would have given them his note for any 
 amount. And Eve was not much better. With her 
 easy-going manner, and lack of decision of character, 
 she would let a book agent or a sewing machine ped 
 dler give her taffy, and she would get mashed on them, 
 and they could sell her anything they had, and she 
 
A MERE BOY OF TWENTY-THREE. 39 
 
 would give them Adam s note. If Eve was living here 
 now, and didn t know any more than she did in the 
 Garden of Eden, a plaster of Paris image peddler could 
 come along and trade her an image of Shakespeare or 
 Guiteau, and get the last pair of pants Adam had. 
 She seemed to be a woman who could not say no, and 
 if she was here now her house would be a picnic for 
 tramps, and agents for the amelioration of the condi 
 tion of the heathen could get her to subscribe the last 
 dollar Adam had. But we should not blame Adam 
 and Eve. They did not have the advantages of society 
 and corsets and tight pants that we have, and we must 
 overlook any errors of judgment on their part. How 
 ever, it is not a bad idea to profit by their errors and 
 lack of experience. If some one would get up a 
 chromo of Adam and Eve in the Garden of Eden, 
 Adam riding a bicycle with quick pants on and a pan 
 cake hat, and Eve with a short dress and clocked 
 stockings and a red parasol, or with roller skates on, 
 we should be better able to realize their loneliness in 
 the Garden of Eden, and cease to wonder that they 
 welcomed the devil when he called. 
 
 A "MERE BOY OF TWENTY-THREE.* 
 
 IT is said that when any one speaks to Mrs. Langtry 
 about her impropriety in being so familiar witb 
 young Gebhardt, she looks surprised, and says : " Why, 
 Freddy is a mere boy. He is only twenty-three years 
 old." We do not desire to give advice where it is not 
 
PECK 8 BOSS BOOK. 
 
 needed, but as an old man we cannot help telling Mrs, 
 Langtry to beware of the American boys of twenty- 
 three. English boys of that age may be mere chil 
 dren that handsome women can use as pets, the same 
 as they would uso poodles, with no serious results. 
 The English boys of twenty three may be puling 
 infants that can be held in the lap, but the American 
 boy of that age is not that kind of a hairpin, and 
 a handsome English woman who presumes upon the 
 youth and innocence of such a child is liable to wake 
 up to a realizing sense, when it is everlastingly too 
 late, that the American youth of twenty-three is 
 endowed with certain inalienable rights, among which 
 is life, liberty, and the pursuit of happiness. Freddy 
 may appear to be, to the untutored mind of an English 
 beauty, a harmless little child, good enough to carry 
 shawls to a matinee, but unacquainted with the wick 
 edness of the world ; but when she learns that Ameri 
 can boys in roundabouts do not permit handsome 
 women to pet them with impunity without showing 
 that they know what is the matter with Hanner, she 
 will keep the twenty-three-year-old American little 
 boy on the other side of the barbed wire fence. We 
 do not blame the lady. She has simply been deceived 
 in the style of the American youth. She has lived all 
 her life where men have become princes before they 
 can say their souls are their own. She has lived where 
 men in the ordinary walks of life think they are in luck 
 if they are allowed to look at a handsome woman, and 
 who never know what it is to love until they are so old 
 that they wear false teeth. She has lived where a boy 
 of twenty-three is not allowed to go in company with- 
 
A MERE BOY OF TWENTY-THREE. 41 
 
 out his mother, and where they do not learn to be truly 
 bad till late in life. In acting as a mother *o young 
 Gebhardt, Mrs. Langtry is taking many chances, and 
 as an old man who knows much of the American 
 youth from experience, we advise her to quit. 
 
 If the English lady only knew of half the damage 
 that has been done by American mere boys of twenty 
 three and under, she w r ould have a care, and would not 
 allow this youth the freedom of her boudoir. We do 
 not know what a boudoir is, but it is something that 
 belongs to a woman, and Freddy is too young to be 
 there. It is none of our business, but as the lady seems 
 to be unsophisticated at least no one knows for certain 
 that she has been sophisticated we deem it a duty to 
 warn her against these boys. It is unsafe to hold this 
 youth in her lap, just as unsafe as it would be to hold 
 a grown person. Because she looks upon him as a 
 mere boy, she may be tempted to let him kiss her, and 
 that w r ould break her all up. American boys of 
 twenty-three kiss so near like grown persons as to 
 deceive the oldest inhabitants, and if he is a represen 
 tative American youth and she allows him privileges 
 far beyond his years, she will find that it is not good 
 for man to be alone with an English beauty. She rnay 
 not believe it, but American mere boys have beerj 
 known to frequent the vicinity of ladies who did not 
 realize that the boys were men to all intents and pur 
 poses, until it has been necessary to call in the neighbors 
 and wake up the old folks, and call the minister up in 
 the night to celebrate nuptiab and there was trouble 
 all around. We mention these things that this lone 
 woman may realize that what appears in America to be 
 
42 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 a " mere boy " may actually turn out to be the oldest 
 kind of a person, full of guile, who plays the fool in 
 buying diamonds for an actress while in his heart there 
 lurks wicked designs upon her peace of mind. The 
 woods are full of them, and as an elderly person who 
 hates to see such innocence placed in an awkward posi 
 tion, we go out of the beaten path and implore this 
 woman, who has such child-like faith in " a mere boy 
 of twenty-three," to compel him to keep on his side of 
 the cutter, and not, under any circumstances, to allow 
 herself to drive the horses while he puts his arm around 
 her sealskin cloak to get his hands warm. Freddy is a 
 bold, bad man, and we would bet on it. He would 
 admit it, himself, privately, we have no doubt. 
 
 TROUBLE ABOUT HEADING A NEWSPAPER. 
 
 A MAN came into the " Sun " office on Tuesday with 
 a black eye, a strip of court plaster across his 
 cheek, one arm in a sling, and as he leaned on a crutch 
 and wiped the perspiration away from around a lump 
 on his forehead, with a red cotton handkerchief, he 
 asked if the editor was in. "We noticed that there was 
 quite a healthy smell of stock-yards about the visitor, 
 but thinking that in his crippled condition we could 
 probably whip him, if worse came to worse, we admit 
 ted that we were in. 
 
 " Well, I want to stop my paper," said he, as he sat 
 down on one edge of a chair, as though it might hurt, 
 
"DIB SHE HOIST? WELL, LOOK AT ME! 
 
TROUBLE ABOUT BEADING A NEWSPAPER. 45 
 
 " Scratch my name right off. You are responsible for 
 my condition. * 
 
 Thinking thtf man might have been taking our 
 advice to deaf men, to always walk on a railroad track 
 if they could find one, we were preparing to scratch 
 him off without any argument, believing that he was a 
 man who knew when he had enough, when he spoke 
 up as folio ws : 
 
 " The amount of it is this. I live out in Jefferson 
 county, and I come in on the new Northwestern road, 
 just to get recreation. I am a farmer, and keep 
 cows. I recently read an article in your paper about 
 a dairymen s convention, where one of the mottoes 
 over the door was, l Treat your cow as you would a 
 lady, and the article said it was contended by our best 
 dairymen that a cow, treated in a polite, gentlemanly 
 manner, as though she was a companion, would give 
 twice as much milk. The plan seemed feasible to me. 
 I had been a hard man with stock, and thought maybe 
 that was one reason my cows always dried up when 
 butter was forty cents a pound, and gave plenty of 
 milk when butter was only worth fifteen cents a pound. 
 I decided to adopt your plan, and treat a cow as I 
 would a lady. I had a brindle cow that never had 
 been very much mashed on me, and I decided to com 
 mence on her, and the next morning after I read your 
 devilish paper, I put on my Sunday suit and a white 
 plug hat that I bought the year Greeley run for Pres 
 ident, and went to the barn to milk. I noticed the old 
 cow seemed to be bashful and frightened, but taking 
 off my hat and bowing politely, I said, Madame, 
 excuse the seeming impropriety of the request, kut will 
 
46 PECK S BOSS BOOR, 
 
 you do me the favor to hoist ? At the same time 1 
 tapped her gently on the flank with my plug hat, and 
 putting the tin pail on the floor under her, 1 sat down 
 on the milking-stool." 
 
 " Did she hoist ? " said we, rather anxious to know 
 how the advice of President Smith, of Sheboygan, the 
 great dairyman, had worked. 
 
 " Did she hoist ? Well, look at me, and see if you 
 think she hoisted. Say, I tell you now in confidence, 
 and I don t want it repeated, but that cow raised right 
 up and kicked me with all four feet, switch 3d me with 
 her tail, and hooked me with both horns, ail at once ; 
 and when I got up out of the bedding in the stall, and 
 dug my hat out of the manger, and the milking-stool 
 out from under me, and began to maul that cow, I 
 forgot all about the proper treatment of horned cattle. 
 Why, she fairly galloped over me, and I never want to 
 read your old paper again." 
 
 We tried to explain to him that the advice did not 
 apply to brindle cows at all, but he hobbled out, the 
 maddest man that ever asked a cow to hoist in diplo 
 matic language. 
 
 WHO WILL FIX THIS? 
 
 A LADY in St. Louis, who recently lost a child, and 
 who vainly pleaded with the authorities of the 
 church near her residence not to ring the bell on a Sun 
 day morning when her little darling was so sick, wants 
 to know if we don t think people would go to church 
 
WHO WILL FIX THIS? 47 
 
 on time just as well if no bells were rung. Well, yes, 
 we believe they would, if they wanted to. When the 
 same people go to a theater, no bell is rung, and they 
 get there before the curtain rises with remarkable reg 
 ularity. No bell is rung to call these church members 
 to their business, and yet they appear regularly at the 
 appointed time. No be. 1 ! is rung to tell them that din 
 ner is to be served, and yet they all start in time to 
 get there before it gets cold. If a sociable is to take 
 place, and it is known that the lunch will be served at 
 eight o clock, they all get there before the first plate 
 of oyster soup, or the first dish of ice cream, is served, 
 and the church bell does not ring for a sociable. When 
 the doors of a circus are advertised to be open at two 
 o clock we ba Tr e noticed that no church member conies 
 straggling in after the clown has sung his song, and 
 yet the bells do not ring for a circus. We cannot 
 account for the necessity of ringing a church bell that 
 often frightens sick persons into convulsions. 
 
 But there are so many things in the world that 
 nobody can account for. Who can account for the 
 fact that a dizzy actress can get a thousand dollars a 
 week for repeating lines that another person has writ 
 ten, when the scholarly, eloquent divine, whose life has 
 been passed in study, cannot draw a house big enough 
 to pay him a frugal living. Who can account for the 
 fact that a girl who can kick high is able to draw fivft 
 hundred dollars a week, while the good woman who 
 goes about as a missionary, reforming the vicious, is 
 thrown a quarter to get rid of her, often by the same 
 men who pay a dollar toward the salary of the high 
 kicker. It is hard to account for the fact that a horse 
 
48 f ECK^S BOBS BOOR. 
 
 race will clear a thousand dollars in one day, while a 
 church fair, which should be patronized by thousands, 
 figures up about enough, after a week s hard work, to 
 pay for a dressing-gown for the minister. There is 
 something terribly wrong about this world, but we 
 can t untangle it. If we had our way, the prize-fighters 
 should play to houses smaller than the prayer-meetings, 
 and the ministers should preach to full houses at a 
 dollar a head, tickets sold at the box-office, and it 
 would be necessary to hang out a sign, "Standing 
 room only," and no bell should ring to call the audi 
 ence, and to kill sick babies in an adjoining block. We 
 would have ministers travel in private cars, and nigger 
 shows travel in ordinary passenger coaches. We would 
 have the horse-race just pay expenses, and the church 
 sociable make a barrel of money. But some of the 
 rest of you have got to fix this thing, and average it 
 up. We have tried it and failed. 
 
 A CRICK IN THE BACK. 
 
 A CORRESPONDENT at Council Bluffs, who seems 
 .JLJL to labor under the impression that "The Sun" 
 knows everything, asks what is the cause of a crick in 
 the back, and what is the best remedy for it, and what 
 is a good preventative against it. If there is one thing 
 we know more about than another, it is a crick in the 
 back ; and, on the other hand, if there is one thing we 
 know less about, it is that same crick in the back. 
 That is, we experience its beauties, and know nothing 
 
A CKIGK IN THE BACK. 49 
 
 of its origin and nothing will prevent it when it is 
 due. A man may chop wood, shovel snow, drive a pair 
 of pulling horses, exercise with dumb-bells, go through 
 a gymnasium and try all the appliances for developing 
 muscle, and expect every minute that his back will 
 break, and it will be all right. And yet some day he 
 will be putting on his overcoat, or will reach across his 
 desk for a photograph of his girl, or pick up a paper 
 off the floor, and the crick catches him, and he is as 
 limp as a rag, and suffers horrors for two days ; every 
 breath he draws seems to go right through that crick, 
 When a large, healthy man has a crick in the back, he 
 realizes what a weak, puny thing he is. Before the 
 arrival of the crick he admires himself in the glass 
 before retiring, as he looks at his muscle, and almost 
 wishes somebody would pitch onto him to whip him, 
 when he could wade in and maul the filling out of his 
 antagonist. He often looks up in an impudent manner 
 to a rough, as though he wished for an excuse to thump 
 him; and if a lady was insulted in his presence, he 
 feels that he would make a hero of himself in her 
 defense. He wants something to occur that will give 
 him an opportunity to show that though he is confined 
 to an office, and does no hard work, that he is endowed 
 with Herculean strength, and it would be mighty unsafe 
 for an ordinary man to tackle him. But when the 
 crick is due by schedule time, and shows upon his back, 
 the great, powerful man is a perfect baby, and he is 
 afraid of a child on a handsled. It is then that he 
 hunts up an old revolver and carries it when he goes 
 down town nights, for fear he will be assaulted. Before 
 the crick arrives ho just aches to have sand-baggers 
 
50 
 
 and foot-pads attack him, and as he walks along lie 
 picks out places where he would knock sand baggers 
 down, and in his mind he has them corded up fill along 
 the streets ; but after the crick comes, a living skeleton 
 with a link of sausage could drive him all over town. 
 As to a remedy for a crick in the back, there are 
 several, but none of them seem to do any good. 
 
 The crick goes off of its own accord, after it gets in 
 its work and shows a man that he is only a poor weak 
 creature. Sometimes we think all the crick is for is 
 to take the conceit out of a fellow, and learn him to 
 keep his mouth shut about being a terror on the muscle. 
 A plaster is very good, but they always put it on a few 
 inches above or below the place where the crick is. A 
 crick is very changeable. You know where it is per 
 fectly well, and when you get your back prepared for 
 the bill posting of porous plasters, and try to tell 
 where the crick was last felt, you can t tell to save 
 you. You wiggle around in all kinds of shapes to feel 
 it, so as to tell its location to the friend who is acting 
 as bill sticker, but you can t feel a pain to save you, 
 and you think it is gone, and you conclude to postpone 
 the plaster, but before you get your shirt half on, the 
 crick gives you one ache that makes the hair stand or 
 your bald head, but it seems to be the whole length o\ 
 your back, and you have the plaster put on on genera) 
 principles, about the middle, so it will catch the crick 
 on its up or down trip from the attic to the basement 
 of the spine. A porous plaster ought to be a good 
 short stop to a game of crick in the back, but our 
 experience is that the plaster muffs the crick oftener 
 than it takes it on the fly. There are several different 
 
THE SEA-SICK PRINCESS 
 
 kinds of liniment, each of which is better than the 
 other, but as the crick is usually inside of about three 
 inches of flesh and a couple of inches of bone, a lini 
 ment that is in luck if it gets through the skin is not a 
 very good detective to act as a search warrant for a 
 crick that has so many places of concealment, and is 
 so changeable and migratory. The best doctors will 
 tell you when you go to them with a crick, that you 
 have caught cold, and it has settled all over you, and 
 that if you are careful you will be better when you get 
 over it. There is something very consoling about this, 
 and you pay the bill of the doctor with a feeling that 
 you are glad the bill is not twice as big. The best 
 thing we have ever tried for a crick in the back, is to 
 grunt. That is something anybody can do without 
 assistance, and it is cheap, and if it does not do any 
 good it cannot do any harm. The idea some people 
 have of hiring some one to grunt for them when they 
 have a crick in the back, is an evidence of laziness and 
 dependence. Every person should do his own grunting, 
 and do it well, and when the crick is gone, he will feel 
 that he alone has cured it. If there is anything in this 
 that can benefit our Council Bluff s friend, he can send 
 a registered letter or a post-office order. 
 
 THE SEA-SICK PKINCESS. 
 
 A DISPATCH from Boston says that the Princes* 
 -j~ Louise was greatly weakened by the strain she 
 was compelled to undergo during the tempestuous voy 
 age from Bermuda to Providence. She was sea-sick 
 
52 
 
 all the time, and could not rest a minute. It is sad to 
 think that title and wealth does not exempt the pos 
 sessor from the annoyances that ordinary poor, untitled 
 persons have, when traveling. What does the fact of 
 being the daughter of a queen amount to, if one must 
 hold the top of her head on and lean over the railing 
 of a boat, and "yee-haw" the same as a servant girl, 
 and be deathly sick, and feel as though the ocean is 
 coming up and the princess going down, and vice versa. 
 It seems as though there ought to be something 
 invented that could cure sea-sickness in the royal fam 
 ilies, and the world s great ones ; but probably nothing 
 but taking the stomach out and sending it by express 
 will ever prevent sea-sickness. In sea-sickness, the 
 persons of royal blood realize how little they amount 
 to, and for this reason sea-sickness is a good thing. 
 The king, or the queen, or the princess, who can hire 
 or command somebody to do anything for him or her 
 that is unpleasant, finds when it comes to sea-sickness 
 that they have to take their medicine, and do their 
 own grunting, and their own swearing or praying, as 
 the case may be. When the princess started from Ber 
 muda, and the Bermuda onions, that she had eaten, 
 began to assert their independence and show symptoms 
 of a desire to throw off the yoke of oppression and 
 emerge from their bondage, no doubt she felt as though 
 it was the work of an incendiary, or that she had dis 
 covered a new dynamite plot, and she would have been 
 glad to have delegated her responsibility in the matter 
 to other hands, or stomachs, but the law of nature 
 is the same with princesses as it is with peasants, and 
 though she sucked a lemon with all her royal vigor, it 
 
THE SEA-SICK PRINCESS. 53 
 
 was no go, and the onions obtained their freedom. On 
 land she was the daughter of a queen, and all heads 
 bowed at her bidding ; but as she sat there on a camp 
 stool, with a shawl over her head, her stomach against 
 the railing, and her hands clasping the head that 
 throbbed as though it would split, she had to attend to 
 her own knitting, even as the whale did when Jonah 
 was a cabin passenger in one of the first sea voyages. 
 Poor girl ! How she wished she was home, or dead, 
 or anything for a change. How she wondered, as she 
 loosened her corsets and grasped the rail with both 
 hands, with a convulsive clutch as some former banquet 
 seemed to desire to say a few words on this momentous 
 occasion, how one little number four stomach could 
 contain so much that was of no use on earth. As she 
 gazed into the green water and thought that if she 
 owned it she would plane it down until it was as 
 smooth as a floor, she pictured to herself the Marquis 
 of Lome, playing fifteen ball pool in Boston, and drink 
 ing Canada malt whisky, while she was suffering, and 
 she decided to give him a piece of her mind if she had 
 any peace of mind left, when she met him, for not being 
 present to hold her head, or have a sea-sick duet with 
 her, and then she would have another spasm and want 
 te see tier mother. There was one consolation, and one 
 only, to the princess. The servants were all as sick as 
 she was, except one, and the princess would gladly have 
 exchanged places with the Canadian of obscure birth, 
 who sat placidly crocheting a blue dog, and gazing out 
 upon the beautiful sea in a storm, with no sea-sickness. 
 How the princess envied that girl who was not sick. 
 Her father was a fisherman, and the girl had been out 
 
54 
 
 in many a storm, and her stomach had got so it would 
 stay right side up in any weather, and near her was a 
 daughter of Queen Victoria, who couldn t tell one 
 minute whether she would have her shoes left on her 
 the next. It is sad enough to be a princess under 
 ordinary circumstances, but to be a sea-sick princess, 
 for four long days and nights, is enough to make one 
 sorry. A fortune awaits the man who will invent some 
 thing by which a person can hire somebody to be sea 
 sick. 
 
 THE WEONG LECTTJKEK. 
 
 TDEAYER DAM is one of the greatest places for 
 - jokes that can be found in a day s ride on a pass. 
 The boys are now telling of a diabolical joke that was 
 played on a young man. They have been having a 
 course of lectures there, and the young man has acted 
 on a committee that has taken charge of the lecturers, 
 and has been very efficient. The last lecture was given 
 by Ann Eliza Young, one of the relicts of the late 
 lamented Brigham Young. She was at a hotel, and 
 there was also a lady there who was traveling for a 
 corset factory, taking measures of people and having 
 corsets made that fit better than those sold at the 
 stores. It was the duty of the young man to go to the 
 hotel and take the lecturer to the hall, but the boys put 
 up a job to have the hotel clerk send the young man s 
 card to the room of the corset lady, instead of to the 
 room of Mrs. Young, when he called. 
 In the meantime they had written the corset lady 
 
THE WRONG LECTUBEB. 55 
 
 that a young man who wore corsets wanted one made 
 to measure, and that he would call in the evening. 
 There are so many men that wear corsets that the busi 
 ness-like little woman did not think anything strange 
 of it, and when the card came to her door she told the 
 bell boy to show the gentleman up. The young man 
 went up to the room, thinking he was being ushered 
 into the presence of Brigham s fractional widow. He 
 shook hands with the corset lady, and hoped she was 
 feeling well, and she admitted that she was, because 
 business never was better since she had been on the 
 road. She said it was seldom she was called upon by 
 men, in her line of business, but the few that had pat 
 ronized her house were more than pleased. 
 
 " From your general carriage I should judge you pre 
 fer one that opens at the side," said she, as she looked 
 at his fine, manly frame. Thinking she was speaking 
 of the hack he had lit the door, to take her to the hall, 
 he said: 
 
 " Yes, all the best people here ride in those that open 
 on the side." Finally he said, as he looked at his 
 watch, that it was almost time for her to commence. 
 She said it wouldn t take but two or three minutes. 
 
 "Please remove your coat and vest," said she, as 
 she took up a tape line, and looked around for a pencil. 
 We suppose the cold perspiration stood in great drops 
 on the young man s forehead. He was as honest and 
 square a man as ever lived in Beaver Dam, and never 
 entertained a thought of guile, and it hurt him deeply 
 to have a woman he had never met before act so 
 familiar, and he became weak and faint, and leaned 
 against the mantle. 
 
56 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 fle looked at the "lecturer" as she came toward 
 him with a tape line in one hand, a note book in the 
 other, and a pencil in her mouth, and when she looked 
 up at him with a business look and said, "Take off 
 your coat," he turned pale, his knees trembled, and 
 with a choking voice he said : 
 
 " Stand back, woman, stand back ! You do not know 
 the man you are dealing with. I have always striven 
 to lead a different life, and no woman can assail me 
 with impunity." 
 
 The middle-aged corset canvasser stood back aghast. 
 
 "What on earth is the matter?" said she. 
 
 "Matter enough, madam, when a poor orphan goes 
 to escort a lecturer to the platform, the forum,- ma am, 
 and be met by an order to take off his coat and vest. 
 It is enough to make your late husband, Brigham 
 Young " 
 
 "Sir-r-r!" said the corset-maker, when he got to 
 Brigham, " do you wish to insult me ? Have you come 
 here thinking I am a she Mormon ? I will ring the 
 bell, sir, and have you thrown into the street." 
 
 He told her to be calm ; there was no necessity for 
 that, as he would go if he could get out alive. Finally 
 they both became calm, and he found out she was not 
 Mrs. Young, but a corset dealer, and then both apolo 
 gized, and he went down to the parlor and found the 
 lecturer and introduced himself. Wiping the perspira 
 tion from his face, he asked her if she was sure she was 
 Mrs. Young. She said she was not the old original, 
 but she was one of them, and they started for the 
 carriage. As they rode to the hall, she was astonished 
 to hear him ask, " Mrs. Young, now, honor bright, do I 
 
A WILL OF HIS OWN. 57 
 
 look like a man that wears corsets?" She said she 
 didn t really know, and after the lecture she asked an 
 old gentleman who presided at the meeting what seemed 
 to be the matter with the young man who brought her 
 to the hall. He seemed nervous and ill at ease. The 
 old man said, " Well, Miss Brigham, some thinks it s 
 worms, and some thinks he is cutting teeth, but I guess 
 it is only his voice changing." 
 
 The corset-maker said she never had such a scare in 
 all her life as she did when that young man told her to 
 move another step toward him at the peril of her life. 
 
 A WILL OF HIS OWN. 
 
 ONE of our best local preachers preached a sermon 
 on children and the way to bring them up, and, 
 speaking of the old idea that a stubborn child, or a 
 child with a will of its own, was a nuisance, the elder 
 said : " I wouldn t give a d for a child that had not a 
 will of its own," or words to that effect. It is but 
 justice to say that the good man used the word "dime" 
 where the blank is in the above extract. But the 
 remark is the key-note to the situation. The time has 
 been when a child with a will of its own has been 
 looked upon by the whole neighborhood as a terror, 
 and mothers have sighed and endured sorrow when 
 they have noticed the spirit shown by such a child. 
 But when they, in later years, have looked around and 
 seen that the most successful men and women of the 
 land grew up from children that had wills of their 
 
58 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 own, the sadness and sorrow of the mother has given 
 place to pride. " The Sun " does not like to see chil 
 dren have wills of their own that are so strong that 
 they cannot be controlled by parents, but few children 
 who have the right kind of parents have such wills. 
 Take a child with a will of its own, and guide that will 
 properly, and not knock the backbone out of it with a 
 barrel stave, and the child will grow up to be a success 
 in business. Children with wills of their own may 
 turn out to be pirates or highway robbers, but it will 
 be because parents try to break that will by severe 
 punishment. They may partially break it, but it will 
 assert itself sometime in the wrong way, while if it 
 is guided properly the will may be a mountain of 
 strength. 
 
 The successful men in all branches of business are 
 men who had "wills of their own" in youth. They 
 were not pet children who never said their souls were 
 their own. Such children become he-milliners or dudes. 
 The successful men look with pride upon their children 
 who have wills of their own, because they know by 
 experience that such a will is worth millions in the 
 battle of life. A man who had no mind of his own as 
 a boy may be good enough to carry shawls to a mati 
 nee, or baskets to a picnic, or he may stand on a corner 
 and chew a cane, but he could not build a railroad 
 through a wilderness or across a mountain, and rather 
 than face a panic he would sit down and cry. He 
 could not invent anything, unless it was a patent corset 
 or* a self-fastening hair-pin, while his brother, who had 
 a will of his own, would invent a telephone or a loco 
 motive. The child with a will of his own may be 
 
OWNING THE EARTH. 59 
 
 harder to raise, and he may cause some heart-aches 
 and anxiety, but when that will which was so hard 
 to handle in youth gets hold of a difficult problem of 
 business in later years, and clinches itself around the 
 problem, and begins to squeeze, it will never let up 
 until success is achieved. The stubborn " Be sure you 
 are right and then go ahead" boys are in demand, and 
 are worth their weight in gold, while the milk-and- 
 water, " baby -mine " fellows have to be done up in 
 bunches like radishes, and got rid of in a lump, and 
 half of them turn out to be pithy and no good. If 
 you, good mother, have a child with a will of its own, 
 don t worry about the child, but thank God and bend 
 the will by kindness, and when that child grows up and 
 succeeds where others fail, write us a postal card. All 
 of the successful men in the country had wills of their 
 own, and that was all the capital they had. When we 
 see a child with a will of its own, we always want to 
 take it one side and tell it the good news that the will 
 is more valuable than a rich relative. 
 
 OWNING THE EAETH. 
 
 HOW often we hear men say " I am glad of it," 
 when speaking of some man who has been at the 
 top of the heap politically, socially and financially, and 
 has suddenly dropped. Once in a great while a man 
 says, " I am sorry," but that J s when the man who has 
 fallen was the same kind of a fellow when he was on 
 
60 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 top that he was before he got there. The trouble is 
 that too many men, who go to the front, get the idea 
 that they own the earth, and their old friends get 
 down on them, and they do not make new ones to 
 take the place of the old ones. A ward politician who 
 becomes a congressman, can make no greater mistake 
 than to get too big for his boots when he is elected, 
 and forget his friends, and put on airs. The boys who 
 have made him what he is, talk with each other about 
 him, laugh at his greatness, and never tell him what 
 they think, but some day when he comes up again 
 they slaughter him, and he drops on the political side 
 walk and never knows what hit him, but he knows 
 that he is hurt. Then he tries to smile at his old 
 friends, and slap them on the shoulders, and explain 
 himself, but it is everlastingly too late. What they 
 wanted was to have him remain just the same when he 
 was on top. A man may go along, poor, and be 
 respected and have thousands of friends, and he may 
 suddenly have a fortune left him. The first time he 
 puts on a silk undershirt he changes toward his friends 
 and seems to own the earth. He goes around a block 
 to avoid meeting a friend of the old days, and he looks 
 over them when he meets them. They watch for him 
 to drop, and when he does go through his money, and 
 gets down to the earth again, he finds that the other 
 fellows own some of it, he meets an old friend that he 
 has not noticed for years, and says " Hello, Bill," but 
 BiU does not " hello." Bill has wanted to " hello," for 
 some time, but he didn t receive any encouragement, 
 and now his appetite for " helloing " has left him. If 
 he wants to "hello Bill" he goes off and does it > with 
 
OWNING THE EABTH. 61 
 
 somebody whose head has not got too big for his hat, 
 and the man who has been temporarily at the top of 
 the heap sees that he has made a Beaver Dam fool of 
 himself. 
 
 When a man has been climbing a hill all his life, and 
 slipped back so much that it has made his head swim, 
 but finally, by sticking his toe nails in, gets to the top, 
 he has a right to feel glad, but he wants to be con 
 tented where he is, and not try to fly high. When he 
 gets to the top of the hill he is in a more dangerous 
 place than he was while he was climbing, because from 
 where he stands it is down hill in every direction. Did 
 you ever think of that, boys? Every way you look, 
 when you get up there, it is down hill, and you have 
 got to brace yourself, and not lose your head, or the 
 first thing you know your foot will slip, and you will 
 go down head over appetite. If you have kept your 
 head and your friends, while you were at the top, and 
 those who are still climbing see that you are letting 
 your foot slip, they will try to brace you and keep you 
 up, but if you have made an ass of yourself, and 
 thought that because you had got there that you 
 owned the hill, and have thrown obstacles in the way 
 of the other climbers, and you start to go down, as 
 Josh Billings has said, "All creation seems greased for 
 the occasion," and when you get to going nobody will 
 reach out to save you. It is a good lesson for boys as 
 well as men to learn, that the top of the hill is the 
 most dangerous place, and when they get there they 
 will be the same careful, sensible persons that they 
 were when they were sticking their toe nails in, and 
 puffing. The country is full of late politicians who 
 
PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 would give all they have got, and mortgage all they 
 expect to have, if they had not lost their heads 
 they got to the top of the hill. 
 
 THE DEADLY HOT POTATO. 
 
 IT beats all the number of ways there are to hare 
 fun if a person is constantly on the lookout. There 
 is a young man boarding at a prominent hotel who 
 probably has more quiet fun than anybody. He sees 
 the funny side of everything. You would hardly think 
 there was any fun to be extracted from a hot-baked 
 potato, but our friend gets a dollar s worth of fun out 
 of every hot potato he steals off the table at supper 
 time. When he is ready to leave the table a trained 
 waiter brings the young man a hot-baked potato, red 
 hot right out of the oven, and he goes out of the 
 dining-room with a smile of pious resignation on his 
 face, and the potato in his hand. In two minutes he 
 will have that potato in the pocket of some stranger. 
 The young man will stand off and whistle and wait 
 for the man to put his hand in his pocket, watch the 
 result, and then look pious and go and get a cigar. A 
 spell ago he put a hot potato in the coat-tail pocket of 
 a clerical-looking gentleman who was talking to one of 
 the local clergymen who had called at the hotel, when 
 the man put his hand in his pocket to get a paper he 
 had written on the transmigration of the souL The 
 
THE DEADLY HOT POTATO. 63 
 
 man pulled his hand out quick, forgot all about his 
 soul and turned his attention to the upper leather. 
 When he found that it was a hot potato that had bit 
 him instead of a rattle-snake, the color returned to his 
 face and he seemed resigned, and acted as though 
 praying for strength from on high to enable him to 
 knock the everlasting skillets out of the man who had 
 put it in his pocket. The hot potato young man walked 
 out of the dining-room one evening last week behind a 
 newly-wedded couple from Pentwater, Michigan. 
 
 The bride had a blue velvet basque, with these large 
 pockets on behind, where they put in handkerchiefs, 
 caramels, etc. The pockets are away around on the 
 other side of a person, where the ownei can t see what 
 is going on, and the chance was too good for the hot 
 potato young man, so he dropped his contribution into 
 the bride s pistol-pocket, while her husband was pick 
 ing out a hat from the rack, and the party went to the 
 reception-room and sat down, the bride in a large 
 stuffed chair. The hot potato young man and a lady 
 and gentleman friend, who desired to see how the 
 potato came out, also seated themselves in the room. 
 We suppose, from her build, and the solidity with 
 which she sat down, that the bride mashed the potato 
 in her pocket. You know how all-fired hot a baked 
 potato is when it gets broke in the fracas. The bride 
 looked at her husband as though she loved him so her 
 back fairly ached ; but the gaze of aif ection was soon 
 changed to one of eager expectancy. She moved 
 uneasily in her seat, and finally said to him : 
 " Petty, I believe I am going to be sick." 
 He said he hoped not, so soon, and asked her what 
 
64 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 her symptoms were, and he drew closer, while the 
 spectators tried to look as though it was most time to 
 go to prayer-meeting. 
 
 "O," said the poor bride, as she put her hand 
 around to the southwest, near the pocket, and jerked 
 it away quick, " I feel a strange unrest here. There is 
 a feverish feeling, a burning sensation, as of a pent-up 
 volcano, or a mustard plaster, near the small of my 
 back. Dear, if I die here in this house, you will take 
 me home to Pentwater, won t you, and not marry 
 again ? O, I am burning up with fever. Why did I 
 marry ? " 
 
 The bridegroom said he didn t want to argue the 
 question, and told her they had better go to their 
 room, and as she got up he placed his arm gently 
 around her, and as the hot potato got in its work on 
 his sleeve, he said : 
 
 "Egad, darling, you a/re feverish," and they went 
 along to the elevator and disappeared. 
 
 Of course no one knows what happened when they 
 got to the room and found the hot baked potato in her 
 pistol pocket, but at breakfast the next morning the 
 bride looked as though her back had got over aching, 
 and the bridegroom looked as though he had designs 
 on the life of an innocent colored waiter. 
 
 The hot potato young man took his regular potato 
 to the theater the other night, when the amateurs were 
 playing at the " Winter s Tale." In front of him sat 
 a man from Wausau who sometimes gets a little full 
 when he comes to town. He had gone to the theater 
 thinking the play was going to be something funny, 
 and when he found that it was solemn, and they were 
 
"HE DROPPED THE HOT POTATO. 
 
THE DEADLY HOT POTATO. 67 
 
 trying to saw a rubber baby off onto an innocent real 
 estate agent, the Wausau man went to sleep. He had 
 his arm over the back of the next seat, and the hot 
 potato young man thought it was time to , begin to get 
 in his work before his potato got cold, so when all 
 eyes were upon the pants legs of one of the villains on 
 the stage, which didn t seem to be of the same length, 
 he placed the potato gently into the open hand of the 
 sleeper. You know how natural it is for a person who 
 is half asleep to grasp tightly anything that is put in 
 his hand. Well, the "Wausau man crushed the hot 
 potato in his big hand, and the mealy, steaming mass 
 worked out between his fingers, and he woke up and 
 said one word out loud, as though dreaming of a glori 
 ous immortality beyond the grave, as follows : " Je 
 sus! " And then he shook the potato out of his hand 
 and began to look around. The hot potato young 
 man was looking so intently and sorrowfully at the 
 fearful scenes being enacted on the stage that no sus 
 picion rested on him, but a pretty little fellow sitting 
 near the Wausau man laughed, and the victim leaned 
 over toward him and whispered : 
 
 " If you will step out on the sidewalk I will knock 
 the stuffing out of you in a holy minute," but he 
 wouldn t go out, so after the curtain came down the 
 Wausau man went out to cool his hand by taking a 
 drink, and he didn t come back. With a well regu 
 lated hot potato a man can have plenty of fun if he hag 
 got a solemn countenance. 
 
68 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 JACOB AND RACHEL. 
 
 rjlHERE is a great deal of argument among young 
 and old people as to the propriety of young 
 people making each other s acquaintance without a 
 proper introduction, old people claiming that any 
 acquaintance made without an introduction is improper, 
 while many young people claim that there are times 
 when an acquaintance can be made without the aid of 
 these forms, which is liable to be a valuable one, and 
 lead to much happiness. But such things are looked 
 upon as flirtations by many people. An acquaintance 
 thus formed is often looked upon as productive of no 
 good. Young people cannot be too careful about meet 
 ing strangers, though they should use some judgment 
 and not give themselves away. They have a precedent 
 for getting acquainted, without the aid of outside 
 friends, in the case of Jacob and Rachel, the particu 
 lars of which flirtation can be found in the good book. 
 It is not alleged that Jacob was a masher, like many 
 of the Jakes of the present day, but, according to 
 reports, he captured Rachel quicker than wink. It 
 seems that Jake was at the well of Haran, after water, 
 and Rachel came along with her jug after some water. 
 They had never met before, and yet Jacob was gone 
 the first time she aimed her eyes at him. 
 
 According to scriptural authority, "It came to pass 
 that after he had drawn water at the well of Haran 
 for Rachel, Jacob kissed Rachel and lifted up his voice 
 and wept." What he wept for is not stated, but the best 
 
JACOB AND KACHEL, 69 
 
 of em are apt to be overcome with emotion in trying 
 times. The action of Jacob toward a total stranger, 
 in these days, would subject him and her to comment. 
 Suppose, at one of our summer resorts, a Eachel should 
 go down to the spring for a dose of liquid liver cure, 
 and a young fellow should draw the water for her, and 
 hand it to her, and then kiss her, and begin to cry. 
 They would call a policeman, and the next day, or the 
 day after, when the policeman got around, they would 
 have the crying kisser fired out of the grounds, and 
 Rachel s mother would take her up to the hotel and 
 take her across her knee and box her ears soundly. 
 Probably that was the way they did business in olden 
 times, but it would be a laughable thing to see now 
 days. Suppose a young Jacob and Rachel, strangers 
 to each other, living in adjoining houses in Chicago, 
 should both take tin dippers and go out to the milk 
 wagon for the supply of alleged milk for their respect 
 ive families, and Jacob should take Rachel s dipper and 
 have it whitewashed inside with the stuff the milkman 
 exchanges for tickets, and then the Jacob should kiss 
 the Rachel and lift up his voice and weep. The milkman 
 would faint away and fall off the seat, Rachel would 
 swat Jacob over the head with the dipper of fresco 
 material, people would stop on the streets to see the 
 row, and a policeman would come along and pull both 
 Jacob and Rachel for disorderly conduct, and they 
 would be sentenced to thirty days in the house of cor 
 rection. This shows what a difference there is in the 
 practices of the days of Jacob and Rachel, and now. 
 
 If a. latter-day Jacob wanted to get acquainted with 
 a Racnel, h<e wouldn t stand around a well waiting for 
 
70 PBOK S BOSS BOGK- 
 
 her to come after a jug of water ; neither would he 
 stand at the corner grocery waiting for her to come 
 after two cents worth of yeast, and kiss her and weep. 
 He would raise his pancake hat to her and say, " Pleas 
 ant day for a stwoll, you know, by Jove"; and if she 
 wanted to " stwoll," she would say, " Well, I should 
 assimilate," and that would settle it ; but if she didn t 
 want any foolishness, she would tell him to go and 
 walk a match with himself. There are various theories 
 as to the cause of Jacob s weeping on that occasion. 
 "Whitelaw Keid, of New York, one of the greatest 
 commentators, gives it as his opinion that Rachel had 
 been eating onions, and that when Jake kissed her and 
 got a sniff of the odor, he had to cry. That looks 
 reasonable, but it is more probable that Rachel bit 
 him. Suppose Rachel had not been kissed for several 
 months, and wanted to be kissed real bad. She was a 
 warm-hearted, splendid girl, and when Jake dropped 
 his jug and took her in his arms, there behind the well- 
 curb, where nobody could see them, and was about 
 imprinting the kiss on her mouth, she looked up into 
 his eyes and bit him. She couldn t help it. Rachel 
 should nL>t be blamed for causing Jacob to cry, and 
 evidently he did not blame her, because he married 
 her. Very likely that one kiss that caused him to weep 
 was what settled the business with Jake. Rachel did 
 very wrong, no doubt, in allowing the strange man to 
 kiss her before she had learned his name, or what house 
 he traveled for; but if she needed a kiss at that 
 moment, and promised herself that it should not count, 
 and thai it should not jcoui again, considering hew it 
 turned oat 3 and how happy the} were as long as they 
 
THE DISCREET CONDUCTOR. 71 
 
 Jved, we should not y at this late day, lay it up against 
 RacheL 
 
 However, girls of to-day should be introduced to 
 men, and know what their intentions are, and learn 
 something of their standing in society, before they give 
 them a kiss and cause them to weep. Such things have 
 the appearance of boldness, and are not right. 
 
 THE DISCREET CONDUCTOR. 
 
 " T UNDERSTAND you have made an application 
 
 JL to be placed in charge of a train on another 
 division of the road," said a newspaper man to Con 
 ductor Rumsey, the other evening. " The boys say it 
 is too lively for you up around Waupun. How is it 2 " 
 
 ;< No, sir," says Rumsey, with a mad look on his 
 face ;" it is all a lie. I shall stay on that road as long 
 as they want me, and you fellows want to have your 
 passes with you when you strike my train, or you have 
 to put up. The boys all havo to come down and see 
 me with passes or tickets or money, and don t you 
 make no mistake. You want your thick-soled shoes 
 on, or you get corns." 
 
 " But what was it about some fellow chasing you out 
 of the coach into the baggage-car, and your locking 
 the door and not coming out till the man got off? any 
 truth in that ?" asked the newspaper man, as he took a 
 dgar out of Rumsey s vest pocket and lit it. 
 
 tt Well s you hain t got no gall, either. What you 
 want is to go to a slaughter-house somewhere and get 
 
72 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 some gall 3 " and he looked down at his empty cigz* 
 pocket. " Naw, there didn t anybody scare me. The 
 boys tell everything on me, because I am good-natured, 
 and don t kick. It is because I am not picking a fight 
 all the time. I am no fighter, and I had rather stop a 
 train and build a track around a man that wants to 
 fight than to whip him. Some of these sheriffs and 
 constables that travel around after prisoners, or take 
 them to Waupun, think a conductor is a regular deputy 
 sheriff. I am no Pinkerton. The other day a big, 
 husky fellow opened his coat and showed a star on his 
 vest as big as the ones these Milwaukee aldermen wear, 
 and said to me : * I may want you to help me up the 
 road here a piece. I expect a couple of horse-thieves 
 to get on, and they may be too much for me. I told 
 him I hadn t lost any horse-thief, and when the fuss 
 commenced he could find me turning a back summer 
 sault off the hind end of the train. S pose I am going 
 to pull sand-baggers and horse-thieves for eighty dol 
 lars a month, and have bullets shot into my stomach ? 
 Not much. A sheriff from Nebraska wanted me to lay 
 off one day, and go to Kandolph and help him arrest 
 Polk Wells and his gang, two years ago. You remem 
 ber how everybody got shot full of holes that time. 
 Revolvers just laid right down on the floor and went 
 off themselves. Not any Polk Wells business for me. 
 Some of these sheriffs that take prisoners to Waupun 
 think a conductor is going to sit right down and watch 
 prisoners all the way. A fellow wanted me to hold a 
 big prize-fighter he was taking to Waupun, with hand 
 cuffs on, while he went out at Horicon and got a drink. 
 I told him I guessed not much, Mary Ann, and he saiC 
 
THJt DISCREET CONDUCTOR, 73 
 
 I didn t have any sand. Well, I have got just enough 
 to run my business and collect my fares, and if I want 
 any sand-bagging I will quit railroading and run for 
 constable. Why, they wanted me to stop a train once 
 and go with them to a barn about a mile away from 
 the track and hunt for some prisoners that escaped 
 from the penitentiary. Did I go? Well, I haven t 
 got my memorandum with me, but if I recollect right, 
 I didn t go. Take me for a detective? " 
 
 "Then you rather incline to a quiet life, and had 
 rather get along without any fuss," said the newspaper 
 man, as he asked Kumsey for a match to light the 
 cigar. 
 
 Match ! Well, I guess I better light it for you, and 
 pay you for smoking it. Oh, wait till I catch you on 
 my train without your pass, and I will make up for 
 cigars and matches, lifting you off the platform with 
 leather. Yes, sir, I believe the ugliest man that ever 
 got on a train can be made peaceable by kindness. I 
 had a man on my train one night going up, that 
 always gets drunk on purpose for a row, He has 
 cleaned out lots of trains, and I see he was in for a 
 row. He looked as though he had a hot box when he 
 saw me come in the door, and grated his teeth. He 
 was full, boiling over, and expected to fight to the 
 next station, where he lived, and get off without 
 paying. I went up to him and sat down beside him, 
 and ask a ed him if he had had a good time to-day, and 
 then I pulled out some picture cards that I got in a 
 store here in Milwaukee, and I said, Here, Pat, take 
 these pictures to your little girl at home, and tell her, as 
 she meets you at the door, and throws her arms around 
 
74 
 
 your neck, and kisses you, and says she is glad you 
 come home sober, and that she loves you, and that you 
 are the dearest papa in the world, tell her that old 
 Kumsey sent them to her, with a kiss. "Well, you 
 wouldn t believe it, but before I got half through 
 talking about his little girl, the big tears came to his 
 eyes, and rolled down his red face, and he took them, 
 and thanked me in a choking voice, and said, as he 
 pulled out a five dollar bill, Take my fare out of this, 
 Eumsey, and God bless you. I ll bet that rough 
 fellow s heart was touched, because when he got off 
 at the next station he was sober, and was wiping his 
 eyes on his coat sleeve, and he pointed right straight 
 for home. Oh, a man can get in his work on a rail 
 road train, and never kill a man; if he wants to. I 
 ought to have been a sister of charity instead of a con 
 ductor, I know that, but now I am into it I am going 
 to stick." 
 
 THE GOYEENMEISTT DETECTIVR 
 
 NOT long since the editor of "The Sun" spent an 
 evening with a friend who is a "government 
 detective," a man in the employ of the Post-Office 
 Department, and who travels all over the West at 
 Government expense, and who would seem to have an 
 enviable position one that hundreds of men would be 
 glad to secure. After talking for an hour on the inci 
 dents of his business, we asked him how he liked it. 
 He looked long and earnestly at the wall opposite 
 
THE GOVERNMENT DETIilCTIYB. 75 
 
 where he sat, choked up a little as some recollection 
 came to him, then with a tear in his eye he said: 
 "Well, George, there are some things about it that 
 are pleasant, but there are some that are enough to 
 break a man s heart. If we could shadow train-rob 
 bers entirely men who have no friends, no home asso 
 ciations there would be a certain romance about it 
 that could be enjoyed. But suppose you have a letter 
 containing money stolen from the mails. You report 
 it to the postmaster, and a detective is pttt on. He 
 finds where the letter was probably lost, and has his 
 suspicion of a, certain postmaster or route agent, and 
 that man is shadowed. Decoy letters are sent, and the 
 poor fellow takes one that has money in it money 
 that is marked. Then we have to go for him. We 
 have the evidence before he is arrested, and his convic 
 tion is dead sure, and very likely he breaks down, and 
 confesses the whole thing. The heart-breaking part 
 of the business is going into a quiet home and taking 
 the husband and father and tearing him from the wife 
 and children who do not believe that he is guilty, 
 taking him away from them, knowing that he is 
 doomed to a felon s cell, and that he is disgraced for 
 ever. To have the wife of a man who has just com 
 menced stealing, beg and pray with you to let her 
 husband go, and have her hold up her little baby and 
 ask you, for the baby s sake, to release the father, and 
 to feel little children pulling at the skirts of your coat, 
 crying and pleading, is enough to make a man who 
 has got children of his own go out and club himself 
 But those who lose money must be protected, and a 
 man cannot give up to his feelings, though many times 
 
76 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 I have felt like paying the money out of my own 
 pocket, rather than arrest a man. 
 
 One of the saddest things I ever did was to take a 
 boy who was clerk in a post-office, at night, around his 
 father s house, to the barn, where he had concealed a 
 lot of letters that he had rifled. As we passed the 
 house the father and mother of the boy, who knew 
 nothing of the robbery, were sitting by the fire-light 
 singing some good old Methodist hymns, and we could 
 hear them as we dug under the hay in the barn for the 
 letters, with the boy showing us where they were. 
 Then we had to go in the house and break the news 
 to the old father and mother. As we walked toward 
 the house the voice of the father was lifted up in 
 prayer, and we stood on the steps with uncovered 
 heads, waiting for him to finish the prayer, and it was 
 the saddest scene I ever witnessed. I had the thieving 
 boy, or young man, by the wrist, and as the father 
 asked God to watch over their only child, and keep 
 mm from temptation, and deliver him from evil, the 
 boy trembled all over, and broke down in a flood of 
 tears, and I was not much more composed than he was. 
 I tried to think of some way to get out of going in 
 there, but the boy had papers in his room that we 
 must have, and there was no other way. It is said 
 that government officials seldom die, and never resign, 
 but I swear to you I was willing to die or resign, almost 
 at that moment, when the old gentleman got up from 
 his knees, after the evening prayer, and went over to 
 his dear old wife and reverently kissed her, the mother 
 of my prisoner, on the forehead, and then began to 
 sing, i Nearer, my God, to Thee. I thought of my 
 
JOINING A LODGE, 77 
 
 mother, and of my father, and of my children, and if 
 the boy had skipped out I don t know whether I would 
 have had strength to catch him or not, but he never 
 could have escaped. I will not dwell upon the scene 
 in that house. It haunts me like a nightmare, and I 
 never see a good old father or mother, without won 
 dering if they have not got a boy that is going wrong. 
 Well, George, whatever you do, don t be a govern 
 ment detective," and the officer got up and walked 
 away with his handkerchief to his eyes. 
 
 If every boy in the land who has begun to develop 
 symptoms of speed, and who is taking the first steps 
 toward becoming a thief, could have that picture pre 
 sented to him as the detective presented it, and had 
 the boy any heart left in him, or any sense, he would 
 think of the old folks, or somebody who will be heart 
 broken at his fall, and change his course so quick it 
 would make him dizzy. Don t confound this article 
 with anything funny, because it is far from it. 
 
 JOINING A LODGE, 
 
 A WOMAN who has been married four weeks to a 
 clerk in an agricultural implement agency in a 
 country town, writes to know what " The Sun " thinks 
 about her husband s joining a Masonic or Odd Fellows 
 lodge. She says they have talked it over themselves, 
 and he is twenty-one years old, gets fourteen dollars a 
 week, and they are boarding with her aunt, and they 
 have agreed to leave it to " The Sun," This paper 
 
78 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 does not wish to encourage or discourage any young 
 man from joining any order that he feels it his duty 
 to join ; but the indecision of this young married man 
 is the best evidence in the world that the time has not 
 arrived for him to join a lodge. Lodges are not made 
 any more powerful by the addition of young fellows 
 who have only been married four weeks, and who are 
 boarding with their wives aunts, 
 
 A man can join a lodge when he is twenty-one years 
 old, but lodges are not searching the birth records to 
 see when a man arrives at that age, in order to get 
 him to join. When a man becomes of age, and gets 
 married, he has other duties to perform the first year, 
 which are more important than joining a lodge. Sev 
 eral things are liable to occur that will make the four 
 teen dollar a week look tired without joining a lodge. 
 The girl that the young man has married is liable to 
 want something besides day board. She may want a 
 dress or two, or a hat, and a time may come at least 
 we have known it to come in a great many families 
 when the bride is not as well as could be expected, 
 and the fourteen-dollars-a-week bridegroom has to pay 
 a doctor. She is the only bride he ever had, and she is 
 the dearest bride on earth to him, and the best doctor 
 in town is none too good, and some of the best doctors 
 knock a serious hole in fourteen dollars a week. So it 
 is not best to hurry about joining a lodge. Any well 
 regulated lodge will wait till you get the doctor s bil 
 paid. Then the young bridegroom should begin to 
 think about the time when he does not want to board 
 with his wife s aunt, or anybody else, and he has got 
 to furnish a house out of that fourteen dollars a week, 
 
JOINING A LODGE. 79 
 
 It will take two weeks of that pay to buy a cook-stov3, 
 to say nothing about things to cook, and one week s 
 pay for dining-room table and chairs, and several 
 weeks pay -for a bed-room set. But it is not right to 
 discourage young people by telling of the things they 
 need a great deal more than they do a membership in 
 a lodge. A baby wagon can be bought for about 
 what it would cost to join a lodge, and a young couple 
 always want the best baby wagon that can be bought, 
 the first time they buy one. Of course, the young 
 parent might get trusted for the baby wagon, but it is 
 awful hard to pay for it after the baby has got so it 
 can walk, and the baby wagon is stored away in a 
 pigeon-hole in the attic for future reference, and the 
 parent is almost ashamed to bring a baby wagon out 
 for a second edition before it is paid for. 
 
 So it can be readily seen that joining a lodge is the 
 last thing to be thought of, until the candidate has all 
 these necessaries of life paid for and is not cramped for 
 money. The trouble with many young men who join 
 lodges is that they want to take all the degrees in 
 sight before they have a second shirt to their backs, or 
 their wives have much more clothes than they were 
 married in. They see men who have taken degrees 
 above them, and they want to get there, and it takes 
 money. After a man has got a home to shelter him 
 and his wife and little ones, and he feels comparatively 
 at ease financially, and his children are not barefooted, 
 and their pants out at the knees, and vice versa, " The 
 Sun " would not discourage such a person from joining 
 a lodge, if he felt like it ; and after he joins, if he can 
 afford it, he is at liberty to take a thousand degrees, 
 
80 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 but as long as he owes every man that will trust him, 
 and hasn t got credit enough to buy a sack of flour, 
 and his family is pinched for the necessaries of life, if 
 he yearns for expensive degrees they ought to be 
 driven into him with a club. The young wife who 
 writes to "The Sun" for advice as to her husband s 
 joining a few lodges can gather from these few casual 
 remarks that it is deemed wise to postpone the goat 
 cavalry business till next year. 
 
 ELECTRICITY THE WORST WAY. 
 
 GENTLEMEN who were walking on Wisconsin 
 street on Monday were surprised to see two nice 
 old gentlemen meet and glare at each other, and to see 
 one of them shake his cane at the other, and hear the 
 other say, " Go on, you old catamaran." They turned 
 and looked at each other, and seemed to fairly grate 
 their false teeth; but they passed on without a col 
 lision, though both of them looked scratched, as though 
 they had been in a clawing match. The fact that for 
 twenty years the two old men have been firm friends 
 caused their acquaintances to wonder what had come 
 between them. Presently we met the son of one of 
 them, and asked him confidentially what had happened 
 to cause them to dislike each other so. At first he said 
 he did not desire to say anything, as it couldn t do any 
 good, and he wouldn t have it get into the papers for 
 anything. We told him that if there was anything he 
 desired to keep out of the papers, there was no person 
 
ELECTRICITY THE WORST WAT. 81 
 
 that he could tell it to who would be more careful to 
 see that it did not appear in the wicked dailies than we 
 would. He looked at us with an expression of confi. 
 dence and trust, and said : 
 
 " Well, it is all on account of this electricity craze. 
 You see, the old gentlemen have been in the habit of 
 meeting at my house, two or three nights a week, to 
 play whist, for years, and lately, since they can t see so 
 well as they used to, they have talked and smoked more 
 than they have played cards. Since the telephone and 
 electric light have been in use, those inventions have 
 been the subject of conversation between the old men, 
 until I have got so sick of electricity that I can t look 
 at a telephone without having cramps. They are full 
 of electricity, and are experimenting on everything. 
 Why, last summer they run a fish-line, with baking- 
 powder cans at each end, from my house to the other 
 old man s son s house, and they would talk to each 
 other, and yell until they were hoarse. I broke that up 
 by taking father s place at the baking-powder can, 
 when he went down-stairs after his tobacco-box, and I 
 called his old friend a bald-headed old cunderango, who 
 hadn t teeth enough to eat liver, and who was so old 
 and childish that he had to be put to bed by the serv 
 ants. I told him he was a poor old infant, and ought 
 to be fed on a bottle. When father got back from 
 down-stairs, the other old man had cut the fish-line, 
 and he wouldn t speak to father for a month. Oh, 
 they have tried all kinds of electric experiments, and 
 I wouldn t be surprised to see them all blown up some 
 day. They learned, not long ago, that a person could 
 go skuffing around on a carpet and become so charged 
 6 
 
82 
 
 with electricity that by touching a gas-burner with the 
 finger the gas would be lit, and for two weeks they 
 were wearing out the carpet in my sitting-room, and 
 they burned more gas trying the experiment than tlie 
 family would burn in a month. But we didn t care, as 
 long as it was fun for the old fellows, and by the way 
 they laughed and slapped each other on the shoulders, 
 at the success of their experiments, and puffed and 
 bio wed from their exercise, I know they enjoyed it. 
 
 " Well, the other day I told father that one of the 
 finest experiments in electricity was obtained by taking 
 a cat and stroking its back until the sparks would fly 
 from the hair, and then hold the cat s tail up to the gas 
 burner and light the gas. The old man was so taken 
 with the idea that he sent for his old friend to come 
 over that night, as he had got a new experiment. The 
 old fellow came over, and father got the old family cat 
 on his lap and began to stroke its back, and explain to 
 his friend how he was going to light the gas. He said 
 he believed cats could be utilized to make electricity 
 enough to light a house, and he was going to apply 
 for a patent. They talked and stroked the cat until 
 Thomas quit purring and began to act as though he 
 had worms. I suppose a cat has feelings as well as a 
 human being, and they must feel the electricity that is 
 generated as much as a man or a woman. They thought 
 the cat was pretty near charged, and father got up on 
 a chair to turn on the gas, at the burner, while the other 
 old man held the cat, and handed the animal up to 
 him. Of all the rows 1 ever heard, that beat anything. 
 I was in the bath-room, taking a bath, and I heard the 
 almighties! yelling and spitting, and swearing and 
 
EXPERIMKM IN ELECTRICITY. 
 
ELECTKIOITY THE WOBST WAY. 85 
 
 clawing, and thinking the house was on fire I took a 
 wet towel and went down in the sitting room. The 
 two old men were on the floor, clawing each other, 
 and the cat was under a sofa just more than purmeow- 
 ing. I couldn t get any clear idea of how it hap 
 pened, as both of them told a different story. 
 
 "After I had separated them and got my clothes on, 
 and they had washed the blood off their faces, and 
 drove the cat out of doors, I gathered from their con 
 versation that the man handed the cat up to father, on 
 the chair, by the legs, and that father took hold of the 
 hind legs of the cat, expecting that the old man assist 
 ing him would hold on to the fore legs of the cat. 
 When the tail touched the gas-burner, the cat got 
 cross, and began to scratch gravel, and probably she 
 got her hair singed on the burner they were lighting, 
 or another that was lighted, and the cat more than 
 clawed and squawled. Father says she dug all her toe 
 nails into his shirt bosom, and walked down him, and 
 scratched him everywhere, and then jumped on the 
 other man ; but he says father throwed the cat on him. 
 Anyway, no one cat ever scratched two persons in 
 more places than our old cat did father and his friend^ 
 and they accused each other of fraud and chicanery, 
 and each thought the other put up the job on him, and 
 they got to pulling hair, and chaos was what was the 
 matter when I went down. The cat came near ruining 
 one of father s eyes, and the other old man finished it 
 up by hitting him wi*>h a chair-leg, and when they 
 separated it was with bad blood, and I don t know as 
 they will ever get together again, though I shouldn t 
 be surprised if they started out together to exterminate 
 
86 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 all the cats in the world. You couldn t expect a cat to 
 stand that treatment and not get its back up. The 
 animal was no doubt full of electricity, and when its 
 tail reached up to the gas-burner, it became nervous. 
 If the old fellows don t get into a fight on the street, I 
 shall be glad, but please don t let this go any further 
 as they would be ashamed to see it in print r 
 
 THE CORN DENTIST AND PLUMBER 
 
 ONE of those mistakes that are liable to occur JQ 
 the best regulated families made quite a laugh in 
 a West side residence a few days ago. The lady of 
 the house had been grumbling about a corn on her foot 
 for months, and her husband had tried in vain to get 
 her to consent to have a regularly-ordained "corn 
 dentist" come up and remove it, but she was afraid it 
 would hurt, and she was nervous about having a horrid 
 man touch her bare foot, and she suffered along until 
 Tuesday, when in a moment of agony she told the old 
 man to send up his corn dentist as quick as he had a 
 mind to. He went down to his office and ordered the 
 corn man to go up. He had already ordered a plumber 
 to go to the house and mend some gas-fixtures that had 
 sprung a leak, and the plumber got there first. The 
 lady gave orders that if a man called with some corn 
 tools, to send him up to her room. The plumber rung 
 the bell, and on being asked where the work was to be 
 done, the girl told him to go up to the lady s room, and 
 the man went up. He had a roll of cloth with tools 
 
THE CORN DENTIST AND PLTJMBEB. 87 
 
 in it, and as he put it down on the floor to unroll the 
 tools, the lady took off her slipper, and removed her 
 stocking, and placed her foot on a hassock. She looked 
 at the plumber s tools on the floor, and almost fainted. 
 There was a big pair of pincers, and two files, and a lot 
 of iron things that looked big enough to remove the 
 corns from an elephant. The man was sorting out the 
 tools, and didn t notice the woman s fright, until she 
 asked : 
 
 " Is this going to hurt much ? If it is I had rather 
 suffer the annoyance." 
 
 " O, no," said the man looking up at the gas bracket 
 by the window, which had a rag wound around the 
 joint which leaked. " I can screw the cap onto the 
 joint, so the gas cannot escape," and seeing the woman s 
 bare foot so near him he opened his eyes in wonder, 
 and blushed like a girl. She looked at him and won 
 dered why he did not go to work on her foot. He 
 was a great, big, muscular fellow, and he looked as 
 little like the way she supposed a corn doctor would 
 look as possible. Taking up a big pair of pinchers, 
 and taking a match, to light a small candle which he 
 carried, to test leaky gas fixtures, he said : 
 
 " Where does it seem to be the worst ? " 
 
 - : There," said the little woman, bending over and 
 facing her finger on the next to the little toe. " Right 
 Between those two toes. It is a soft corn, and some^ 
 times it makes me wild. Now, do be careful, won t 
 you," as the man dropped his pinchers and stood back 
 as though he had been struck by lightning. Then he 
 laughed out loud, and said: 
 
 " Madame, I have been in the plumbing business 
 
88 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 twenty-two years, but this is the first time I was ever 
 called upon to repair a broken joint in a woman s toe- 
 Excuse me" and he began to roll up his tools. 
 
 " Heavens and earth ! " said the woman, as she tried 
 to put on her stocking wrong end first, and blushing 
 BO she looked as pretty as though she never had a corn, 
 " I thought you were a corn doctor. There is the gas 
 fixture you are to putty up," and she went out of the 
 room in her stocking feet to blow up the girl for 
 sending a plumber to plumb a corn. The corn doctor 
 arrived soon, and did his work, and when he and the 
 plumber went out together they were having a great 
 laugh as they turned the corner, When she tells her 
 husband to send up a man to do any work about the 
 house now, she stipulates that he shall not send a 
 plumber, whatever he does. 
 
 AN AEMY ON A STRIKE. 
 
 THE story of how a war was almost averted by a 
 strike on the part of five boys, will no doubt be 
 handed down to our grandchildren, written by the 
 most eminent historians, but it seems as though those 
 of us who cumber the earth at the present day, ought 
 to know the particulars, so " The Sun 5 tells a few of 
 the incidents. Those who have seen the play of 
 Richard the Third, will remember the battle on Bos- 
 worth Field, where the air is full of the shrieks of the 
 dead and groans of those who ought to be killed. The 
 cavalry charged down behind the scenes, out of sight, 
 
AH ARMY ON A STRIKE, 89 
 
 and you see the terrible carnage in your mind. There 
 is the smoke of battle and Richard comes out of his 
 tent, where he has been dreaming of his mother-in-law, 
 spits on his hands, pulls up his boot-legs, and goes 
 forth to battle, behind the scenes, rubs some red paint 
 on himself for wounds, and comes on again with his 
 back up, to die at the hands of another duffer. The 
 two armies pass across the stage in review before the 
 fight, or at least one army passes in review, changes 
 his blouse for one of another color, and marches across 
 the stage as the other army. These things are fresh 
 in the memory of theater goers, as it has not been 
 long since they were paralyzed by such a scene. 
 
 Well, last week Tom Keene played Eichard at Mad 
 ison, and the stage manager enlisted an army that was 
 calculated to strike terror to the hearts of all tyrants. 
 It was going to be one of the most realistic battle 
 scenes ever presented to the American public. The 
 army consisted of five boys, which would give two 
 boys and a half to Richard, and the same number to 
 Richmond. The boys were corraled behind the scenes, 
 and given the pine spears with tin weather-vanes on 
 them, and were dressed in the masquerade ball costume, 
 and before the curtain went up on the first act, Richard 
 reviewed his army, as it sat on nail-kegs and soap 
 boxes, and declared it to be superb. The play went 
 on, and the curtain was about to rise on Bosworth 
 Field, where the great battle was to take place which 
 would decide the fate of nations. Nervous people in 
 the audience who are not accustomed to carnage had 
 been out to a saloon and got a drink to nerve them for 
 the ordeal, and all was ready. The stage-manager 
 
90 PECK S BOSS BOOK, 
 
 suddenly appeared in Tom Keenefe dressing-room, 
 where that warrior was putting the hump on his back 
 and sharpening his sabre on the stove-pipe, and the 
 manager was pale. Keene said " Ho, slave," and the 
 slave said " What, ho," and then he told Keene the army 
 had struck for two shillings apiece extra, or they would 
 not fight the battle of Bosworth Field. Accustomed 
 as Keene was to scenes of blood, mutiny, beer and 
 cheese, he " let upon his sword and wiped away a tear," 
 then fell upon his manager and spoke in great wrath. 
 Finally he said he would go and see about it, so he 
 stalked boldly out behind the scenes up to a printer s 
 devil, who seemed to be the leader in the mutiny, 
 and asked him if the army wanted the earth. The 
 bell boy, who composed the left wing of the army, 
 and the boy from the livery stable, who acted as the 
 right wing, got behind a painted iceberg, to cool their 
 fevered brows, but the printer s devil and the two boys 
 from the cigar factory, who held the center and prac 
 tically controlled the movements of the English army, 
 stood their ground. The printer s devil argued with 
 Keene that when he came to figure it up he could see 
 that four shillings apiece was none too much for an 
 army, enlisted for the war. He said they had left 
 their plows in the furrow, and with no bounty, had 
 left their families to suffer while they fought, and 
 asked him to think of the condition of the loved ones 
 at home if they should fall in battle. Keene tried to 
 show them that there was no danger ; that the battle 
 was a mere matter of form, and that he and Eichmond 
 would do all the fighting, and that they were all liable 
 to get a pension when the war was over; but the 
 
AN AEMY ON A STRIKE. 91 
 
 printer said a bird in the hand beat a bobtail flush, and 
 it must be an extra two shillings, or no carnage. 
 Keene hesitated, and was lost. He leaned against a 
 fire extinguisher, and told them they were doing very 
 wrong in promulgating communistic doctrines in a 
 peaceful city, and he tried to compromise with them 
 on ten cents extra; but the army arose as one man, 
 indignation in every bronzed face, and said : " Not by a 
 darn sight," and they threw down their cistern poles 
 that had i>een sharpened for spears, and were about tc 
 tear off the British uniform and go forth as private 
 citizens, when the audience outside became impatient, 
 and stamped their feet. 
 
 Keene saw that he was at the mercy of his arnry, 
 and like a great general he complied with the demand, 
 the army, made bold by the extra pay, marched upon 
 the field when the curtain was raised, and for a few 
 moments the citizens of Madison were reminded of the 
 days of the late war when the city was full of recruits, 
 getting trusted for clothes at the clothing stores, and 
 making the welkin ring, so they had to tap a new keg 
 every fifteen minutes. Bosworth Field was never 
 fought so before. Besides Richard being cut all to 
 pieces, one of the cigarmakers run a sharp stick into 
 the bell boy, and the printer s devil got after a supe 
 and chased him away down behind the brick livery 
 stable, while the bell boy treed the stage manager on 
 a step-ladder, and wanted to stab Richard with the 
 pole after he was dead, while Richmond had to get 
 behind the mother of the Princes, who died in a pre 
 vious act, to keep from being run through by the left 
 wing of the army, on its return from chasing the supe. 
 
92 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 The army was paid of! and mustered out, and spent its 
 four shillings in riotous living. Keene says when it 
 comes to raising an army for Bosworth Field he would 
 back the Madison boys against the world. 
 
 TO EEMOYE PAINT, 
 
 ONE evening last week there was a tea-party at the 
 residence of a deacon, and after supper the gen 
 tlemen went to the smoking-room, and smoked and 
 told stories while the ladies visited and exchanged 
 pieces of silk neckties and ribbons for making silk quilts. 
 The men got to talking about the changes that occur 
 in peoples lives in a few years, and each had some 
 illustration in his own experience. The young minis 
 ter had been a quiet listener, and smoked his cigar ii> a 
 dreamy sort of way, and when they had all had an 
 inning telling stories, the doctor said to the minister : 
 
 " Elder, you must have noticed, as much as anybody, 
 the changes that time brings. Can t you tell us some 
 thing funny in your experience?" 
 
 " I was just thinking," said the elder, as he threw 
 his cigar stub in the cuspidore, and took a fresh one and 
 lit it, "of something that happened to me last winter 
 in Chicago, and I will tell it to you to illustrate how 
 added years bring intelligence to the most of us, 
 though it cannot bring forgetfulness, and to illustrate 
 also how a man may be reasonably smart in knowl 
 edge of the world, and not know enough to keep his 
 mouth shut at the proper time. 
 
TO REMOVE PAINT. 93 
 
 "About twenty-five years ago, when I was eight years 
 of age, my people lived in a little town* and I was 
 allowed to run loose about the neighborhood. You 
 wouldn t believe it to look at me now, but I was a 
 terror. That is, I was full of fun, oh, so full. I was 
 up to all sorts of mischief, and my good father and 
 mother feared that I would never amount to much, 
 and I guess they fear it now, but that is neither here 
 nor there. Among my playmates was a little girl of 
 my own age, a bright little thing with blue eyes and 
 brown hair, and a dimple in her cheek. If I was a 
 terror she was a terroress. She could climb a fence 
 quicker than I could, and outrun me, and wasn t afraid 
 of anything, and we were the best friends you ever 
 saw. Her name was Susan. One day we were playing 
 in the back yard, barefooted, and something induced 
 us to go into her father s barn. In looking around for 
 something to amuse us, I found a couple of pots of 
 paint that her father had been usir *r about the house. 
 One pot was red and the other green. We took the 
 brushes and painted the stall in the barn red, and one 
 wheel of her father s wagOn green, and finally she sug 
 gested that we paint our feet. So I painted one of her 
 feet green and the other red, and she painted mine, 
 and then I rolled up my pants and she painted clear 
 up to my knees, and then she got jealous because I had 
 more style than she did, and so I painted her legs also, 
 but I striped them, the stripes of alternate green and 
 red running around like a barber pole. Being a girl, 
 we argued that it was right that she should be more 
 gaudy than me. 
 
 "Well, I have seen beautiful paintings since, and 
 
94 PECK S BOBS BOOK. 
 
 have done a little with the brush since arriving at 
 man s estate, but I have never seen anything that gave 
 me the satisfaction, as a work of art, that the work of 
 that afternoon in the studio in the barn did. I have 
 seen marble sculpture of the human form divine, in the 
 galleries of the old and new world since, but I have 
 never seen anything that could hold a candle to the 
 landscape that I painted on Susan. She was so tickled 
 that she had to go right in the house and show the 
 chromo to her mother, and it was not more than a 
 minute before a solitary horseman, about eight years old, 
 with one leg green and the other red, might have been 
 seen going over a picket fence just ahead of Susan s 
 mother s mop. I got home alive, and presented a 
 picture to my mother that she had never seen in her 
 wildest dreams. Paint everywhere. And she warmed 
 me, and Susan s mother across the street warmed her, 
 and us two young artists mingled our cries across the 
 dusty street. I deed not dwell on the weeks of agony 
 we endured in having that paint removed. There was 
 some sort of dryer in the paint that made it dry and 
 shine, and it seemed to penetrate clear to the bone. At 
 least it did on me, and I suppose Susan was made of 
 the same kind of clay. Any way, all the time we lived 
 in that town after that, Susan wore stockings, and I 
 judged she was having the same trouble I was, being 
 washed every night in benzine, until I almost wished 
 there was no such thing as being an artist. 
 
 I had almost forgotten the circumstance, in a busy 
 life, until last winter I was down to Chicago to a mis* 
 eionary convention. There were delegates from aP 
 over the country, and many of us took our wives. 
 
TO REMOVE PAINT. 95 
 
 One evening, after the business of the convention was 
 over, there was a reception at the residence of one of 
 the directors of our society, and I was introduced to 
 the wife of a brother minister. There was something 
 about her eyes that seemed sort of familiar, and finally 
 she told me who she was, and as sure as I am smoking 
 this five-cent cigar, it was Susan. Well, we talked 
 about old times and old friends for a long time, and of 
 the good work her husband was doing out West, but 
 for the life of me I could not keep my mind off of that 
 incident of the paint. Here she was a grown woman ; 
 the glorious eyes she had in youth were even more 
 beautiful, and her smile was enough to break up a 
 prayer-meeting ; but I could only see her as she looked 
 when I got through painting her. Becoming familiar, 
 I finally said : By the way, Susan, I would like to ask 
 you one question, and she said, Certainly/ and I 
 allowed my eye to twinkle a little, and I asked : 
 
 " Susan, tell me, did you ever get that paint off 
 your 
 
 " Sir, said she, her whole frame showing the great 
 est indignation, and just then a bald-headed preachei 
 came up, and she turned to me and said : * This is my 
 husband. Husband, this is an old friend of my youth, 
 one who knew me when we went barefooted together. 
 
 " * Ah, indeed ; glad to meet you, said the brothei 
 My wife has often told me about how you and sh v 
 used to handle the paint-brush, and transform nature, 
 into high art, and eh, she is gone. 
 
 I looked around for Susan, and she had taken the arm 
 of another minister and gone to the refreshment room, 
 and before I could see her again she had gone home, 
 
96 PECK S BOSS BOOK. 
 
 ana I never saw her after. But for several nights my 
 dreams were filled with visions of hand-painted articles, 
 barns, indignant mothers with brooms, benzine and 
 sweet oil, and a pair of the loveliest eyes that ever were 
 seen. But here is my wife with her things on. What, 
 time to go home? "Well, good-night; but for good 
 ness sake, gentlemen, don t say that I told you about 
 that paint business 
 
LD21-100m.7, 40 (6936s) 
 
U.C. BERKELEY LIBRARIES 
 
 CDElDfllMlM 
 
 M12027 
 
 THE UNIVERSITY OF CALIFORNIA LIBRARY